UGBLXC XSUBL
Sa1r-x4antirication with ADqa1a in Rabbinic Aqa4ah an4 ita Javiah ADtaca4anta
Jonah Chanan Steinberg
Sub...
72 downloads
874 Views
14MB Size
Report
This content was uploaded by our users and we assume good faith they have the permission to share this book. If you own the copyright to this book and it is wrongfully on our website, we offer a simple DMCA procedure to remove your content from our site. Start by pressing the button below!
Report copyright / DMCA form
UGBLXC XSUBL
Sa1r-x4antirication with ADqa1a in Rabbinic Aqa4ah an4 ita Javiah ADtaca4anta
Jonah Chanan Steinberg
Submitted in Partial Fulfillment Of the Requirements for the Degree of Doctor of Philosophy in the Graduate School of Arts and Sciences COLUMBIA UNIVERSITY 2003
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
@
2003
Jonah Chanan Steinberg All Rights Reserved
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
ABSTRACT
ANGELIC ISRAEL Self-Identification with Angels in Rabbinic Agadah and its Jewish Antecedents
Jonah Chanan Steinberg
The earliest rabbis inherited from antecedent Jewish sects and authors a theme of kinship between Israel and the Angels of heaven.
This theme was prominent in the sectarian thought of
Qumran (as evidenced in the Dead Sea Scrolls) and it pervaded pseudepigraphic writing in the time of Rabbinism's emergence. Rabbinic voices carried the theme of Angelic Israel forward, though not without some opposition.
In classical agadah this
theme retained elements familiar from earlier sources, ideas that fueled later Jewish mysticism; and the theme was also distinctly rabbinized.
The notion of kinship between Israel
and the angels became a motivatinq force for rabbinic piety, rabbinic learninq, and the discipline of quotidian halakha. In much rabbinic thouqht, the trope of Angelic Israel remained a mainstay in the conception of the Jewish person and the Jewish people.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
TABLE OF CONTENTS GENERAL INTRODUCTION ••••••••••••••••••••••••••••••••••••••• 1
SURVEY OF SCHOI.ARSHIP •••••••••••••••••.••••••••••••••••••• 10 The Dead Sea Scrolls, the "New History of Religions School," and the End of Rationalist Apoloqy •.•••••••••••••••••••••••••••••••• lO Scholarship on Angelic Themes in Rabbinic Literature •••••••••••••••••••••••••••••••••• 20 CHAPTER ONE: ANGELIC HUMANITY AT QUMRAN: THE EVIDENCE OF THE DEAD SEA SCROLLS BEYOND THE SONGS OF THE SABBATH SACRIFICE •••••••••••••••••••••••••••••••••• 42 Introduction •.•••••••••••••••••••••••••.••••••••.•••• 4 2 Scholarship on the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice ••••••••••••••.••••••••••••••••••••• 49 A Methodological Note •••••••••••••••••••••••••••••••• 69 A Sketch of the Angelic Community of Qumran: An overview of the Tertual Evidence ••••••••••••••••••••••••••••••••••••• 71 The Genres and Terts in Turn •••.••••••••••••••.•••••• 89 The Hodayot: A Psalmody of Anqelic Election ••••••••.•••..•..••••••.••..•.•• 89 Mediating Anqels in the Divine Court on Earth: Priesthood and Temple in Qumran Ideoloqy •.••..•••••••••••••••• 112 4Q491c: The Self-Glorification Hymn •••••••••••• l32 The War Rule lQM and 4QM: Angelic •••••••••••••• 137 Battle on Earth Constitution of an Angelic Community: The Rule Scroll (lQS, lQSa, lQSb) : The Rule of the Community (irr,n 1,0), the Rule of the congregation (niun 1,0) and the Rule of Benedictions c~,~wn~ n~,~ ,,~i) ..••.••..•...•.....•.....•... 143 The Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice Tbemselves ••••••••••••••••••••••••••••••••••••• l54 i
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
CHAPTER TWO: THE ANGELIC LEGACY OF ADAM: ISRAEL AS AN ANGELIC LINEAGE IN PSEUDEPIGRAPHA OUTSIDE QUMitAH • ••••••••••••••••••••••••••••••••••••••••••• 169
Introduction.
.169
Paradoxical Motif, Paradoxical Narrative.
.175
Angelic Israel: A Priestly Paradigm.
.182
In the Beginning: Angelic Adam.
.......... .... ...... .187
The Angelic Line of Israel •••••
.196
Seth •• Enoch (et. al.) Noah ••
.197 • •• 199 .207 .212 ••• 213 • ••• 215 .222 • •• 226 .235
. .. . . . . . . .
Abraham .. ...... .
Isaac (and Abraham again) Jacob-Israel ••••••••••••• Joseph (and Asenath, and Levi) Moses •• Isaiah. The Angelic Hope of Israel.
.240
CHAPTER THREE: ANGELIC ISRAEL: THE RABBINIC SOURCES AND TRADITIONS ••••••••••••••••••.•••
.244
............ . ... .. . ..... . . . ....244 ...... . . .. .. ....... .. ..... .247 Sources.
Introduction •••••• The Range of
Symbolism and Actuality in Classical Midrash. • . . . . • . . . • . • . . • . . . • . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 2 51
The Angelic Identity of the First Human Beings. • • • • • • • • . • • • • • • • • • • • .
• •.•••••••••••• 256
Adam's Heirs: The Angelic Patriarchs of Israel. Shea •••••••••••.... .....••..
The Angelic Abraham •• The Angelic Isaac •••• The Angelic Jacob-Israel •••
Joseph ••••••••••••••••• ••••
.278 ••• 281 • •• 283 • •• 292 • .295 •• 308
Levi, Aaron, the Angelic Priesthood, and the Temple .••••••..•••...••••.•••.••••..•••••••• 312
ii
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
.. . . ..... . .... . . . . . ... .. . . .. . . ... .335 The Anqelic Moses. ...... .. . . . ..... . .. ... . .... . . ..343 The Anqelic Prophets. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .352 rsrael at Sinai •••
Anqelic rsrael in the Wilderness.
.360
The Riqhteous and the Time to Come •••••••••••••••••• 372 The Anqelic Saqes and the Academy on HiCJh. • • • • • • • • • • • • • • • • .•••••••.•••.••••••• 3 81
Conclusion . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 407 Biblioqraphy . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 410
Note on Texts and Translations •••••••••.••••••••••••••••• 423
iii
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
ACKNOWLEDGEMENTS
In my years at Columbia University I have had a veritable dream-team of advisors and supporters.
First amonq them has
been my mentor, Professor David Weiss Hali vni, who steadfastly fostered
in me the fulfillment of the classical rabbinic
dictum, "A man should always study what his heart desires," and I miqht add, "even if his heart's desires be somewhat off the trail blazed by the master in critical talmudic studies." From Professor Halivni I have learned to learn rabbinically. Professor Alan Seqal of Barnard Colleqe fanned the flames of this
idea
from the start;
and
he has been
qenerous toward the resultinq conflaqration.
in every way
I cannot imaqine
this study's conception, its development, nor especially its completion, without him. New York University I
To Professor Lawrence Schiffman of owe an entire world,
Qumran's sectarian vision.
the world of
If scholarship of the Dead Sea
Scrolls had, historically, been so open-handed as Professor Schiffman has been to me, this project would perforce have been much
shorter--much
of
what
doubtless already have been done.
I
have
done
here
would
Speakinq of entire worlds,
Professor Elliot Wolfson, also of New York University, is one unto himself--it is virtually impossible to venture to a place in the landscape of Jewish mysticism where his mind has not roamed.
I
am qrateful to him for readinq the proposal for
this project and affirminq its worth.
To honor the tutelaqe
of these qreat scholars with my own work is a iv
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
lofty hope
indeed.
This onqoinq study is dedicated to them, and to all
of my teachers,
and I mean to make it more worthy of that
dedication in a later form. I
am
especially
qrateful
to
Professors
Michael
Stanislawski and Wayne Proudfoot for joininq the committee to read this dissertation, and for their sound suqqestions. I have been the beneficiary of Faculty and President's Fellowships
at
Columbia
University.
Lucius
N.
Littauer
Foundation qrants enabled me to spend summers workinq with Professor
David
Weiss
invaluable apprenticeship.
Halivni
on
his
publications--an
Professor David Kraemer invited me
to teach at the Jewish Theoloqical Seminary, an opportunity which opened the door to other teachinq appointments.
A
Finkelstein Fellowship from the University of Judaism, in Los Anqeles, enabled me to spend an idyllic academic year in the City of Anqels and at the Zieqler School of Rabbinic Studies (where Pinchas Giller suqqested the title of this project). The Reconstructionist Rabbinical Colleqe, its faculty, and its students, have embraced, encouraqed, and inspired me durinq my three years as Director of the Colleqe's proqram in Rabbinic Literature and Civilization.
I am particularly qrateful for
the scholarly company of Drs. Tamar Kamionkowski, Joel Hecker and David Golomb. With love and pride, I acknowledqe my family, includinq its newest member, Aurora, and my fiancee, Rebecca Rose Saxe. One could not ask for more wondrous human beinqs.
v
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
For my teachers
vi
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
GBKBRAL r.RTRODUCTZOR
BecoaiDCJ DiviDe
Every revelation is simply a revelation of the nature of man to existinq men. rn revelation man's latent nature is disclosed to him, becomes an object to him. He is determined, affected by his own nature as by another beinq; he receives from the hands of God what his own unrecoqnized nature entails upon him as a necessity ••• (Feuerbach [1841] 1957: 207-8)
What appeal did a life of Torah and commandments offer to the minds represented by classical rabbinic aqadah?
What
benefit was conceived that justified commitment to rabbinic piety?
What experience sustained devotion?
These questions
are answerable in many ways--arquably as many as there were Saqes (and redactors of their dicta)--but such questions are too seldom treated as seriously interestinq or worthy, and are rarely more than perfunctorily answered.
The phenomenon of
punctilious and meticulous attention to Torah is too often treated
as
justifyinq,
thouqh
such
care
self-sufficient
were without
self-evidently reference
particular benefit or consolation.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
to
selfany
2
To be sure, there are warhorse answers to the question of what constitutes, so to speak, the carrot at the end of the halakhic stick.
The life of the world to come; the production
and preservation of a practical framework of Jewish life in the absence of the Temple; divine favor with the rewards of family, and perhaps long life; the fellowship of admired and admiring peers; the alteration of the world for the better; and, perhaps most often asserted as ultimate, the conviction of livinq in fulfillment of the Creator's will--these are some easily recalled reasons, and certainly they are reasons for devotion in classical rabbinic Judaism. great deal question:
of To
space what
in which
end
to
rabbinic
Still there seems a
ask and piety?
to
answer the
What
could
the
discipline of the lived religion offer the devotee in the devotee's here-and-now?
How did rabbinic piety excite the
soul? This conception. this
work
work
answers
that
question
in
terms
of
self-
It is not the only right answer; nor even does represent
the
sole
answer
in
terms
of
self-
conception that might be discerned
in classical rabbinic
thought.
the
This
work
uncovers,
in
agadic
legacy
of
rabbinism, one particular appeal to piety, an appeal couched in terms of the nature of Jewish self- and peoplehood.
It is
an appeal that resounds loudly through Jewish writings dating just before the Rabbis' rise, and (not surprisingly therefore)
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
3
the theme echoes still and makes its call anew amonq the earliest rabbinic voices also. The appeal in question is the conceptual trope that I term here "anqelic Israel."
Its argument is of an ontoloqical
affinity or continuity of the Jewish person, and the Jewish people, with the anqelic host of heaven, and thereby (to an extent to be explored here) with divinity itself.
Manifest
piety, as it appears in this theme, entails and enables the instantiaton and recoqnition, in the Jewish self and in the Jewish
nation,
of
a
status
preternatural beinqs on hiqh.
of
actual
kinship
with
Realizinq himself in this way
(and we will see the deqree to which him-selves are important to these sources), the Jewish man becomes a wondrous beinq. Such
status
is
conceived
as
the
riqhtful
and
at
least
potentially actual lot of Jewish humanity; yet, qiven the sad state of human affairs when seen from its vantaqe point, it is also a status for which the human beinq is an inadequate siqn and cipher.
Only anqels will do, in the sources arrayed here,
to explain what a Jew miqht be.
This is a study of the theme of "anqelic Israel, " or "self-identification with anqels."
That is to say, it is a
study of the use of heavenly and anqelic paradiqms in the conception and construction of Jewish identity and community as
this
theme
appears
in
rabbinic
literature's Jewish antecedents.
aqadah
and
in
that
The study includes three
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
4
principal
parts:
1)
a
discussion
of
angelic
conceived by the sectarians of Qumran;
2)
a
rsrael
as
survey of the
theme in apocalyptic and pseudepiqrapic sources; and 3)
a
tracing of the theme through the sources of rabbinic aqadah. With these three components, this work also sets out to answer the question:
What became of the qreat explosion of interest
in self-association with the anqels that is so evident and so characteristic in so much of the Jewish literature of Late Antiquity?
Where did this fascination qo, and what became of
the theme along the main line,
so to speak,
of rabbinic
reliqion? The
first
principal
humanity at Qumran.
chapter
is
a
study
of
anqelic
A thorough survey of the relevant sources
is itself an innovation, since the corpus of texts is so newly available to scholarship.
Moreover, the assemblinq of these
sources enables a newly nuanced conclusion with regard to the nature of the Qumran-sect's piety and its self-conception. The conclusion is that the community at Qumran reqarded itself as a beachhead, so to speak, of the heavenly world upon the earth--a foothold from which the sectarians imaqined they would storm forth, in leaque with the celestial angels, as the vanquard of a
new heavenly order to be realized upon the
earth, and especially in Jerusalem.
This account makes sense
of the peculiar admixture at Qumran of self-association with the angels on the one hand, and, on the other, preoccupation with
earthly
affairs,
with
the
terrestrial
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
sancta
of
5
Jerusalem,
and
with
the
corruptions
of
mankind.
The
eschatoloqical narrative of the sect makes sense also of the typical and fr.equent alternation, in a qreat deal of Qumran literature,
between
audacious
self-aqqrandizement
alonq
anqelic lines and abject self-deprecation in the most base and earthly terms.
The sectarians at Qumran believed themselves
to be livinq on the cusp of the end of days, at the outset of an
eschaton
in
which
their
already
determined
and
proleptically experienced qlory would be clearly manifest in an earthly world made continuous with the heavens.
Yet, as
they awaited the full unfolding of this final triumph, the sectarians struggled miqhtily with the ignominies and unangelic indignities of human life, which they experienced as real impediments to the kinship with the angels of which they were assured. was
The self-understanding of the Qumran sectarian
correspondingly
tremulant
between
two
opposite
conceptions. The chapter on Qumran is a worthwhile study in its own right; it takes a step toward a better understanding of the piety and the community reflected in the Dead sea Scrolls. Qumran, as it turns out, provides a prime example of religion centered upon the idea of angelic humanity.
rn comparison
with the library of classical rabbinic agadah, the sectarian writings of Qumran are much more pervasively and consistently preoccupied with angelic themes.
The frequent and intensive
focus of these texts upon the idea of Israelite affinity with
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
&
the anqels makes Qumran a useful paradiqm, or paraqon, of the trope "anqelic Israel." therefore, relevant anqelic
is
a
useful
rabbinic Israel
A review of its apposite texts, precursor
sources.
to
Qumran,
is writ so
exploration where
larqe and so
of
the
the notion of
inteqrally to a
reliqious system, must awaken us to the phenomenon of exalted ontoloqy of the self--we miqht say,
to "anqelification of
self-concept"--as an available and well-trodden pathway in the Jewish piety of Late Antiquity. The
second
principal
chapter
concentrates
on
pseudepiqraphic literature beyond Qumran and demonstrates once more that belief in an ontoloqical affinity between Israel and the host of heaven was a major and central feature of Jewish piety in Late Antiquity. accordinq
to
these
ancestral past and, even its
Not just Israel in the eschaton,
sources,
but
the
heroes
of
Israel's
implicitly (and sometimes explicitly),
livinq priests and pietists miqht recoqnize and
actualize kinship and continuity with the anqels and their heavenly
domain.
This
observation
itself
is
not
an
innovation; however the relevant sources must be arrayed and discussed to Late
enable an appreciation of this theme in Jewish
Antiquity
that
will
support
a
discussion
of
its
ramifications in classical rabbinism. In the second place, and more innovatively, the chapter on the pseudepiqrapha arques that many of the traditions of anqelic Israel that are found in that literature may most
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
7
readily be understood in terms of a
common,
underpinning
narrative motif, which must have been important in its time. The motif is of a struggle between opposed angelic forces played out upon the earth--a struggle that pits a faction associated with the fallen
angels
of
old,
who
corrupted
humankind, against a faction associated with the fallen but originally angelic Adam, the latter faction being Israel, of course.
In brief,
the narrative motif suggests that an
Israelite
inclination to strive toward
identity with the
angels in heaven is opposed by the corrupting tendency of a certain angelic faction to forsake its heavenly station and propagate rebellion in the earth. The third and final principal chapter of this study turns to the agadic sources of rabbinism themselves, with especial emphasis on early midrashic sources and talmudic traditions. In these sources, the theme of angelic Israel continues to live and resonate;
it
is significantly developed
and
it
connects with particular elements of devotional practice and conviction.
Again,
it
is
important
ideological
breadth
of
rabbinism,
to
emphasize
within
which
the self-
identification with angels is but one theme among many, and one taken up by only certain voices.
on the other hand,
angelic Israel is no less than a prominent theme, and there is scarcely a corpus of classical midrash in which it does not appear.
Not surprisingly, there is some ambivalence to be
discerned in early rabbinic agadah on the topic of angelic
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
8
Israel.
After all, the notion was associated, just before the
rise of rabbinism, with radicalizing and exclusive sectarian thought.
Still,
despite
passages
that may reflect some
authentic attempts at hushing, the theme of angelic Israel continues its appeal in rabbinic agadah. heroes
of
priests;
Israel's and
primordial
then
its
Aqain we see the
history;
latter-day
its
prophets
pietists,
the
and
Sages
themselves, associated ontologically with the host of heaven. The theme is frequent, far more than a curiosity. Addressing Jewish piety offers
in
terms
of
self-conception
certain advantages to the study of rabbinic religion.
Classical
rabbinic
literature
systematic doqma and theology.
is
famous
for
a
lack
of
Attempts to press the legacy
of classical rabbinic thought into unified accounts of creed, faith,
or teleology,
inevitably smack of hodqe-podge and
confusion, and mostly leave us bewildered as to Jewish life's particular allure.
National affiliation tends to stand in for
nuanced ideology, and organizing principles are notoriously difficult to come by. Recently, scholarly attention has shifted, rightly and usefully, to the very liberty of thought afforded by early rabbinism's wide doctrinal parameters, 1 and to the accurate reflection of the human condition in the conflicting truths allowed by midrash and the absence of accessible absolute 1
E.q. Cohen, •The Siqnificance of Yavneh: Pharisees, Rabbis, and the End of Jewish Sectariani811l," and A. Seqal, Rebecca's Children: Judaism and Christianity in the Ro•an florld (Cambridqe: 1986).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
, knowledqe that their multiplicity suqqests. 2
However, well
as these new approaches to rabbinic reliqion may account for the appeal of rabbinic learninq, and for the production of rabbinic discourse,
they cannot on their own explain the
allure of the correspondinq reliqious praxis.
We wonder, does
spiritual excitement come only from playinq out in life the particulars that fiqure in study; or is there some other joy and
assurance,
some
other
elevation
of
the
spirit--
contemplated at least by some--that inheres in the careful craftinq of the rabbinic life? We may say that the piety of rabbinic study is a piety of investiqatinq divinity and its call to the utmost.
The piety
of rabbinic reliqious praxis, on the other hand--as far as the sources herein are concerned--is a piety of oneself becominq divine. 3
For a piety of becominq divine, a piety of exalted
self-concept, the anqels of heaven prove a frequent point of reference, and a pervasive imaqinal paradiqm.
2
the
E.g. David xra. . .r, 1'he lfind of the 1'al18Ud: An Int•~~ectua.l History of (Oxford: 1990).
Bav~i
3
My thought concerning this sort of piety and aspiration has been influenced, toward the end of preparing the present version of this study, by Grace Jantzen•• Becolaing Divine: 1'ovarda a FUiinist Philosophy of Re~igion (Blo~qton: 1999).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
10
SORVBY OW SCBOLARSBXP
The Dea4 Sea Scroll•, the 11 Bev Bi•tory of Reliqion• School," &D4 the BD4 of R&tionali•t Apology
No development has influenced contemporary scholarship on Judaism and related traditions in Late Antiquity so profoundly as the opening to general scholarly consideration of
the
writings discovered in the Judean Desert at Qumran (a.k.a. the Dead Sea Scrolls).
The increasingly reconstructed library of
Qumran,
continually
and
the
developing
picture
of
the
sectarian qroup that occupied that site from a time soon after the Maccabean revolt until a time close to the destruction of 70 CE,
has brought on a
wave of
innovative and paradigm-
shifting observations concerning forms of Judaism in Late Antiquity4; portions of the Hebrew Bible, and especially the book
of
Daniel 5 ;
intertestamental
Apocryphal
and
4 E.g. Albert I. Baumgarten, 1'he Flourishing o£ Jewish Sects in the llaccabean Bra: An Ineerpretation (Leiden: 1997); John J Collins, 'A Throne in the Beavena: Apotheoaia in pre-Christian Judai811l' in Death Bcstasy and OCher Worldly Journeya, COllin• and Fiahbane eda. 1995, pp.43-S8. David Daube, •on Acta 23:8 Sadducee• and Angela• JBI. 109 1990, 493-497; Jamea Kugel, 'Levi•a Elevation to the Prieathood in second Temple Writing•• BTR 86, 1993. w.F. Smelik, •on Myatical Transformation of the Righteoua into Light in Judaism• JSJ 26, 1995, pp.122-144.
5
E.g. John J COllina, "The Son of Man and the Sainta of the Moat High in the Book of Daniel' JBL 93, 1974, pp. 50-66.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
11
Pseudepiqraphic texts6 ;
early Christianity and Christoloqy7 ;
and the mystical Hekhalot Literature that later emerqed from rabbinic Judaism8 --all of this in addition to the specialized study of the sect at Qumran itself. In celestial
this
wave
court
prominently.
of
and
Qumran-influenced its
occupants,
the
scholarship anqels,
the
fiqure
The importance of the denizens of heaven in the
literature of Qumran has become increasinqly evident as the textual record has been assembled and studied.
The place of
what miqht be called an anqelic anthropoloqy in the reliqion of the sect has come more and more to be recoqnized as cardinal.
In Devorah DiaaDt' s estimation, "the coDlllluni ty, or,
in fact, its core of full members, functioned analoqically to a community of priestly anqels, officiatinq in the innermost sanctuary of the heavenly temple." 9
It is even questionable--
6
E.g. Charlesworth, James H, •The Portrayal of the Righteous aa an Angel• in Nicklesburg & COllins, Ideal Figures in Ancient Judaism: Profiles and Paradigms, SBLSCS 12, Chicago, 1980, pp.l35-151; Collins, 1995, Robert G. Hall, •taaiah'a Ascent to See the Beloved: An Ancient Jewish Source for the Ascension of Isaiah?• JBL 113, 1994, pp.463-484; J.C. VanderKam, Bnoch and the Growth of an Apocalyptic Tradition (Washington D.c.: 1984). 7
E.g. P.G. Davia, •Divine Agents, Mediators and New Testament Christology• Journa1 of Theological Studies, 45 1994, pp.479-503; Hall, 1994, pp.463-484; and especia1ly Crispin B.T. Fletcher-Louis, Luke-Acts Angelology Christology and Soteriology, (Tubingen: 1997). 8
B.g. Rachel Blior, 'Mysticism, maqic and angelology; the perception of angela in Bekha1ot literature• Jewish Studies Quarterly 1, 1 (1994), pp.3-53; Martha B~lfarb, •aeaven1y Ascent and the Relationship of the Apocalyptic and the Bekhalot Literature• BUCA 59, 1988, pp. 73-100; P. Schafer, •The Aim and Purpose of Barly Jewish Myaticiam•, 12th Sack• Lecture (Oxford centre for Poatqraduate Hebrew Studiea, 1986), and •zngel und Menachen in der Bekha1ot-Literatur•, both in Schafer, Hekhalot Studien (Tubingen: 1988). 9
Dimant, Devorah, 'Men aa angela; the se1f-imaqe of the Qumran cOIIIIIlunity• Re1igion and Politic• in the Ancient Near Baat (1996), p. 98.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
12
as will be discussed in the section on Qumran below--whether "analogy" is a sufficient term for the way in which the Qumran sectarians conceived of their relationship to the heavens and the
angels.
crispin H.
T.
l'latchar-Louia,
for
example,
describes a "close communion with the angelic realm" at Qumran (1997,
p. 56).
association
Andre
des
caracteristique
caquot
adeptes de
la
aux piete
writes anges
that du
"une
ciel
qumranienne."
certaine
passe (A
pour
certain
association of the adepts with the angels is a characteristic of Qumran-piety. ] 10 The apparent
importance of angels
and
angelic identity in the sectarian literature of Qumran has led to a revisiting of related ideas in other traditions as well. One
such
area,
newly reexamined
in terms
of
Jewish
angelic categories, is early Christian piety and Christoloqy, which has seen the emergence of what has been called a "New History of Religions School," 11 characterized by "an interest in Jewish precedents for the early Christian view of Jesus as a
mediatorial
fiqure,
who,
though human,
humanity" (Fletcher-Louis, 1997, p.1).
transcends that
This school regards
Jewish angelic categories as "an important resource for the formation of early Christian thought, both with respect to Christology, and the life of the righteous"
(1997, p.251).
10
Andre Caquot, 'Le Service dea Angea• RQ 13, 1988, p. 424.
11
F1etcher-Louia, 1997, definea and diacuaaea thia movement, pp.1-11.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
13
P.G. Davia has described the change in orientation that has taken place in the study of early Christoloqy as follows: (We] have long been used to models of christoloqical evolution which emphasize the changes brought about as early Palestinian Jewish Christianity gradually became a movement of Hellenistic Gentiles who brought with them from pagan cultures very different conceptions of what might be attributed to, and expected from, a savior figure. This sort of analysis, which can be traced back to William Bousset, has been undercut by new knowledge of Palestinian Judaism itself and by a more precise understanding of the chronoloqy of early Christianity. (p.479) Davis' representative argument is that "Christoloqy was not a phenomenon
without
context
or
precedent
in
Palestinian
Judaism, and it makes historical sense as a product of that environment" written,
"The
appearance
of
In particular,
(p. 503).
identification God
is
of
Jesus
as Alan Segal has with
the
manlike
both the central characteristic of
Christianity and understandable within the context of Jewish mysticism and apocalypticism. 1112 This
recent
movement
toward
Jewish
sources
in
the
investigation of Christianity is important to the present study of self-identification with angels in classical rabbinic Judaism and its Jewish antecedents in two principal ways. first
is
The
inasmuch as the Christian studies bear out the
central claim of this work--that preternatural self-conception was an essential element of piety in the Jewish world out of which rabbinism emerged.
As Alan Segal has written, "Paul
12
Al.an P. Segal, Paul ebe Convert: The Apoaeolaee and Apostasy of saul ebe Pharisee, (New Raven: 1990) p. 44.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
14
provides important information about first-century Judaism and Jewish mysticism, equally important to the use that Jewish texts have found in establishinq the meaninq of Christian texts."l 3
What Seqal says of Paul may pertain equally to the
authorship of Luke and Acts, whose anqelic concepts FletcherLouis has linked to earlier Jewish ideas of anqelic humanity in an expansive study. 14 study
Fletcher-Louis'
of
Luke
and
Acts
is
the
paradigmatic example of the second way in which the work of the "New History of Reliqions School" is important to this present project--namely, that its scholars have extensively collected and commented upon Second Temple Jewish sources havinq to do with the celestial world and human assimilation to it, far beyond earlier treatments of the subject.
In a
viqorous burst of scholarly activity, numerous appearances of anqels
in
especially
the
Jewish
instances
literature in
which
of
human
Late
Antiquity,
beinqs
approach
and and
participate in the anqelic world, have been studied insofar as they relate to oriqins of christoloqical concepts and beliefs. The aim has
been,
as Davis
puts
it,
"locatinq Christian
thouqht and practice within the spectrum of first-century
ll Segal, Alan, •Paul and the Beginning of Jewish Mysticism•, in Deaeh Bcseasy and Oeber world~y Journey•, COllin• and Fiahbane ada. 1995, p. lOS. 4
Pletcher-Loui•, 1997. Pletcher-Loui• himaelf contend• that, "Indeed, Luke-Act• may act a• a further witne•• to the •hape of contemporary Jewi•h thought,• but hi• concern i• not with the development of that thought within JudaiSB it•elf beyond the emergence of Chriatianity. l
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
15
Judaism,
while
at
the
same
time
isolating
some
of
the
innovations which would, in due course, lead Christianity out of
its Jewish matrix"
(Davis,
p.481).
In a
sense,
this
present work follows the trail cut by such studies to a certain juncture, after which it traces the same themes along the main stream of rabbinic Judaism, so to speak, rather than along the Christian branch. on the other hand, the chapters and paragraphs of the Christian studies that set forth the importance of angels in Second Temple Judaism--in its eschatology, its soteriology, and (most importantly) in its ontology of human existence-cannot simply be swallowed whole to serve as the first steps of a work on rabbinism. their
sources
in
a
Those studies present and exposit manner
directed
toward
soteriological and eschatological concepts.
Christian
Even though the
debt of certain Christian concepts to Second Temple Judaism has been recognized to an unprecedented degree, the Christian appropriations
still are quite distinct from the related
adaptations that persisted in rabbinic culture.
What is more,
the Christian variations inevitably color the readings of earlier sources by scholars for whom those Christian concepts are the ultimate termini.
Therefore, even where the resulting
differences of emphasis and interpretation may be only slight, the
work
of
revisiting
the
early
Jewish
sources
with
subsequent Judaism foremost in mind is not only defensible in a study culminating in related rabbinic ideas, it is quite
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
11
necessary to the onqoinq study of the earlier Jewish sources themselves. Althouqh relevant studies of Qumran sectarianism will be discussed in separate sections below, it is important to note briefly here--in this discussion of the academic trends that point toward this project--the ever increasinq association of the Dead Sea Scrolls and the Hekhalot Literature in scholarly As early as 1957,
treatments of both.
based on the few
fraqments of the Qumran "Sonqs of the Sabbath Sacrifice" (4Q
Serek
Sbirot
Olat
Hasbabbat)
then
made
public
by
John
Struqnell, Gershom Schol. . , the pioneer of Jewish mystical studies,
recoqnized
literature
and
similarities terminoloqy." 15
in
an
the
affinity
Hekhalot
phraseoloqy
and
between texts,
that
sectarian
citinq
"several
possibly
in
technical
More recently, followinq the publication by
carol Newsom of a complete critical edition of the Qumran
Sbirot, and of parallel fraqments unearthed at Masada 16 , Alan Seqal has commented: "The Anqelic Liturqy [i.e. the 4Q Sbirot text]
evinces some of the most characteristic aspects of
Jewish mysticism in an apocalyptic community of the first century"
(1990, p.40).
Joseph Bauaqarten has demonstrated
very convincinqly not only that "certain aspects of Herkabab exeqesis preserved in rabbinic [by which is meant primarily 15
Lecture• in Hew York later publi•hed a• Jewish Gnosticism, lferkabah (Hew York: 1960) p. 3.
lfysticillllt and Tabltudic Tradition, 16
S~tic
c.
Hew•oaa, Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice: A Critical Edition, Harvard
Studie• •erie• 27 (Atlanta: 1985).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
17
Hekhalot] sources serve as indispensable guidelines for the proper understanding of the Qumran
Songs
of
the
Sabbath
Sacrifice," 17 but, much more remarkably, that the opposite is also trUe.
The Shirot help elucidate certain passages of the
Hekhalot Literature
(Baumgarten,
pp.208-212).
:rt is not
surprising to see early and fragmentary texts interpreted in the light of
later and more complete traditions.
extremely noteworthy,
on the
other
hand,
when the
It is early
fragmentary texts can bring compelling clarity to previously obscure elements of a
later literature,
and that is what
Baumgarten has argued impressively that the Qumran "Angelic Liturgy" can do, texts.
on occasion, with regard to the Hekhalot
At the same time, equally convincing scholarship has
dated the composition of the Hekhalot texts themselves--at least as we have them--to a time around the end, and most probably after, the Talmudic period. 18 study
of
affinities
between the
Qumran
Baumgarten's brief and the Hekhalot
literatures calls, therefore, for an attempt to connect the dots, so to speak, through the era of the classical rabbinic literature.
Recent studies have linked the Hekhalot texts
with documents from Qumran--especially with regard to what :r
17
Joseph Baumqarten, "The Qumran Sabbath Shirot and Rabbinic Merkabah Traditions", Revue de ~an, 13, 1988, p. 200. 18
E.q. P. Schaefer 'Tradition and Redaction in Bekhalot Literature•, Journal of Studies in Judai.m 14, (1983), pp. 172-181 and David J. Halperin, The Faces of the Chariot: Early .Tavish Responses to Bzeltiel's Vision (Tubinqen: 1988).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
18
would call their ontology of angelic and human existence. 19 This
has
however,
happened,
without
there
being
a
comprehensive study on the pertinent ideas in the classical agadic literature, which falls chronologically between the two more esoteric corpora, literature. 20
Qumran's
library and the Hekhalot
This study should fill that gap, although it
will not be limited to the aim of producing a missing link, and it will not be limited to those ideas that are especially important to the Hekhalot literature.
The aim here is to
understand the classical agadic traditions of angelic Israel themselves, continuity
whatever between
these Second
sources Temple
may and
also
say
Hekhalot
about ideas.
Finally, among the academic trends that lead toward this project, I should cite the general, attitudinal move away from rationalistic apologies for rabbinic and other literature toward what David Daube has called, "greater tolerance for the supernatural."
Concerning early Jewish scholarship that is
relevant to the theme of angels in rabbinic literature, Daube has commented, The progressives who ••• set out to make the storehouse of Midrash and Talmud accessible to the uninitiated so its input could be qrasped felt apologetic (and fearful too) about antiquated
19
To the sources listed in note 4, above, I would add Dale Allison Jr. Silence of the Angela, reflections on the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice• Revue de Qumran 13 (1988) pp. 189-197, especially p. 196. ~The
° C.R.A. Morray-Jones, 'Transformational Mysticism in the ApocalypticKerkabah Tradition~ JJS 43, 1992, pp. 1-31 has come closest to doing so, as I will discuss below. 2
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
19
notions and mores among their forbears--hence tended to play them down both for their own satisfaction and for their public's. (Daube, p.497) Even in some more recent scholarship focussed upon classical rabbinic sources (notably that of •l•ischer, Halperin, and Kaaher), there has been a marked tendency to relegate the most remarkable
statements
and
practices
suggesting
human
association with angels (and even some more commonplace ones) to an alleged fringe outside the religious mainstream of the rabbinic elite. 21
That inclination is related to a grave
misapprehension regarding angelic anthropology in rabbinic literature--a belief that it must be a radical and exceptional phenomenon, off the beaten track that leads to modern Jewish orthodoxy (which is far too often taken as the yardstick of normativity) •
However, as Fletcher-Louis has written very
recently with regard to the Second Temple period, there is no reason to assume that belief in an angelomorphic humanity was particularly esoteric or sectarian. Though perhaps frowned upon by Sadducees, an angelomorphic humanity, at least in its particular focus on specific individuals, is grounded in the Biblical text itself, and would thus be common to most second Temple Judaisms. Yet there are indications that particular groups, such as the Essenes, could intensify the belief in an angelomorphic life in accordance with their own particular group identity. (1997, p.212) This study will show that a conceptual association of human and angelic life continued onward as an essential component of 21
E.g. Ezra Flei•cher in •The Qeduaha of the Amida (and other Qedushot): Hi•torical, Liturgical and Ideological A•pect•• (Hebrew), Tarbiz LXVII, 3, (April-June 1998) Engli•h Ab•tract, p. VIJ P. Schafer, Rivalieae zwischen Bngel und Kenschen (Tubingen: 1988) p. 2331 Halperin, p. 450.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
20
rabbinic piety.
At the same time, it seems clear that the
various "intensifications" mentioned by Fletcher-Louis did serve as warninqs, especially to the earliest rabbis, of the radicalizinq and factionalizinq power of the idea of anqelic humanity,
and thus
rabbinic
inspired some voices within the early
tradition
to
siqnificant
mitiqations
and
modifications of the theme.
Scholarship on Angelic Th. .es in Rabbinic Literature Any study of anqelic themes (as well as virtually all themes) in rabbinic literature must take into account Ephraim Urbach's epoch-makinq synopsis of rabbinic self-expression, 'l'he
Sages:
'l'heir
Concepts
and
Beliefs'.-2 ,
somethinq to add to Urbach's picture.
and
must
have
The relevant chapters
of Urbach's work for the present study are those on "The Celestial Retinue" (1995: pp.135-183) and on "Man" (pp.214254). With
reqard
to
"The
Celestial
Retinue,"
Urbach
is
primarily concerned with the rabbinic treatment of biblical sources.
As are all of Urbach's chapters, this one is an
encyclopedic concatenation of selected dicta arranqed around broad theoloqical principles, althouqh sometimes sources are juxtaposed so as to demonstrate a varieqation of rabbinic
aa Urbach,. E, 2'1Je Sage•: Their Concepe• and Beliefs, tran•., (Cambridge: 1995, Fourth Printing).
:I•rael Abraham•
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
21
The theoloqical principles featured in Urbach's
opinion.
chapter that are most relevant to this study are "[God's] preference (p.lSO),
for
the
people
of
Israel
[over
the
angels] "
(which is also a focus of Peter Schaefer's work, to
be discussed below) , and the related rabbinic contentions that "the righteous [are] greater than the angels" (pp.lS0-158), and that "the fulfil1ment and observance of the Torah ••• are prerequisites of this eminence as of every other position of distinction" (p.l58).
Also important is Urbach's brief survey
of evidence for the belief that "everywhere angels accompany man and guard him" (p.l59). While there is no doubting the usefulness of Urbach's chapter as a basic guide to the roles of angels in rabbinic literature, its triple aim of being brief, representative, and comparative, is at times dizzying and naturally tends toward excluding or giving very short shrift to sources not deemed to reflect major rabbinic ideas.
It also tends sometimes toward
reducing complicatedly nuanced sources to simple illustrations of cardinal beliefs, skimming over subtler aims. The chapter of Urbach's work that is closest to this study's project is his chapter on "Man".
Here,
Urbach's
conclusion accords with this work's to some degree.
Urbach's
analysis is framed, aptly and poignantly, with the assertion that in addition to Biblical information, the views of the Sages concerning man. • • result from the contemplation of human existence, with all the contradictions that manifest themselves in man's character and actions, and in particular they
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
22
flow from a consideration of the paradox in man, in whom there is, on the one hand, existence and beinq, and on the other, nothinqness and void. (p.217) In the terms of Tanaitic traditions concerninq man's cominq into beinq at the end of the world's creation (Avot 3, 14, Tosefta Sanhedrin 8,4-5 and parallels)
Urbach puts it this
way: "On the one hand (man] is stamped with the seal of the Holy One, blessed be He, and on the other a qnat preceded him" (p.218).
One aim that this present study shares with Urbach
is to elucidate what it meant to the rabbis to be "stamped with the
seal of the Holy One,
blessed be He,"
and the
conclusion reached here will accord in the main with Urbach's-namely,
that
"man ••• holds
a
position
between the hiqher
beinqs (of heaven) and the lower creatures (of earth), but he is able wholly to exalt himself and be amonq the hiqher beinqs,
if he deserves the Torah and does the will of his
Heavenly Father" (p.221). Urbach's discussion,
in this
chapter,
of the
rabbis
"dualistic anthropoloqy" in relation to "the Stoic-Platonic views, which were prevalent in the Hellenistic world" (p. 248), and his illustration of certain differences between Tanaitic and Amoraic conceptions of the relationship of soul and body
(e.q. p.224), as well as his discussion of rabbinic ideas of human pre-existence (pp.240-241) are also important to this study's consideration of rabbinic identification of Israel with the anqels.
On the other hand, Urbach's presentation of
rabbinic anthropoloqy differs from the approach of this study
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
23
in that Urbach concentrates upon philosophical rather than experiential categories.
In a way,
Urbach's use of Greek
philosophy as the chief informinq context of rabbinic ideas corresponds
to
the
similar
tendency
in
scholarship
on
Christoloqy, cited by P.G. Davis, that is now qivinq way to the
recoqnition of
influential Jewish precedents.
While
Hellenistic philosophy should not be entirely discounted as an influence, the present study is primarily concerned with the influence of earlier Jewish ideas on later Jewish tradition. When the continuity of earlier Jewish thouqht with the aqadic sources is emphasized, mytholoqical and experiential themes come to the fore more than do philosophical arquments. In connection with Urbach's appreciation of the rabbinic notion of a
"paradox in man," one side of which involves
divine or anqelic identity, we should also recall I. Cheraua' discussion of what he calls the rabbinic synthesis of "world affirminq" and "world-denyinq" outlooks. 23
In the conclusion
of his study of rabbinic mysticism, Chernus writes, In discussing the midrashim ••• I suqqested that the attraction of the "world denyinq" stance may lie larqely in its ability to evoke a direct experience of "coincidentia oppositorum" while the attraction of "world affirmation" may arise from its rejection of "coincidentia oppositorum" and its consequent ability to provide meaninqful structure for the community based on the irreconcilability of opposites. The rabbis found themselves attracted in varying measure to both of these stances. (Chernus, p.140) Chernue, I «yseiciam in Rabbinic ~udaism, Studia Judaic& 11, (Berlin: 1982) pp. 139-140. 23
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
24
At the same time,
in a very important observation, Chernus
qoes on to say, the rabbis were not bound by the limited choices which the modern person may see... Rather they souqht a true harmonization of these two basic attitudes within their own lives. By inteqratinq the attractive elements of a "world denyinq" stance into their basically "world affirminq" tradition, the rabbis were able to effect what I would call the ultimate coincidence of opposites: to affirm and yet simultaneously deny the validity of "coincidentia oppositorum" as the basic truth about life. In doinq so they were able to enrich the meaninq of mysticism by qivinq it a qroundinq in everyday life. Their ecstatic states may have been in some sense fliqhts from the world, but more fundamentally they were a means to strenqthen the life of the community in this world. Ecstasy and everyday life thus constituted a sinqle continuum, rather than two mutually exclusive states. (Chernus, p.140) A related observation, and methodoloqical recommendation, is made by Fletcher-Louis in the conclusion of his work on the anqelic ideas in the historical background of Luke and Acts. In concludinq that, in the period of Christianity's emerqence, "there was a well established and siqnificant tradition, or even traditions,
in which human identity was understood in
anqelic cateqories" (1997, p.211), Fletcher-Louis arques that an approach to the data ••• which does not impose riqid dualism, but rather accepts the openness and fluidity of human, anqelic and Divine cateqories, allows for simplicity of interpretation, and does most justice to the texts' own worldview(s). (1997, p.211) This study reaches a similar conclusion with reqard to anqelic ideas as they persisted in the texts of rabbinism. Fluidity--or dual polarity--of human identity in early rabbinic piety is also the central theme of Suaaa Biditah's
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
25
writinq on "The Cosmic Adam:
Man as Mediator in Rabbinic
Literature. nz•
readinq
sources,
the
In Niditch's
of
certain
"enormous world-fillinq Adam,"
the
rabbinic primeval
antbropos of creation, whom she dubs the "world-spanner," served as a paradiqm for rabbinic self-conception.
In that
self-conception, accordinq to Niditch, Man can span two worlds; he can link the present and the future, the other-worldly and the thisworldly. He is thus the Levi-Straussian intermediary who partakes of each side of a dichotomy, thereby renderinq bearable the tension between them. (p.l40) Niditch suqqests that the cosmic Adam "belonqs to a larqer symbol system which reflects the Rabbis' sense of themselves, their conflicts, and their problems--a conclusion that points toward further study. In this connection,
the four paqes that Sacha Stern
dedicates to the idea of "Israel as Anqels" in his book on
Jewish Identity in Early Rabbinic Writingszs should also be mentioned.
There, Stern observes,
In the Babylonian Talmud, the non-Jews are excluded from a number of Halakhic rulinqs on the exeqetical basis that they are not called 'man' (adam); but Israel alone are 'man'. In a later Hidrash, the nations who are called 'animal' are contrasted with rsrael who are called 'man' (adam).
z• Suaan Niditch, •The Cosmic Literature•, JJS 34, 1983, pp.137-146.
Adam:
Han
aa
Mediator
in
Rabbinic
zs Sacha Stern, .Tevi•h Ideneiey in Early RAbbinic flrieing• (Leiden: 1994) pp. 39-42.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
2' I would like to argue, however, that more than 'man', Israel are considered to be akin to anqels. (p. 39) Stern concludes his brief seqment by sayinq, Israel wear the clothes of God. They can be recognized as the sons of God, for, it is implied, they resemble Him. The holiness of the Almiqhty, of the Sbabbat, and of Israel, are all one and the same. Israel are like God, for they are masters over all the inhabitants of earth. The almiqhty Himself has called them 'God'. To conclude, rabbinic sources suqqest that althouqh the title of "man" is restricted to Israel, in some sense Israel transcend the level of humanity, and have some affinity with the anqels, and even with God. (pp.41-42) Stern's brief remarks leave ample room for an investiqation of the various manifestations and details of rabbinism's anqelic anthropoloqy, of the roots of the theme in earlier sources, and of the attitudes with which the theme is taken up in classical aqadah.
To round out the list of studies that move
in directions closest to this work's, mention should be made of a very brief article in the Central Conference of American
Rabbis (CCAR) Journal (Fall 1995, pp.25-30 & notes), by Judith
1. Abr-•, entitled "The Reflexive Relationship of Hal'acbei HaSbaret
(the
ministerinq
anqels]
and
the
saqes". 26
Particularly intriquinq, and worthy of further investiqation, is Abrams'
suqqestion that the early saqes considered the
"Ministerinq Anqels" rather than some other anqelic qroup as their "corollary in heaven" precisely because the Ministerinq 26
z. Abram•, "The Reflex~ve Relat~onah~p of Mal • ache~ HaSharet (the angel•) and the Sage•", CCAR Journal (Fal.l, 1.995) pp. 25-30 (5 notes,
Jud~th
m~~stering
pp.J0-34).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
27
Angels are often presented as being in conflict with the people of Israel, "[just as] there was tension between the sages and the general population"
(Abrams, p.28).
Abrams'
work is focussed on a paradigmatic correlation on the part of the sages of themselves with the ministering angels. heavenly role of the Ministering Angels,
The
she asserts, was
conceived of as "consistent with the role of the sages played on earth."
Abrams' work does not seek after actual angelic
ontology in rabbinic self-conception, and it does not trace themes either before or beyond the talmudic texts; but it does help point the way to these questions. Abrams'
observation
that
the
relationship
of
the
Ministering Angels to Israel is characterized by "conflict" brings
us
to
the
one
recent
book-lenqth
study
devoted
specifically to an angelic theme in rabbinic literature, Peter Scba~er's
doctoral dissertation, Rivalitaet zwischen Engel und
Henschen 27 •
Schaefer's thesis is quite different from,
and
at times quite opposed, to the one that this present study advances. Schaefer observes that the election of Israel is the cardinal tenet of rabbinic theology, and he reduces angelic discussions in rabbinic literature to illustrations of that principle.
He writes,
n P. Schafer, Rivalieae zwiachen Bngel und Nenschen, (New York: 1975) Replacing umlaut with letter •e•, the •palling will be Schaefer hereinafter, except in the Bibliography.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
28
Die Erwaehlunq rsraels und das besondere Verhaeltnis zwischen Gott als dem Gott rsraels und rsrael als dem Volk Gottes stehen so sehr im Mittelpunkt der theoloqischen Reflexion, dass alle anderen "Glaubensinhalte" hinter dieser Vorstellunq zurucktreten bzw. darunter subsumiert werden. Dies qilt in qanz besonderer Weise auch fuer die Enqelvorstellunq. Die Enqel als solche sind nicht oder nur weniq Geqenstand der theoloqischen Ueberlequnq und Diskussion. Die Rabbinen haben keine Anqeloloqie entwickelt und waren daran auch nicht interessiert; desweqen waere es voelliq unanqemessen, wolte man in der rabbinischen Literatur so etwas wie eine "Lehre von den Enqeln" suchen oder diese qar aus den verstreuten Bemerkunqen der Rabbinen ueber die Enqel rekonstruieren. (1975, p.233) rn Schaefer's estimation, the only consistent and widespread theme that can be extracted from rabbinic expositions in which anqels
occur
is the assertion,
over and
over,
of God's
preference for rsrael over the denizens of heaven. Der Mensch ist Hoehepunkt und Ziel der Schoepfunq; die Enqel sind fuer die Vollendunq der Schoepfunq in der Geschichte Gottes mit rsrael nicht von Bedeutunq und ruecken an den Rand des rnteresses. (1975, p.233) FUrther,
in this theme of human supremacy, Schaefer sees a
marked disjunction of earlier Jewish
classical
rabbinic
literature
from
sources of the Second Temple Period, in which
approach and assimilation to anqelic scenes predominated. Schaefer notes, Ein Wandel des Weltbildes von der "Vorstellunq einer 'Sympateia' zwischen irdischem und himlischem Geschehen" im Fruehjudentum zu einer betonten Anthropozentrik im rabbinischen Judentum waere demnach der Grund fuer den Neuansatz in der Enqel "lehre". (1975, p.233)
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
21
Schaefer will admit that what he identifies as the main line of rabbinic thought concerninq anqels does not exhaust all the viewpoints represented in the classical corpus. Es versteht sich von selbst, dass diese Vorstellunq nicht repraesentativ ist fuer das rabbinische Judentum in seiner Gesamtheit, sondern nur fuer eine, wenn auch sehr wahrscheinlich dominierende Gruppe innerhalb des rabbinischen Judentums. (1975, p.233) On the other hand, Schaefer's approach and his conclusion-that the rabbis, for the most part, were not preoccupied with anqels at all, except to assert their superiority over the host of heaven in God's eyes--corresponds directly with, and indeed
anticipates,
his
conclusion
in
later
work
on
the
Hekhalot Literature: that the angelic and heavenly concerns of that literature are, most of all, to be differentiated and separated from the main stream of classical rabbinic piety. In Schaefer's presentation,
the paradigmatic rabbinic
narrative concerning the angels is one in which the denizens of heaven rush to the heavenly court to learn the date of the New Year, only to be referred by God to the academy of the Sages below.
For Schaefer, that aqadic tale is indicative of
a radical shift of paradiqm from the Second Temple period-"wie sehr man qerade im Blick auf die Enqelvorstellunq von einem Wandel des Weltbildes sprechen kann" (1975, p.233).
The
angels, according to this interpretation, have become a cosmic curiosity, as it were, an admittedly splendid ceremonial and decorative guard surroundinq God in heaven, but not commanding
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
30
fascination, much less aspiration, only servinq as straw-men for the arqument of rsrael's superiority. Schaefer's assertion of a Wandel., or paradiqm-shift, away from the conceivinq of a Sympateia between heaven and earth is directly opposed by Beat• Bgo's recent monoqraph, Im Himmel.
wie auL Erden: Studien zum Verhael tnis von himmlischer und irdischer Welt im rabbinischen Judentum 28 which is another book-lenqth study related in topic and in subject-matter to the present investiqation of self-identification with anqels in classical rabbinic literature and its Jewish antecedents. From
its
opening,
a
profound
difference
from
Schaefer's
argument of a rabbinic move away from Second Temple ideas of heaven is apparent in Eqo's work.
Ego frames and describes
her project in this way: rn der hier vorlieqenden Arbei t werden die rabbinischen Vorstellungen ueber das Dependenzverhaeltnis von oberer und unterer Welt, wie sie im Kontext der Motive des himmlischen Tempels und Gottesdienstes und des himmlischen Jerusalem zum Ausdruck kommen, darqestellt und auf ihre theologischen rmplikationen untersucht. (Eqo, p.1)
Eqo describes a persistinq •urbil.d-Abbild-Relation• between the heavenly realm (and in particular the heavenly sanctum and its
liturgy)
and
the
conceived by the rabbis.
"Kultusqemeinschaft"
of
rsrael
as
The Second Temple conception of that
28
Ego, Beata. Ia BU..l vi.e auL Brden: seudi.en zua Verhael en.is von hi.Jial.i.scher IU1d i.rdi.•cher llele iA rabbi.ni.•chen Judene11111, WONT 2.34, (Tub.ingen: 1989).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
31
relationship of heaven and earth--and of those realms' anqelic and Israelite denizens--is described as follows: Das ant ike Symbolverstaendniss, auf der Indentitaet von Bild und Sache basiert, resultiert aus der Vorstellunq, dass Tempel und Gottesdienst einem himmlischen Vorbild entsprechen, auch das Motiv einer Kultusqemeinschaft von Enqeln und Menschen. Der Priester im irdischen Hiliqtum befindet sich qleichzeitiq im oberen Heiliqtum und steht mit dem himmlischen Hohenpriester in kultischer Gemeinschaft; Israel verkuendiqt zusammen mit Den enqeln das allumfassende Koeniqtum des Weltscheoepfers und die Heiliqkeit und Ehre qottes. (Eqo, p • .l70) Eqo's work establishes convincinqly the continued prominence of this Temple-paradiqm in rabbinic literature, a continuity with Second Temple Judaism that has important implications for the conceivinq of rabbinic Jewish identity. for
all
At the same time,
that Eqo takes stock of Jewish Late Antiquity's
assimilation of Bild to Sache, her particular focus on Templephenomena leaves ample room for a
study of anqelic self-
perception that involves a broader ranqe of sources and in which
identity and self-conception as phenomena take the
foreqround. Two
shorter,
but source-rich and hiqhly
influential
articles have been written recently about the possibility for the riqhteous of transformation Jewish
sources.
The
first
of
into celestial beinqs these,
whose
focus
in is
eschatoloqy, is W.F. 8aa1ik's •on Mystical Transformation of the Riqhteous into Liqht in Judaism;" 29 the second is C.R.A.
29
Smelik, 1995, PP• 122-144.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
32
Morray-Jon••' "Transformational Mysticism in the Apocalyptic-
Merkabah Tradition. " 30 Saelik opens his discussion of rabbinic apotheosis with the following conclusion concerning Second Temple Judaism: According to early Jewish interpretation of the intertestamental age the righteous awaited a mystical transformation into light in the hereafter. This particular concept of what may be termed the apotheosis of the righteous is shared by Paul in his letters to the Corinthians and by the Apostolic Fathers. (p.l22) He argues that "vestiges of the mystical interpretation are still to be found in rabbinic literature" (p.l23), although he perceives a "rabbinic reluctance to articulate the concept of mystical transformation itself"
(p.l23).
After succinctly
documenting "the remarkable boom of angeloloqy in the last prechristian centuries"
(p.l25ff),
he argues that "in the
first centuries C.E. the Sages went against this tide" in that "they did not deny the existence of angels and a blissful hereafter, but they restrained excessive expectations in this respect" (p.l27.).
As a reason for this opposition to intense
angeloloqy, Smelik cites the factionalism and radicalism of the time of Christianity's emergence and suggests that "within this
climate the apotheosis
of
the
righteous
had
become
suspect" (p.l27). There is room to argue with Smelik's conclusion that in the early Tanaitic period "such traditions [of apotheosis]
3
° Korray-Jone•,
1992, pp. 1-31.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
33
were
no
lonqer
Judaism."
reqarded
as
compatible
with
R. Akiba does indeed silence R.
(rabbinic)
Papas when the
latter embarks upon an identification of Israel with the anqels,
as Smelik cites;
but R.
Akiba himself is closely
associated by widespread tradition in rabbinic literature with the practice of ascent,
and even with the
aqqrandizement of Bar Kochba.
preternatural
A tradition may become esoteric
and hiqhly quarded without beinq done away with altoqether, as the Mishnah's own restriction, but not complete prohibition, of the teachinq of Haaseh Herkabah suqqests. end-result
of
sayinq so
is
almost
the
Nonetheless, the same
as
Smelik's
conclusion, for he suqqests that the early rabbis were not successful in suppressinq the anqeloloqy of the Second Temple period ("Rejected traditions often went underqround only to emerqe aqain as soon as circumstances chanqed") and that the saqes
exercised only
"half-hearted self-censorinq,"
which
"may ••• explain why some works appear to adopt conflictinq attitudes towards the question of mystical transformation" (pp.l27-128).
Smelik is concerned with locatinq the vestiqes
of the Second Temple anqelic ideas that survived rabbinic self-censorship restrictions.
and
which
echo
in
rabbinic
cautions
and
In particular, Smelik traces the theme of "the
sevenfold shininq of the riqhteous"
whose persistence in
rabbinic literature indicates a continuity with Second Temple ideology.
Nonetheless, Smelik's work emphasizes the closinq-
down of such tradition whereas the present study is focused
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
upon its preservation, albeit siqnificantly transformed and mitiqated.
Smelik concludes,
The apotheosis of the faithful to the Glory of God as anqels of liqht, found in the New Testament and intertestamental literature alike, cannot have been unknown to the Saqes. It may even have been shared by them initially until it had to be suppressed to counter heretics who stuck to the liqht-mysticism which entailed the danqer of veneration of anqelic beinqs visibly represented by the stars. (p.l44) Accordinq to xorray-Jon••, whose view is closer to the arqument
of
this
study,
the
suppression
of
themes
of
anqeloloqy and apotheosis in rabbinic society was far from complete, and that by desiqn, at least on the part of some early rabbis.
In his University of Cambridqe dissertation,
Morray-Jones arqued "contra Urbach, Schaefer, and Halperin31 , in favor of a modified version of the hypothesis advanced by Scholem
and
developed
by
Gruenwald
that
the
talmudic
references to ma'aseb merkabah indicate the existence of an esoteric tradition or traditions within first- and secondcentury
rabbinism. " 32
In
the
article
presently
discussion, he arques: Such traditions were inherited from apocalyptic circles and enthusiastically developed by some Tanaim, but were opposed by others, mainly because the same traditions were beinq developed by qroups whom they reqarded as heretical, includinq various forms of Christianity and Gnosticism. (1992, p.l)
n
(who•• work I will di.•cu•• below)
32
c.R.A. Morray-Jane•, 1988.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
under
35
With reqard to the primary anqelic mediatinq fiqure that features prominently in both Apocalyptic and later Hekhalot traditions, Morray-Jones concludes, there is evidence to suqqest that the rabbis were concerned to quard aqainst an early and widespread tradition of the Name-bearinq anqel who was intimately associated, and sometimes identified, with the Name-Word-Glory-Power of the LORD. It seems that they countered this threat, if not by outriqht suppression, by siqnificantly downqradinq the status and importance of Metatron (as this anqel came to be called) , but that the early tradition was preserved and developed in esoteric circles. 3 Enoch's statement that Metatron used to sit upon a throne but was 'demoted' because of 'Aher's heresy may well be, in this sense, historically correct. (1992, p.10) That early rabbinic condemnations of heresy often have to do with "the identity and status of a human fiqure in heaven," was demonstrated in detail by Alan saqal. 33
Morray-Jones'
work affirms that conclusion and suqqests that what made speculation on fiqure
so
the
primary,
fascinatinq
to the
hypostatic rabbis
anqelic
mediatinq
nonetheless was
the
associated possibility that a human beinq miqht become, or be assimilated to that fiqure throuqh a process exemplified by Enoch
in
apocalyptic
tradition.
The
pediqree
possibility has also been addressed by Seqal,
of
that
who writes:
"There is adequate evidence that many Jewish mystics and apocalypticists sensed a relationship between the heavenly f iqure on the throne and important f iqures in the life of their community" (1990, p.51). 33
In Paul's Christian adaptation
Alan Segal, f'vo Power• in Beaven: Christianity and Gno•tici- (Leiden: 1977) •
Bar~y
Rabbinic Report• about
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
3'
of apocalyptic tradition, Segal has found affirmation that one of absorption. 34
this relationship was
In the apocalyptic conception, as described by MorrayJones, an exceptionally righteous man who beholds the vision of the divine Jcabod on the Merkabah, is transformed into an angelic being and enthroned as celestial vice-regent, thereby becoming identified with the Name-bearing angel who either is or is closely associated with the Jcabod itself and functions as a second, intermediary power in heaven. (1992, pp.10-11) "It is hardly surprising," he remarks, "that some rabbis were ambivalent about such traditions" (1992, p.11). contribution
to
the study
of
the
rabbinic
Morray-Jones' period
itself
consists in demonstrating the extent to which such traditions persisted
alongside
condemnations.
(and He
sometimes
argues
that
through) the
warnings
and
tradition
of
transformation, absorbed into rabbinic culture in more and less mitigated
forms,
is
continuous with
the
account of
Enoch's transformation in the later Hekhalot text known as 3 Enoch,
which "(although] the redactor is careful to avoid
taking the final, heretical step ••• seems to be a theologically sanitized version of a ascending hero becomes
tradition according to which identified with the Jcabod"
the
(1992,
p.11). Rabbinic traditions concerning the celestial grandeur of Moses (1992, p.13) and Adam (1992, p.16), according to Morray
34
Segal, 1995, pp. 95-122.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
37
Jones, also model the experience of human transformation in a paradigmatic
and
representational
manner.
Having
cited
sources reflecting those traditions, Morray-Jones opines: There are, then, good grounds for believing that some first- and second-century rabbis attempted to suppress an early tradition of the ascent into heaven of an exceptionally righteous man or men who received the divine Name and became in some way associated or identified with the Angel of the LORD, or the Form of God as enthroned Logos-PowerGlory, but that this tradition was kept alive in esoteric circles. (1992, p.14) "This is, presumably," Morray-Jones suggests, "what Paul has in mind when he speaks of 'glorification'" (1992, p.18). In the remainder of his study, Morray-Jones traces the intensification of this theme in the Hekhalot literature, through close examination of which, he concludes: It seems that the mystic is identifying himself with the Merkabah and asking God to be enthroned upon or within him. In other words, he is seeking to become, like the patriarchs and righteous men of mythical history, a vehicle for the manifestation of the divine Image or Glory. (1992, p.26) With regard to the experience of the pre-Hekhalot rabbis themselves, clear.
however,
Morray-Jones'
conclusions are not as
His establishing of continuity between apocalyptic
sources and radical post-talmudic traditions comes at some expense to taking stock of what this study will argue was a remarkably successful absorption and moderation of the theme of human celestial identity in classical rabbinic thought. When Morray-Jones pauses briefly to provide a snapshot, so
to
speak,
of
actual
rabbinic
mystical
piety
formative period, it goes like this:
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
in
its
38
••• the idea was current that exceptionally worthy human beings or 'men of righteousness' were able to achieve a transformation into the likeness of the divine Glory which was analogous to that ascribed to the heroes of the heavenly-ascent narratives and to the righteous in the world to come. Such men, i t appears, were believed to be gifted with supernatural powers and to function as mediators and intercessors between the earthly community and the realm of God. (1992, p.20) But evidence of intercession clearly connected with ascent and transformation is not a clear feature of classical agadic literature, and the single example of the sage Hanina b. Dosa that Morray-Jones suggests (1992, p.20) is not a particularly compelling one.
While Morray-Jones makes a good case for a
rabbinic effort to
both own and mitigate the
concept of
assimilation to the highest angelic status, he does not make clear
how
such a
religion proper. the kabod?
belief
actually
functioned
in
rabbinic
What does one do when (and if) one has been
How (if at all) does one come down, as it were,
from that (or even a somewhat lesser) realization of divine identity, and what then? This study agrees with Morray-Jones' assertion that there is real continuity between Second Temple angelic concepts and much
later
leaders
Hekhalot
knew
of
and
traditions, in
some
and
that
instances
radically mystical kind of apotheosis.
early
even
rabbinic
practiced a
However, this present
work will seek to appreciate in greater nuance and detail the mitiqation of such beliefs and practices into a less hazardous (although equally powerful and otologically serious) angelic anthropology in classical rabbinic literature.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Of course we
31
will also pay attention to the more radical aspirations that evidently persisted as well.
X. Wiabb&Da's article on "The 'Measures' of God's Glory in ancient Midrash," also blazes an important trail into the territory investiqated here. particular upon a
That article is
midrashic passaqe
focused in
in Sifre Deuteronomy
(Pisqa 355) which likens Israel to God, but also points toward the hazard of dwellinq upon (or in) that likeness: "There is none like the God of Jeshurun [ ein ka'el yesburun]" (Deut.33:27) Israel says, 'There is none like God [ein ka'el],' and the Holy Spirit says 'Jeshurun [is] God [el yesburun]' [some editions correct to 'Like God is Jeshurun [ka'el yesburun]'. Israel says, 'Who is like you amonq the Gods o Lord,' and the Holy spirit says 'Happy are you o Israel, who is like you?' [
... ]
All of Israel qathered around Moses and said to him, 'Moses, tell us what is the aspect [midah, which can also mean 'measure'] of the supernal Glory (like) [mah hi midat kavod sbel maalah]? He said to them, 'From the ones below you may know what the supernal aspect is (like). [Your question] may be likened to one who said, 'I wish to see the face of the kinq!' They said to him, 'Enter the country, and you shall see.' He [approached] the country and he saw a screen spread forth across the entrance to the country and qoodly stones and jewels fixed upon it. Immediately he fell to his the earth. They said to him, 'See, you did not even manaqe to move your eyes without fallinq down; had you entered the country itself and seen the face of the kinq, how the much more so ••• Fishbane associates this tradition with Avot Derabbi Natan 37 in which it is said that "seven aspects [middot] serve before the Glory."
(p.66)
"There can be little doubt," Fishbane
writes, "that these middot, which serve before the Throne of God's kabbod, are archanqelic beinqs of the pleroma," {p.67)
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
40
and through this observation he places the Sifre and its supernal midah in one family tree with the Christian concept of "becoming a perfect man and attaining the measure [metron] of the stature of the fullness of Christ" in Ephesians 4. this "stature" is related to the physical body of Christ ••• the teacher's theological and terminological equivalent for the measure (or extent) of the divine Anthropos in Jewish sources-the middat kabod in Sifre Deuteronomy 355. On this view, Eph. 4:7-16 presents Christ as the supernal Anthropos in the image of the invisible God", so that perfected faith in and knowledge of this heavenly figure lead to some sort of mystical relationship to the divine figure on high. (p.71) Based on this association, Fishbane concludes that "the sages shaped [the] cautionary instruction (in Sifre Deut. 355] with technical terms known to them from the theosophical-mystical tradition" (p.73). Clearly this present study is not without precedent. Affinity between the rabbinic world and the heavens has been noted
with
various
emphases
by
a
especially in the most recent years. much to be done. fall within a
number
of
scholars,
Still, there remains
Even though most of the studies cited here
trend toward recognizing the importance of
angelic categories in rabbinic thought, the multifariousness, in focus and in aim, of the existing treatments is itself a justification for a
comprehensive analysis with classical
rabbinic literature itself in the foreground.
There is still
a place--and even a conspicuously empty one--for a book-length study on self-identification with angels in classical rabbinic
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
41
literature and its Jewish antecedents, undertaken by a student of the rabbinic tradition itself.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
42
Chapter One
UGBLXC IIUIIUXTY AT QUIIRD
the BVi4eDce of the Dea4 sea scrolls BeyoD4 the Songs oL tile Sabbatb SacriLice
Introduction The sectarian community that inhabited the site now known as Khirbet Qumran from shortly after the Hasmonean uprising until shortly before the destruction of the Jerusalem Temple seems to have been (or, at least, to have become) a society founded upon the idea that certain human beings might realize somethinq like angelic identity in their earthly lives.
The
sectarians of Qumran believed themselves to be living in, or on the verqe of
c,n,~
n,1ITM, the end of days.
Already at the
time of the sect's foundation--apparently by a faction of the temple priesthood, victory of
alienated in the wake of the Hasmonean
165 BCE35 --the leadership of Qumran claimed to
recoqnize certain siqns of the eschaton' s
inception.
The
texts presented in this chapter show that the life and selfconception of the sect were shaped by this central belief in the eschaton's arrival. of
the
eschaton's
For the sectarians of Qumran the idea
advent
entailed
a
dissolution
of
the
35 Among theoriea of the aect•a origin, I find thia conclusion, aa set forth moat axtenaively by Lawrence Schiffman, (e.g. in Reclaiming the Dead Sea Scrolls (New York: 1994)) moat compelling.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
43
boundaries between heaven and earth, and between human beinqs and the anqels.
The final triumph of the end of days was to
brinq a world-alterinq transposition of God's celestial court and
sanctuary
sectarians
into the
earthly realm.
contemplated,
rehearsed,
Accordinqly,
and
even
the
beqan
to
experience the anqelic identities and roles that they believed the
elect
of
Israelite
humankind
was
to
assume
in
the
transformed cosmos to come. The
anqelification,
so
to
speak,
of
the
sectarian
community appears in many Qumran documents as a fait accompli, a reality already determined, manifest, and experienced--not just a future reward to be contemplated. chosen,
earthly
elect
to
the
The joininq of the
supernal,
anqelic
host
is
frequently described in the scrolls of Qumran as already actual;
yet the
final
triumph
eschaton had still to occur. experienced liminal,
by the devout
transitional,
even
and
transformation of
the
Correspondinqly, the identity of
Qumran
seems
paradoxical.
to The
have
been
Qumranites
qloried in a preternatural destiny shared with the anqels of heaven.
Nevertheless, they were excruciatinqly coqnizant of
the limitations and pitfalls of human,
fleshly existence.
Much of the life of the sect apparently was shaped to rehearse and describe
the eschatoloqical
vision that
its
members
contemplated, and thus, at least imaqinatively, to realize and experience that vision.
The sect's requlations concerninq
ritual purity and proper conduct evidence an enterprise of
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
44
minimizing and imaginally transcending earthly limitations; but
equally
they
testify
that
those
experienced as actual impediments. literature,
the
aggrandizement
most
and
were
Quite often, in Qumran's
wondrous
realized
limitations
statements
angelic
status
of
appear
selfright
alongside passages of the most profound self-abasement and abject admission to the iniquities and impurities that the sectarians believed were inherent in earthly, human existence. The
sect's
distinctive,
eschatological
account for this frequently apparent paradox.
outlook
must
If, as Lawrence
Schiffman has written, the sect lived, "with one foot, as it were, in the present age, and one foot in the future age," 36 then the self-conception, and arquably the self-experience, of the sectarian spanned a corresponding dichotomy.
on the one
hand--to borrow from the language of the documents themselves-the sectarian belonged to the "assembly of worms and of those who walk in darkness," (1QS, XI, 10), and on the other hand he experienced his community as already united "to the sons of the heavens" (e.g. 1QS, XI, 8), and himself as being "in one lot" with God's celestial elect (e.g. 4Q181, 1, II, 3-6). Most of what has been written concerning the affinity of the Qumran sectarians and the angels has been in connection with the so-called n:1Uli1 n'21D n11,Ul 110, Sabbath
Sacrifice.
This
is
a
or Songs or the
sequence of
compositions,
36
Lawrence Schiffman, "Coalllunal Neala at Qumran," Revue de Qumran 10 (1979), p. 45, and ~he B•chatological Ca..unity of the Dead sea Scroll•, SBL Monograph Seriea #38, 1989, p. 7.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
45
involvinq detailed imaqininqs of the celestial service of anqelic
worship
on
the
first
thirteen
sabbaths
of
calendar, alonq with exhortations to communal worship.
the The
text bears remarkable similarities in content and in style to the much later Hekahlot literature, and it is certainly an offshoot
of
intertestamental,
apocalyptic
speculation. 37
Fraqments of this text have been unearthed at Masada as well as at Qumran, yet the distinctive idiom of the text leaves little doubt of an oriqin at Qumran. In view of the many and varied texts amonq the Dead Sea Scrolls that present visions of anqelic Israel, there is no scientific reason for the Songs
o~
the Sabbath
Sacri~ice
to
take center staqe in an investiqation of our theme in Qumran's library.
on the other hand, a review of pertinent scholarly
opinion must center upon this one text. Sea
Scrolls-scholarship,
more
than
The history of Dead the
content
of
the
sectarian library, has led to a situation in which the Songs o~
the Sabbath
Sacri~ice
fiqure so prominently in discussions
of anqelic themes and self-conception at Qumran. By explorinq the theme of self-identification with anqels throuqhout the Dead Sea Scrolls, this present chapter should help to contextualize the Songs within the library of Qumran.
o~
the Sabbath
sacri~ice
In this way, the work here will
37
Alan Segal ha• c01111118ntecl: •The Angelic Liturgy [i.e. the 4Q Shiroe text) evince• •ame of the mo•t characteri•ti.c a•pect• of Jewish mysticism in an apocalyptic community of the fir•t century• (1990, p.40). More •cholarship on thi• connection will be quoted below.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
"'
hopefully qo some distance toward elucidatinq some of the mysteries of the Qumran community that have hitherto been discussed almost exclusively in connection with one enigmatic and
fraqmentary
text.
The
new
availability
to
qeneral
scholarship of virtually all the material discovered to date at
Qumran
affords
an
unprecedented
opportunity
for
a
comprehensive exposition on the place of anqeloloqy in the self-conception of the Qumran sect.
This work is an essential
precursor to the project of investiqatinq self-identification with anqels in classical rabbinic sources. at
lenqth
and
in detail,
provides
the
most
coherent
textual
because Qumran,
extensive, record
It belonqs here,
of
varieqated, the
ways
it turns
out,
explicit,
and
in
which
self-
identification with anqels could operate and find expression in Jewish identity and community in the pre-rabbinic Jewish world of Late Antiquity. The project of this chapter is certainly not without precedent.
As Crispin H. T. Fletcher-Louis writes,
It has lonq been recoqnized that the Qumran sectarians experienced a close communion with the anqelic realm. This is manifest across a wide spread of DSS texts. In the Hodayot, the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice ••• and various other texts we learn of a community whose members have been raised from the depths of human existence to the heavenly heiqhts. They have the lot of the anqels and an experience of eternal life, new creation, subsequent to the forqiveness of sins. 38
38
Pletcher-Loui•, 1997, p. 184.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
47
Devorah Dimant's recent essay, "Men As Angels: The Self-Image of the Qumran Community" 39 provides a
learned and concise
synopsis of much that this chapter will reveal in depth, although the conclusion here will be different in crucial nuances from Dimant's.
Most of the scholarly articles on the
Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice advance some theory of Qurman' s
angelic ideology, and a qreat many other Qumran studies touch upon the importance of the angels to the sect.
What is more,
the text of the Songs of the Sabbath sacrifice itself has been thoroughly analyzed by its present-day editors, their analyses have subsequently been debated,
and no lesser scholars of
Jewish mysticism than Gershom Scholem in his time and Elliot Wolfson in ours have made preliminary comments on the relation of the songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice to later Jewish mystical traditions. 40
Still, there is room, and even a great need,
for a comprehensive study of the place of angelology in the self-conception of the Qurman sect throughout its literature, and this attempt at that task will also revisit the way in which the possibility of mystical experience in the religion of Qumran should be conceived and understood. In brief, these are the conclusions that this chapter will reach:
39
First of all, the mystical paradigms of early
Dimant, 1996, pp. 93-103.
40
Gerehom Schol. ., Lecture• in Mew York published •• Jewish GnoaeiciSIII, lferlcabah lfy•eici.,. .nd f"al.laudic rradieion, (Mew York: 1960) p. 3~ Elliot Wolfson, •Mysticism and the Poetic-Liturqical Compoeitiona from Qumran: A Reeponse to Bilhah Nitzan,• JQR 85 (1994), pp. 185-202.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
48
Apocalyptic and later Herkabah traditions--both of which are focussed upon the elevation or translation of a hero, so to speak,
into
the
transformation--do
heavenly not
quite
world
and
match
the
his
concomitant
character of
the
sustained and pervasive anqelic self-descriptions in evidence at Qumran.
On the other hand, if we consistently recall that
the sect believed that the heavenly world itself was in an eschatoloqical process of becominq manifest upon the earth, then we can much more readily comprehend the way in which the sectarians of Qumran, as the self-styled earthly anqels of the eschaton, idealized and experienced themselves. Further, the place in Qumran's reliqion of the Songs of
the
Sabbath
Sacrifice,
and
of
other
texts
that
suqqest
concepts of anqelic humanity, must be thouqht of in terms of the hierarchical structure of the sectarian community and the special role of its priestly leadership.
We should not seek
after only one kind of religious experience (mystical or not) associated with these texts. arose
from
and
encouraqed
The sources here most likely several
kinds
of
experience,
correspondinq to the stratification of the sectarian community and the ways in which anqelic identity was ascribed to and expected of the members of the strata. world of
the eschaton there was
to
Even in the ideal
be an
inner sanctum
inhabited by especially exalted officiants who would reflect divine light upon the many.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
"'
Finally, shifts from imperative to descriptive mode (and back), and alternations of focus between maqnificent celestial figures,
on
communities,
the on
one the
hand, other,
and
blessed
indicate
an
assemblies
or
importance
of
charismatic or dramatic example in the angelification of the Qumran community.
In short, the priestly leadership of Qumran
not only presented, but also represented to its followers the glimpse of a transformed world in which human beings were to assume the roles of angels in the true temple-court of God. In the final stage of the eschaton, as imagined at Qumran, that once heavenly temple-court,
in all its glory, was to
become manifest and established in the earth. of
the
sect
enabled
its
initiates
and
its
The leadership followers
to
envision, rehearse, and prepare for that reality.
Scbo~arsbip
on the Songs
o~
'the Sabba'tb
Sacri~ice
In 1957, on the basis of the few fragments of the songs
of the Sabbath Sacrifices then made public by John Strugnell, Gershom Scholem concluded that the document bore
"several
similarities in phraseology and possibly also in technical terminology"
to
the
Merkabah-mysticism
of
later
Jewish
tradition. 41
By 1965, when the second edition of Scholem's
Jewish Gnosticism was published, Struqnell had produced a more
41
Schol. . , Jevid Gnoaeici. . , p. 3.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
50
complete description of the material and had published two fragments, of which Scholem wrote, These fragments leave no doubt that there is a connection between the oldest Hebrew Merkabah Texts preserved in Qumran and the subsequent development of the Merkabah mysticism as preserved in the Hekhalot texts. 42 Lawrence Schiffman's pertinent article of 1982 43 also depends on Struqnell's work (and on Strugnell's table-scraps) and
reading that article provides
some
insight
into
the
frustration that inhered in Qumran scholarship before the availability of the entire corpus of discovered documents. With regard to the Qumran text, Struqnell had written this is no angelic liturgy, no visionary work where a seer hears the praise of the angels, but a Haslcil 's composition for an earthly liturgy in which the presence of the angels is in a sense invoked and in which... the Heavenly Temple is portrayed on the model of the earthly one and in some way its service is considered the pattern of what is being done below. 44 To this,
Schiffman rejoined,
"We must grant the truth of
Strugnell's statement so long as we cannot see the entire text. n4s what
42
Schiffman also remarked that "we cannot judge to
extent
[the
composition
in
question]
was
used
in
Scholem, Jewish Gnoaeicisn, p.128.
43
L. Schiffman, •1ferbvab Speculation at Qumran: the 4Q serekh Shiroe :ozae ha-Shabbae• in lfyaeica, Philoaophera, and Polieicilllla: Basaya in Jewish Ineelleceual Biaeory in Honor of Al.exllllder Al.e.tllll, Jehuda Reinhartz et.al. ed•., (North Carolina: 1982) pp. 15-47. 44
John Struqne11, •The Angelic Liturgy at Qumran--4Q Serek S.irot Olat Bas•abbat•, •uppl. to VT, VII (1959), p.320. 45
Schiffman, •1ferkavah Speculation,• p.l7.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
51
liturqical context observed that
in actual worship by the sect. " 46
the published
fraqments
He
seemed only to
be
"speculative description of the heavenly throne-chariot based on exeqesis of the relevant material in Ezekiel and other biblical traditions, " 47 and he wondered "if the text at hand does not simply describe the anqelic praise in heaven on the particular Sabbath." 48 text was visionary
Struqnell had noted that the Qumran
not of the "guided-tour" is
taken
to
see
the
variety, heavens,
in which the and
Schiffman
commented, "This may be because the visions are the result of intellectual endeavor in interpretinq the biblical material rather
than
of
a
mystical
experience." 49
Nonetheless,
Schiffman noted that "40 Serekh Shirot Olat ha-Shabbat is replete with expressions and motifs met also in the later hekhalot traditions"; and he wrote "It is apparent that there
is a lonq tradition behind the hekhalot which reaches back to material like that preserved (in the Qumran documents]." he said not only on the basis of content,
This
but also on the
basis of certain stylistic characteristics noted by Struqnell. Those included:
"frequent use of participles,
a
startlinq
paucity of verbs, and chains of nouns that frequently leave
46
Schiffman, •xerkavah Speculation,• p. 17.
47
Schiffman, •xerkavah Specul.ation, • p. 17.
48 49
Schiffman, •xerkavah Speculation,• p. 18. Schiffman, •xerkavah Speculation,• p. 19.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
52
one in doubt as to how to divide the phrases." 50
Schiffman
commented that the stranqe impression created by the syntax of these (Qumran] texts can best be understood in liqht of later hekbalot literature. The awesome nature of the throne beinq described and the effusive praise and qrandiose descriptions lent themselves to this syntactic character. 51 on the one hand, Schiffman arqued that these Qumran texts did not bespeak incubation or preparation for a mystical journey, nor did they involve maqical names.
He concluded that they
"are not intended, like the later materials, to brinq about ecstasy or mystical experience. " 52
The Sect,
accordinq to
Schiffman in 1982, was only describinq what could be known from "its vantaqe point." 53
On the other hand, Schiffman's
work allows that from their vantaqe point the sect of Qumran looked intently toward the heavens, and he calls the Qumran material
"the
containinq
earliest
mystical
known
post-biblical
speculation
reqardinq
Hebrew
text
the
divine
the Songs
of the
throne. " 54 The
complete,
critical
edition of
Sabbath Sacrifice was finally published by Carol Newsom in
50
Struqnell, "The Angelic Liturgy,• p. 342f.
51.
Schiffmanr "«erkavah Speculation,• P• 20.
52
Schiffman, "Merkavah Speculation,• P• 45.
53
Schiffman, "Merkavah Speculation,• P• 45.
54
Schiffman, "Merkavah Speculation,• P· 46 (my italica).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
53
1985. 55
The
majority
of
Newsom's
work
in
a
subsequent
article is a tracing of what she calls the "implicit exegesis" of Ezekiel and other texts in the 4Q fragments. 56
At the
same time, Newsom also makes important contributions to the discussion of the place of the Sabbath Songs in the thought and experience of the Qumran Sect and in the study of Jewish mysticism.
She writes, "Although heavenly praise is the focal
point of the Sabbath songs,
there are indications of the
communion of praise that exists between human and angelic worshipping communities. " 57
Newsom writes of similarities
between the earthly priesthood and the angels
of the
4Q
fragments, and she writes that, "If the Sabbath Shirot are indeed compositions of the Qumran community and not merely documents preserved and used by them then this fascination with the angelic priesthood can probably be judged to be an expression of a disenfranchised priestly community's attempt to clarify and reaffirm its own
identity. " 58
Elsewhere,
Newsom calls the Qumran-Shirot "quasi-mystical" and here she suggests
that
the
text
was
"employed,
not
merely
for
speculative purposes, but as the vehicle by which the human
55
New•om, 1985.
56
Carol New•om, •Kerkabah Exeqe•i• in the Qumran Shirot •, Journal of Jevi•h Studiea, 38, (Sprillq, 1987), pp.ll-30, ••P· p. 18. 57
New•om, 1987, p. 12.
58
New•om, 1987, p. 13.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
54
worshippinq community shares in the experience of heavenly praise. " 59 We have already noted Joseph Baumqarten's work, which uses elements of the Qumran Shirot and later hekhalot texts to illumine
one
another--to
good
and
credible
advantaqe. 60
Baumqarten's study also addresses the function of the Qumran texts with reqard to actual experience and the place of these texts in the study of mysticism. and Schiffman,
Baumqarten, like Struqnell
remarks on the distinctive style of Qumran
Shirot--what he calls the "numinous unarticulated syntax," 61 and he supports Newsom's contention that "they were desiqned to evoke the feelinq of beinq in the heavenly sanctuary and in the presence of the anqels. " 62
His major contribution in
this reqard is in the suqqestion that the Shirot represent a kind
of
"conqreqational
mysticism" 63
throuqh
which
the
aspirations of priestly and lay adherents of the Qumran sect were
fulfilled
inasmuch
as
they
were
"permitted
to
descriptively approach the splendors of the anqelic realm." 64
59
Neweom, 1987, p. 30.
60
Joseph Baumgarten, •The Qumran Sabbath Sh~rot,• p. 200.
61
Baumgarten, •shuot,• P· 200.
62
Baumgarten,
63
Baumgarten, •shuot, • pp. 200-201.
64
Baumgarten, •shUot,• p. 206.
•sh~rot,•
pp. 200-201.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
55
Bilhah Nitzan in her article on what she calls the "Harmonic Shirot65
and also
Mystical focuses
Characteristics" on
Celestial realm and God. "one
finds
clear
this
desire
of to
the
Qumran
approach
the
"Xn Qumran poetry," Nitzan writes,
statements
concerninq
the
reliqious
experience of communion between human beinqs and the celestial entouraqe. " 66
Further,
she arques,
"Xn cuttinq themselves
off from worship in the earthly temple and in considerinq themselves to be like pure priests, [the Qumran sectarians] claimed that their praise of God resembles that of the anqels and is in unison with them." 67
And she writes, "This manner
of approachinq God may indeed be considered mystic." 68 Nitzan separates the alleqed "mystical approach" of the Qumran Shirot into two aspects, a "celestial approach" and a "coJDDlunionist "celestial
approach" • 69
approach"
in
In
Nitzan's
Qumran's
formulation,
mysticism
consisted
the of
elevatinq the prayers of the celestial entourage above those recited by earthly beinqs. the
other
hand,
involved
The "communionist approach," on human
unison
presumably in their hiqher form of praise.
with
the
anqels,
The goal of the
65 Bilhah lfitzan, •Harmonic and Myatical Characteri.atica i.n Poeti.c and Li.turgi.cal Wri.tinga from Qumran,• JOR 85 (1994), pp. 163-183.
66
Nitzan, P• 164.
67
Ni.tzan, P• 165.
68
Nitzan, p. 165.
69
Nitzan, PP• 166-168.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
51
Shirot,
according to Nitzan is to facilitate "a spiritual
experience of communion with the celestial entourage," or, "an experience of harmony and communion between the chosen earthly and heavenly worshippers." 70
But while Nitzan contends that
communion and harmony with the angels are the goals of the Shirot, she believes that a part of their brand of mysticism is the belief that human beings cannot truly stand beside the anqels in the highest heights.
She writes, "It is clear that
human beings do not participate in the choirs of the angelic hosts, nor ascend to the heavenly sanctuaries to be close to the angelic choirs." 71
Nitzan sees this belief manifested in
humble statements in the Qumran corpus such as, "How may we be considered among them?"
and,
"How shall our priesthood be
considered in their holy habitations?" 72 Eliot Wolfson is sharply critical of Nitzan's approach and categorizations. article73
as
an
Wolfson's uses his response to Nitzan's
occasion
definition of mysticism.
to
present
his
own
specialized
In the first place, Wolfson argues
that the "celestial approach" described by Nitzan should be excluded from the province of mysticism outright, inasmuch as it is not about proximity or union but about distance and insurmountable difference. 70
N~tzan, p.168.
71
N~tzan, p.
7
In the second place, Wolfson goes
182.
a N~tzan, pp. 182-183; Cf. 4Q400, 2, 6-7.
73
Wo1faon, •Myat~c~811l and the Poet~c-L~turg~ca1 compo•~t~ona from Qumran. •
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
57
farther,
suggesting that even Nitzan's second element,
the
"communionist approach," ought to be excluded from the rubric of mysticism. Wolfson
is
critical
not
only
of
Nitzan's
talk
of
"mystical unison," but also of the paradiqm of mystical union as a defining criterion in the study of early Jewish mysticism and mysticism in general. the
study
Wolfson,
of
allegedly
The privileging of unio mystica in mystical
phenomena,
according
to
is "a tendency rooted in Neoplatonic ontology and
epistemology: contemplation of God results in a form of union whereby the soul separates from the body and returns to its ontological
source
in
the
One. " 74
The
Jewish
sources,
Wolfson writes, "beginning with apocalyptic and Qumran texts, may provide a different model, based on the 'angelification' of the human being who crosses the boundary of space and time and becomes part of the heavenly realm. " 75
But even the
experience of ascent to the heavenly realm,
according to
Wolfson, must be divided into two experiential components, only one of which he calls truly mystical. The ascent itself, characterized by a standing posture, is to be distinguished from a transformative experience which involves the assuming of a seated place in heaven.
Wolfson
writes, "In my opinion, the word 'mysticism' should be used
74
Wo1f•on, 1994, p. 186.
75
wo1f•on, 1994, p. 186.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
58
only when there is evidence for specific practices that lead to an experience of antic transformation, divine
or
anqelic. " 76
If there
i.e.,
is mysticism at
becominq Qumran,
accordinq to Wolfson, it inheres in an antic transformation implied by participation in the celestial liturqy.
In
a
1990 article, Newsom revisited the experiential siqnificance of the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice, writinq, The lanquaqe ••• is extraordinarily vivid, sensuous ••• both aurally and visually. What this does is to create and manipulate a virtual experience, the experience of beinq present in the heavenly temple and in the presence of the anqelic priests who serve there. It is, I suspect, in order to create and maintain this sense that the text avoids explicit reference to the human community after the one brief reference early in the cycle. 77 "The result," Newsom contends, "is to provide the community that recites and hears these sonqs not only with a model for their priesthood but also with an experiential validation of their leqitimacy as those permitted to share in the experience of heavenly worship." • 78
Moreover, Newsom arques that
It would be a mistake to merely as a sectarian text. reliqious problematic that Sabbath Shirot were common contemporary Judaism ••• 79
76
think of the document Certain aspects of the appear to underlie the to a wide spectrum of
Wolfaon, 1994, p. 187.
77 Carol Newaom, •se Baa Batabliahed for Bimaelf Prieata: Human and Angelic Prieathood in the Qumran Sabbath Shirot• in Schiffman ed., Archaeology and Bi•eory of ehe Dead Sea Scroll•, (1990) p.115. 78
Newaom, 1990, pp. 115-116.
79
Newaom, 1990, p. 116.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
51
At the same time--in something of an internal contradiction within her own work--Newsom argues that "the Sabbath Shirot neither replace human worship nor do they merge the human and angelic priestly communities."
Rather,
In elaborating the existence of an angelic priesthood and heavenly temple, the religious imagination constructs a realm where adequate cult is maintained. This ideal realm is made vividly present through the community's act of worship in invoking the angelic praise and describing it in sensuous and evocative language. Significantly, the Sabbath Shirot do not speak of actual coparticipation in the conduct of the cult of the heavenly temple. 80 Newsom seems to vacillate between, on the one hand, drawing and
maintaining
a
distinction,
and
insisting
upon
separateness, of angels and humans, and, on the other hand, speaking of the creation of a perceived (and in that sense, actual) experience of shared participation with the angels in their liturgy. This
vacillation
itself,
I
would
argue,
probably
approximates quite closely the experience and conflicting self-perceptions of the Qumran sectarians themselves--evident in other of their texts as well, most notably in the Hodayot, as we shall
see. 81
The Qumranites could not deny
their
80
lfew•om, 1990, p. 117.
81
lfew•om her•elf i• •en•itive to ambivalence on the part of the Qumran
••ct when ahe writea, •The centuriea long •trugqle over the proper forma of cultic wor•hip not only produced qroup• claiminq •Jmowledqe of the hidden thinqa
in which all Iarael had qone aatray (CD 3.13-14), but also anxiety that even thia knowledqe waa not wholly adequate. • (1990, p.ll7). •The problem, in it• •harpeat terma,• lfew•om continuea, •adait• of no •olution, and one cannot look to the Sabbath Shirot preci•ely aa a ••olution• to the dilemma.•
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
'0 physical humanity (and its insufficiency) even as their belief in an incipient eschaton convinced them of the actualization of their anqelic identities.
In another conflicted argument--
vacillatinq (as I would arque aqain) in consonance with the sectarians
themselves--Newsom
writes,
While the distinction between human and anqelic realms is maintained, a common experience is qenerated throuqh the power of the lanquaqe of the sonqs to invoke and make present the worship of the heavenly temple. Insofar as the liturqy is successful in creatinq the virtual experience of beinq present in the heavenly temple, it mutes the reliqious anxiety associated with the inadequacy of human worship. The experience provided by the Sabbath Shirot serves to authenticate and reward human worship while at the same time allowinq for a proleptic transcendence of its limits. 82 In her analysis of the text of the Songs of the Sabbath
sacrifice, Newsom discerned a "pyramidal," or ascendinq and descendinq structure, with a culmination in sonq 7.
In his
revisitinq of the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice,
C.R.A.
Morray-Jones 83
aqrees
eiqht
cycle describe
of
the
with
Newsom the
that
sonqs
"sacred
six
center"
throuqh of
the
heavenly sanctuary and are "characterized by a repetitious and hypnotic quality, suqqestive of an increase in intensity of devotion, " • 84
However, Morray-Jones believes that this "no
more than a preliminary crescendo" in an experiential liturqy
82
Newaom, 1990, p. 117.
83
C.R.A. Morray-Jonea, •The Temple Within: The Embodied Divine Image and ita worahip in the Dead Sea Scroll• and Other Early Jewish and Chriatian Sourcea,• SBL SemLnar Paper•, 1998, pp. 400-431. 84
Morray-Jon•• 1998, p. 411.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
11
that actually climaxes at its very end, with a vision of the enthroned, divine glory.
Morray-Jones correlates the thirteen
Sabbaths of the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice with the calendar of the Qumran sect, and concludes, Xn my opinion, it is the twelfth song, falling on the sabbath following the covenant renewal ceremony of 4QBerakbot, that forms the true climax of the liturgical cycle as a whole. This song describes the manifestation of the Glory upon the merkabab. 85 As to the experience entailed by this liturgy, Moray Jones suggests that "these songs ••• enabled the community to gain access to the heavenly temple and to join with the angelic hierarchy in its worship before the throne" "performance" contends,
of
the
this
"liturgical
sectarians
Through the Morray-Jones
cycle",
undertook
a
"ritual
journey"
consistinq of an "ascent" to the heavenly throne-room. 86 Finally, in the "revisionist" analysis of Crispin H.T. Fletcher-Louis 87 ,
the
Songs
of
the
Sabbath
Sacrifice
represent much more than a mere vision of the service of the angels in heaven, and more even than an effort to join in the worship of such superior, celestial beings.
Fletcher-Louis
arques that the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice are "a liturgy for a divine humanity 11 ,
88
85
Morray-Jonea, 1998, p. 417.
86
Morray-Jonea, 1998, p. 420.
by which he means that "much of the
87 Criapin B.T. Fletcher-Louia, '"Heavenly Aacent or Incarnational Preaence? A Reviaioniat Reading of the Song• of the Sabbath Sacri.Lice, SBL Selllinar Papers, 1998, pp.367-399.
'
88
Fletcher-Louia, 1998, p. 367.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
lanquaqe within the Songs ••• refers to the Qumran community members
who
identity. " 89
now
have
a
heavenly,
Fletcher-Louis'
angelic
and
divine
is certainly the most radical
interpretation of the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice, but it also accounts for certain peculiarities of the text.
In the
first place, Fletcher-Louis takes note of the texts's repeated calls to worship, on the part of the "Instructor" (7,Jwn), calls that are clearly directed toward angelic beings, and he comments, This "Instructor" is to call angels to worship in a way which goes far beyond OT psalmody in its details of liturgical direction (cf. e.g. Ps.148). The detail would be understandable for the conductor of a mortal choir, much less for a purely angelic one. Fletcher-Louis'
radical suggestion is that the angels who
worship in the heavens in the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifices (or
at
least
a
central
sectarians themselves.
group
of
those
angels)
are
the
He argues,
If, within the Sabbath Songs, the references to angels, elohim, elim, and so on, be allowed to refer to the sectarians themselves, then many of the liturgy's problems disappear. In the first instance, where the Songs use peculiar language for angels--language normally used of humans--this is because it is describing divine humans. These are the sectarians, who we know from other (Qumran literature] arranged themselves in military and cultic formations drawn from the OT. The Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice,
Fletcher-Louis notes,
"abound with angelic titles which are both peculiar within extant Jewish texts of the period and, in any case, much more 89
Fletcher-Louis, 1998, p. 369 (his italics).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
63
naturally used of human beings than suprahuman angels. " 90 Among the suspiciously human titles used of the angels in the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice,
Fletcher-Louis singles out
O,WM1 (heads), o,M,WJ (chieftains), and o~, '1l1
for bands of the angels, divisions), (station,
(camp),
~JTTT.J
or
Fletcher-Louis
standing notes
o~,
(priests), and,
O,J~lJ
(their bannered hosts,
or
ili19 (their gathered troops), inlln
body),
passages
and
(divisions).
nll'75Jn
elsewhere
in
the
Dead
Sea
Scrolls in which these particular designations are used of the sectarian community itself.
In addition to this peculiar use
of usually human designations for the angels in the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice,
Fletcher-Louis identifies "language
which is technical terminology in
[Qumran literature]
for
community members," singling out especially the appellation, 111 ,n,nn '71J ("all those perfect of path")
(cf.4Q403 1, I,
2) 91 and also "Oll nlJ,:l" ("a people of discernment"). 92 In addition to the terminological difficulties that would be
resolved
by
understanding
certain
of
the
angelic
participants in the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice as the sectarians themselves, Fletcher-Louis indicates another enigma of the document that would be obviated by that interpretation:
9
° Fletcher-Louis,
91
1998, p. 368.
Fletcher-Louis, 1998, p. 368-369.
92 Fletcher-Louis, 1998, p. 373. Fletcher-Louis remarks, "Newsom riqhtly recognizes that this expression bears comparison with the use of Isa.27:11--"for this is a people without discernment ( M1 i1 n 1 P ~ OD M'2) --in CD 5: 16 and lQ&• 10:19.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
,. the peculiar absence form this liturgy of the actual words spoken by the angels is readily explicable if those words were well known to the Qumran sectarians. Fletcher-Louis suggests that "the Songs are a conductor's or a lead-chorister's score.
His call for angelic worship is met
by the response of the community members themselves." 93 Fletcher-Louis'
argues that the angels of the inner,
heavenly sanctum, who are described as wearing articles of the high-priestly vestments, are to be understood as the priests of the sect itself. priestly attire service divine
As he puts it, "those clothed in high
("chiefs of those wonderfully dressed for
( ••• chiefs of the kingdom of holiness ••• ) are
(n1W~),
humans,
not suprahuman angels. "
This
reading
is
consistent with the earlier argument that the angels called to prayer at the outset of each sabbath's song are the sectarians themselves
and,
interpretation
according
also
accounts
to for
thirteenth song, of "sacrifices" and
"the
odour
of
their
Fletcher-Louis, the
(c,rr~T),
appearance,
this in
the
"offerings" (nlrrJn)
drink-offerings"
(C~,JCJ
rr,1).
Fletcher-Louis cites and seconds Daniel Falk' s contention that such terminology
could be
"only with
difficulty used
of
Fletcher-Louie' approach here ia aomewhat reminiacent of (though~ I thi.nk, more readily credible than) a theory advanced in 1988 by Dale Alliaon~ to the effect that the ~an Shirot are reticent about the actual content of the angela' aonga becauae the aectarian worahippera were moved by the liturgy to pronounce incomprehenaible utterancea--in the manner of apeaki.ng-in-tonguea--that could not (or ahould not) be aet down in writing. In both interpretations, it ie the aectariana themaelvee who are called to heavenly praiae by the Shirot. see Dale c. Allaion Jr., •The Silence of the Angel•~· pp.l89-197. 93
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
15
spiritualized, purely angelic sacrifices. " 94
What is more,
he argues, In the thirteenth Sabbath Song the focus is, very specifically, upon the high priestly garments which the Pentateuch prescribes for Aaron in Exodus 28. It is true that there is a very old tradition of giving angels a priestly characterization. It is also true that angels are frequently described wearing celestial garments. Yet, nowhere, to my knowledge, in Jewish angelology are angels--rather than angelomorphic humans--dressed in the garments of Exodus 2 8 • 95 Fletcher-Louis concurs with Moray-Jones' refutation of Newsom's
"pyramidal" reading of the Songs of the Sabbath
Sacrifice,
agreeing
that
the
progression
of
the
liturgy
reaches its zenith not in the middle segment, but at the end, with the vision of the enthroned divine glory.
What is more,
in a reading that answers to Elliot Wolfson's criterion for mystical experience, Fletcher-Louis contends that the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice portray a
the chief priestly figures
engaged in the celestial service as "embodying the glory of
94
Fletcher-Louia, 1998, p.390. Daniel Falk, Daily, Sabbath, and Feseival Prayers in the Dead Sea Scrolls, STDJ 27 (1998), Leiden, Brill, pp.lJS-6. The difficulty of which Falk writea ia aomewhat belied, however, by the later example of a frequently recurring midraah in which the angel Michael offers a sacrifice (1~1~) upon an altar in the heaven• (e.g. b.Bagigah l2b). On the other hand, Fletcher-Louia argues, •None of the texts cited by Newsom ••• offers a straightforward or compelling history-of-religions precedent for seeing the sacrificial language at thia point as purely metaphorical.• 95
Fletcher-Louia, 1998, p. 390. Aa I will discuss in the concluaion of thia chapter, Fletcher-Louia perhapa over-argues thia point. Be must know that the archangel Gabriel ia identified in Genesia Rabah with the •certain man clothed in linena• of Dan.lO, linen being aaaociated with the priestly garmenta. Fletcher-Louia cannot have it both waya. If, aa he arquea, the •high prieat•a wearing of thia clothing ia aymbolic of hia poaaeaaion of a divine, tranacendent or otherworldly identity,• then it ahould not be implauaible to find divine, transcendent or otherworldly being• ao clothed.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
on the basis of linquistic "overlap" between the descriptions of the angelic-priestly garments in the 12th Sabbath Song and Ezekiel's vision of the enthroned, divine glory, 97 and on the basis of a conceptual identification of the high priestly garments with the temple's holy of holies, Fletcher-Louis
concludes
that
the
Songs
of
the
Sabbath
Sacrifice identify certain angelified, sectarian priests, "in their heavenly garb" with the vision of the enthroned, divine glory.
"This means,"
he writes,
"that the Qumran Chief
Priests embody, in some way, that Glory and in so doing bring the cycle of the Shabbat Shirot to its ultimate climax." Through this imaginative,
sectarian identification of the
priesthood with the divine glory,
Fletcher-Louis contends,
"the priesthood gives physical and substantial tangibility to a reality which is fundamentally invisible and beyond human knowing."
Fletcher-Louis writes,
If this theology of priesthood, and its implicit anthropology, seems shocking, it should not. We have already seen how a similar pattern is present in Similitudes of Enoch, with the Enochic Son of Man described in terms of the "something that seemed like a human form" of Ezekiel 1:26 in Eth. Enoch 46:1. Both Enoch and the "one like a son of man" character in Daniel 7, to which the Similitudes are indebted, are high priestly characters. In the Similitudes the true high priest who embodies God's Glory is hidden in preexistence with God, only to be revealed in the end 96
Pletcher-Louis, 1998, p. 393.
97
Newsom herself admits that •implicitly, the analogy [between the description of the enthroned glory and the garments of the angelic priests) would extend also to the garments of Israel's high priest, who thus reflects in a more distant fashion the Glory of God.• (DJD 11, 353).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
17
times. In the Songs of the Sabbath sacrifice such an embodiment of God's Glory is a present reality, experienced by the Qumran community in its regular worship. Fletcher-Louis' work does much to establish linguistic and thematic similarities between the self-descriptions of the Qumran
sectarians
and
the
descriptions
certain
of
the
celestial praise-givers of the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice. He also demonstrates convincingly certain imaginal linkages between the appearance of the heavenly officiants
in the
innermost sanctuary and the image of the Glory toward which the heavenly worship in Ezekiel 1 is directed.
As these
heavenly officiants are imagined in priestly garb and roles, Fletcher-Louis'
contention
that
the
priesthood
at Qumran
represented or reflected to the sectarians a heavenly reality, perhaps even the divine glory itself, is also quite plausible. on the other hand, compelling as Fletcher-Louis' work is, the
Songs
of
the
Sabbath
Sacrifice
are
not
unequivocal as is his interpretation of them.
nearly
so
Especially
since we cannot know the way in which this text was used liturgically--if it was so used--there is a limit to what we can conclude from the remnants of this one text itself (much less from its most fragmentary, final segments upon which so much of Fletcher-Louis' argument rests). What we can do--what the new availability of so much of the Qumran library makes possible--is contextualize the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifices within the self-descriptions, rituals, liturgies, and other ideoloqical writings of the Qumran sect.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
,. We can search this other literature for passages that can help us to discern what it may have meant for the Qumranites to contemplate and describe in rich detail the priestly service of the heavenly, angelic temple, and what imperative calls to worship may have meant for the sect in that context. Fletcher-Louis himself has revisited the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice, and the Qumran library more broadly in a
very recent book,
Al.l
the Glory of Adam, 98
after this present study was undertaken.
published just Fletcher-Louis'
survey of the Qumran literature defends two claims:
The first
is that the Qumran community believed that "in its original, true
and
redeemed
angelic)." 99 redeemed,
state
humanity
is
divine
(and/or
The second is that "the attainment now, for the of
this
true
humanity
was
conceptually
and
experientially grounded in their 'temple' worship in which ordinary space and time, and therefore human ontology, are transcended. " 10 °
Fletcher-Louis'
first
conclusion
is
certainly true with reqard to the Qumran sect's concept of its own
faction
patrimony.
of
humanity
and
its
particular,
Israelite
It is also true, as we shall see, that the temple
and its priesthood were the cardinal focal points in Qumran's concept of anqelic Israel.
On the other hand, Fletcher-Louis'
understandinq of the role of the Temple-service in Qumran's 98
Studie• on the Text• oL ehe Deae~ oL Judah, Vol. 42 (Leiden: 2002).
99
Pletcher-Loui•, 2002, p. 476.
100
Pletcher-Loui.•, 2002, p. 476.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
ideology is that "those who enter the worship of the community experience a transfer from earth to heaven, from humanity to divinity,
and
accordinq
to
from mortality to Fletcher-Louis,
immortality." the
key
That
is,
trasformational
experience in Qumran's reliqion is one of ascent,
and the
rites and liturqies of the sect have the heavens as their qoal.
By contrast, this chapter will argue that the exalted
self-conceptions
of
Qumran's
sectarian
writers,
and
the
connection with the anqelic host that their texts express, can best
be
in
understood
terms
of
the
eschatological
transformation of the earthly realm that these sectarians believed was already underway and which they strove to hasten. The
difference
in
nuance
may
seem
small,
but
Qumran's
distinctive literature makes considerably more sense if we think not of an effort to forsake the earth for anqelic life in the heavens, but rather of an effort to realize anqelic identity in order to take part in a divine campaiqn flowinq from the heavens into the earth.
A llethodological. Not:e
The
reliqion
undoubtedly warranted
to
of
evolvinq beqin
Qumran
was
a
tradition. 101 with
a
sketch,
continuous, Therefore, composed
101
of
althouqh it
is
several
cbarle•worth, in the •General Introduction• to the tran•lation• of the •croll• that he ha• edited warn• that the Qumran document •mu•t not be pre••ed into a un~fied •y•tem,• and urge• that we •peak not of a •theology,• but of •theolog~e•• at Qumran.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
70
illustrative
quotations
from
principal
documents,
that
describes, in broad strokes, the place of angels in the selfconception of
the sect.
Following this
sketch,
we will
consider the relevant genres and texts of Qumran in turn and in more depth.
In this way, this chapter will present both a
coherent ideology of angelic identity at Qumran and also responsible treatments of the individual and unique documents that contribute to the picture.
The sect at Qumran endured
for about a century, and discrepancies in the details of its self-descriptive documents (e.g., famously, between the socalled Damascus Covenant and the Rule of the Community) and even in its various calendrical schemes, probably attest to the development of the sectarian tradition over time or even to its absorption of several factions.
Major documents and
genres must be considered individually; but the theme of selfidentification with the anqels emerges as a common denominator in a great deal of Qumran literature.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
-----------------------------------------------------------------------------71 A Sketch o& the Aogelic Comgn j the Tartua.l ,lyidenca
tv
or
Qumran:
An OVe.rvimr of
,J~n w,l~ 111~~ M79~1 1~1u ,97 7M ,nn1 1nun~ W11~ nlu7 c,7(M] 4 (In],~ 1nu ~wnn~7
nn1u7 vacat W,M 1M7[9 ,T1] 5 [ ••• ]~ 1,W1i~ CD 71ll~1 C71D ,,n7 C]7[1]D ,,n7( ••• 6 ] [ ••• 1]7 7(,]9~ 1WM 171ll ,97 7~n
[
...
In accordance with God's compassion and in accordance with His goodness and the wonder of His glory He brought close some from among the sons of the earth blank to be considered with Him in the comm[unity] 4 of celestials, to be a holy congregation standing in rank, for eternal life, and in one lot with His holy ones, ( ••. ] 5 his (wonder]ful [mysteries], each man according to his lot which He assigned to (him •.. ] 6 ( ••• ] for et(e]rn[al] life [ ... ] (4Q181 1, II, 3-6) The passage above, Creation 102 emerges
in
expresses the
from a document labeled 4QAges of
the
writinqs
central
idea
of
sectarians,
elevation to anqelic status
its of a
of
Qumran,
as
namely:
it the
predetermined Israelite
elect, above the surrounding world and the rest of humanity-even Jewish humanity--as the sole earthly community chosen by God for victory and glory in the end of days. 103
In the
deterministic ideoloqy of the sect this distinction of the conqreqation is understood as the unfoldinq of a divinely 102 Also known as the •Peaher of the Periods," a designation to be discussed below.
As D~ant (p.95) aaya, •Any inquiry into the self-understanding of the community must begin with ita fundamental theoloqical premises: first of all, the world was created by a divine will, accordinq to a preordained plan. Secondly, the sphere of human activity is marked by a deep dichotomy between two camps: the forcea of Liqht and the forces of Darkness. The two camps consist of both human and anqelic beinqa, and are led by two archanqela: the camp of Liqht is led by the Anqel of Light, and the evil camp of Darkness ia led by the angel Belial. The two realms exist in conatant atrugqle, which will come to an end with the final victory of the boats of Liqht at the Bachatoloqical Era.• 103
~an
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
72
assigned role that entails the realization of a commonality, and shared experience, with God's community on high. 104
It
is well known that the anthropology of the sect, as expressed through many of its documents,
is one of marked fatalism-("Before
determined their actions"), (4Q180,
1,
sectarian, lineage,
2).
as
a
them
4QAges of Creation
He
has
it
The communal alleqiance of the individual
in this system of belief,
and
creating
role divinely
confirms a status,
assigned,
"enqraved on
a
the
heavenly tablets," in the parlance 4QAges of Creation (4Q180, 1, 3) • 105
For the elect, the allotted status to be fulfilled
is one not only of unison but of ultimate unity with the heavenly host, as the documents examined in this chapter will attest.
The passages from the writinqs of Qumran that I
present in this overview illustrate the cardinal points of a sectarian self-identification with the angels. The fragmentary 4QAges of Creation, Pesher on the Periods)
106
(also known as the
from which we have seen lines 3-6,
presents itself as an interpretive treatise on "the aqes that God has made."
104
The account begins with "the qenerations of
For a diacuaaion of the terma n,'7M and n,Wlii1, paaaage, denoting the angela, aee Yadin (1962) pp.230-23l.
as used in this
105
Devorah Dimant (1979, p.93) notea other instances in which the verb •engrave• (i2i2n) ia uaad in connection with predeatination in the Qumran writings. 106
we ahould note that the te~ n,~i2--•agea,• or •perioda•--generally occur• in paaaagea relating to the aect'a belief• concerning creation, history, and predeatination. Cf. Devorah Dimant, •The 'Peaher on the Period• (4Ql80) and 4Q18l, Iarael Orieneal seudiea, 9, (1979), pp. 77-102, and F. Notacher, Zur rheologiachen rer.inologie der Quaran-rexte, (Bonn: 1956) pp. 167-169.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
73
Noah from Shem to Abraham" (1Q180, line 4), and speaks also of "Azazel and the angels who came to the daughters of man" (line 6) •
Consequently,
quoted above,
one might initially suspect the lines
concerning the exaltation of
certain human
beings to celestial station, of reflecting merely legend or pseudo-history--a third-person narrative of the distant past, and
not an actual
self-description.
However,
4QAges
of
Creation is also a document of pesher exegesis, which is, as
a
rule,
contemporarizing,
narratives
referential
to
rendering the
environment of the sect itself.
biblical
immediate
verses history
and and
In this particular instance
of pesher, the aim of the exegesis seems to be to explain the situation of the Qumran sect in terms of a universal, divinely determined history of intertwined human and angelic hosts. The pesher tells how God "delivered the sons of the heavens and the earth to a wicked community until its end" (4Q181, 1, 2-3), a trope which is characteristic of the sect's eschatological view of its own situation and, what is more, further
indicative
of
an
understood
commonality
between
heavenly and earthly elect communities.
Commenting on this
document,
common
J .T.
Milik
observed
that
a
denominator
through all the "ages" of the narrative is the involvement of heavenly beings in human affairs. 107
Though the fragmentary
condition of 4QAges of Creation makes absolute certainty impossible, 107
J.T.
it
~1~,
is most probable •Mi1ki-Sedek et
that
~1ki-Resa,•
the
intent
of
the
JJS 23 (1972), pp. 95-144.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
74
document is to present the sect itself as the culmination or final generation of a divinely chosen lineage distinquished by its continual association with the angels. probable that the retelling of this
It also seems
history is meant to
engender a coiUlunal self-understanding continuous with the exalted stature of the patriarchal heroes in the interpretive tradition surrounding Genesis 108 • situation of
the sect
In this way,
is cast as
the present
the culmination of
an
oriqinally heavenly and anqelic process being worked out on the earth. As the final offshoot of an elect exalted from of old, the sect itself is stationed, per its own ideology, over and against the world of evil--in particular, the evil brought into the world below through the conjugation of Azazel's minions with the daughters of men (an embellished biblical theme present especially in lEnoch, fraqments of which have also been recovered at Qumran) • 109
The present situation of
108
In the Prayer of Enosh (4QPEnoahb), linea S-12, for example, the patriarch is given •the crown of the heavens and the glory of the akiea• (n1CD o,~nw 11131 o,nw), made a prince and a ruler in all the inhabited world, and •the angel of Your peace is in hia congregation. • Fletcher-Louis (Lulce-Aces ••• p.l45) writes, •Aa the Eaaenea gain an angelic mode of existence, ao too they are promised the loat glory of Adam.• Be ainglea out lQS 4:23; lQB 17:15; CD 3:20 4Ql71 iii lf in thia connection. In thia way, he conclude&, •The attainment of an angelic or divine identity ia grounded in man•a original identity.• 109
Maxwell J. Davidson ( •Angela at Qumran: A Comparative Study of lEnoch 1-36, 72-108 and sectarian Writings from Qumran, • JSPS 11) concludes, •the members of the Qumran community did not actually compose the Enochic writings, but rather carried these previously composed documents to ~an· (p.22). In thia connection I should note the theory of J. T. Milik that a hypothetical •aook of Periods• waa canonical at Qumran and served aa a source for 4Ql81 and lEnoch•a •aook of the Watchers• (Milik, 1972). Milik'a theory ia convincingly rebutted by Ronald Buggina (•A canonical •aook of Periods at Qumran?• Revue de Qwaran 15 (1992), pp. 421-436), aa far aa the necessity of auch a document ia concerned,
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
75
the elect community reveals itself through pesher exegesis and esoteric teaching as the final stage of an ages-old struggle of angelic potencies.
The nations
(Including the rest of
Israel) round-about the sect are irredeemably evil, while the sect alone is the lot of 1ight--"7N 71lll 1WliT 71ll
~n~
N,3
c,n71D 11N7" ("for they are the lot of darkness, and the lot of God is for eternal light") as 1QM, the War Scroll, puts it ( 1QM , XII , 5 -6) 110.
The outside world is the earthly domain
of Azazel or Belial,
and the sect alone is the embattled
portion of God, protected by God's preferred angel of light or truth:
"7D,7J. i,n 11N ,JJ. 7137 11TlP
1nnN 1N7n[ .•• ]"
("The
angel of His truth ••• will rescue all the sons of light from the hand of Belial")
(4QCatena
(4Q177),
l9+12+13i+15,
12).
Those brought close to stand with God, in community with the celestials, in our opening passage from 4QAges or creation, are to be understood as the sectarians themselves, and not only the heroes of their imagined past. The members of the sect hoped and expected to act out the final cosmic triumph in their own lives, on the earth and in league
with
God's
celestial
host
of
angels. 111
The
but it is clear that the cCIIIIIlunity at Qumran consistently conceived of ita history in the episodic, apocalyptic te~• that Milik identifies. 110 4Q548 (4QVisions of Amra.), frag. 1, linea 12-13, expresses the same duality, emphasizing the opposes ultimate destinies of eternal life for the sons of light and death for the sons of darkness: •Mn~u nnnw~ M,l~l~ M,l~l ,l~ ~3 ,,M Knln~ MJWln~ M3Wlrr ,l~ ~J1• (•Thus all the sons of light go to the light, to eternal happiness and to rejoicing; and all the sons of darkness to darkness, to death.•) Also Cf. Charlesworth (1994), p.xxii. lll
Yigael Yadin, 1'.11e Scroll of the War oL the Sons oL Light Against the (OXford: 1962) especially pp.229-242.
Sons of Darkness,
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
7' predetermined epic battle is foretold in Qumran's War Scroll, which also emphasizes the unity of heavenly and earthly hosts: ~ 1 :l T:l C, JN.,n nHl:l~ 1 O,nUl:l i1~ [M] C,Wij7 :l 11 M, J 1 i1J., i1nntu 2 Wi1j7 Cll ,1,TT:l1 i1J[nnM n1il]i1'1 i1JW11j7 190]n1 i1JW11j7 11Dn:l ~J1M CM:l~ ~1J n1nw 190[1 O]il:l i1Jn1~W n,1:l1 [i1J,n]1J1:l ,iCTT1 3 i1Ji1:lJ .,1JTJ C,i7[1~ 4 c,n.,1n ,1n1n .,,J:l [ ••• ] 11'1n., c,,rr 01TT:l 1n~ i1n1rr Oll iTT, Cn1M1:l1.,1 Ci1,9.,M., i1J,1,TT[:l n1M]J~ i1j79~1 [ ll,JJ~~1] i1nrr.,n:l 5 ,, n1w1~ i1J,JN'1n [Cll1] i1J,W1ii7 [c,rr]~1J c,nw ,,,n:J cn1 i1J,o9wn :J,,:l p1M ,ni7
l For there is a multitude of holy ones in heaven and hosts of anqles in your holy dwellinq to [praise] your [truth.] And the chosen ones of the holy nation 2 you have placed for yourself amonq t[hem]. The book of the names of all their hosts is with you in your holy dwellinq, and the nub[ber of the ju]st in your qlorious dwellinq. 3 [Your] blissful mercies and the covenant of your peace you enqraved for them with the chisel of life, in order to rule[ ••• ] durinq all times eternal, 4 to muster the arm[ies] of your [ch)osen ones accordinq to its thousands and its myriads, toqether with your holy ones [and with] your anqels, to have the upper hand in the battle [and destroy] the rebels of earth in the lawsuit of your judqements while the nation of the chosen ones of heaven triumphs. (1QM, XII, 1-5)
The term "nation" (Cll) in this passaqe surely desiqnates the earthly nation of Israel (or rather its elect, the sect), but the shiftinq usaqes of "nation" in these lines also bespeak a peculiar blendinq of heavenly and earthly domains in the thouqht of the sectarians.
On the one hand, the "chosen ones
of the holy nation" (W1ij7 Oll ,,,TT:l) are stationed amonq God's celestial& (lines 1-2)--an assumption of human beinqs to the anqelic host. ones
(i1J1,TT:l
on the other hand, the armies of the chosen n1M:l~),
presumably,
aqain,
the
sectarians
themselves, triumph toqether with God's "holy ones" (i1J,Ul1ii7)
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
77
and "angels"
(i1J,JN.,ll)
against an earthly opposition
p1N)--a translation of the heavenly struggle, beings,
to earth. 112
Finally,
(,lli1
and heavenly
the victorious party is the
"nation of the chosen ones of heaven"
,,,TT~
(O,llW
Dll),
a
construction of "nation," that can best be understood in terms of a union of the styled elect community or "nation" on earth with the angelic host of heaven, to the point that heavenly and earthly constituents are virtually indistinguishable in the victory of the eschaton. The key to understanding the angelic self-conception of the Qumran
sectarians
predestined,
is
their manifest belief
that
the
ultimate combination of heavenly and earthly
hosts, of celestial and terrestrial battles, was not in the future, but already underway. from its outset,
In the ideology of the sect,
the eschaton was in the present.u 3
This
belief is explicit in the famous Halakhic Letter, or Hiksat Haaseh Torah (4QMMT), apparently a missive sent by the early
leadership of the sect to the priesthood of the Temple in Jerusalem,
quite probably around
the
time
of
initial separation and its move to Qumran. 114
the
sect's
As well as
1.12 John J. COllin• (1974, p.S2) write•, •since the di•covery of the Qwmran text•, the u•age of the te~ [kedoah~) i• no longer •o overwhe~ingly indicative of the meaning •angel•"· The u•e here, in combination with o,JM~n, doe•, however, clearly denote the angel•· I would add, however, (and hopefully thi• chapter will demon•trate) that the frequent u•e of o,w1~~ with reference to the •ect need not d~ini•h the angelic connotation of the term at all. l.l.l
See Schiffman, B•chaeologic:al. CoiiDtlniey,
p. 7.
1.14
Cf. Lawrence Schiffman, "The Place of 4QMMT in the corpu• of Qumran," Nev Per•peceive• on Qwu-an Lav and Biaeory, John Kampen and Mo•he J. Bern•tein, ed•. (Atlanta: 1996).
Reading
401111~:
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
78
listing various qrievances concerning fine points of ritual law,
the document serves as a
declaration of the sect's
independence and a manifesto of its eschatological faith. Towards its end, 4QMMT warns that some of the signs foretold of the end of days have already come to pass ~wn
19D~
~1n~w
n1~~~~1
n1~1J~
n~~n
lM~W",
("D,,,~n
lliTJMl
"and we recognize
that some of the blessings and the curses have come to pass that are written in the book of Moses" 4Q398 11-13, 3) and
days."
The eschaton having already arrived, in the view of
the Qumran sectarians, the dividing lines between heaven and earth were apparently dissolving in their minds.
The time had
come for them to realize an assigned identity and allotted destiny in common with the angelic host. The Rule of the Community (1QS), which reads as a kind of constitution for the Qumran sect 115 , elevation
of
the
sectarians
is unambiguous about the
themselves
to
a
status
of
community with the celestials: ~Mi
WlJMn
~1nCJ
1WM
~,Wln
,J,U
~~~~
11~n
~U,J~
6
C~lU
~,l~J
~n1u
nnrn1
1,un eM
~,,~l
C~,ITJ,l
C~lU nTliTM~ Clnl ~M 1IT~ 1WN~ 1CJ ilCn ill~ n~D~ CilC 1JIT C,nW ,l~ CUl C,Wli~ 8 ~11ll ~,~J p~ ~,~ en c~1u nnun~ Wil~ nJJn
ilCl iiT,
7
~1~n1
CiN
,J~n
My eyes have observed that which abides eternally: 6 wisdom that has been hidden from mankind, knowledge and prudent understanding (hidden) from the sons of man, source of justice and well of 7 1.1.5
Cf. Moahe Weinfeld, Tile Org&nizaeional Paeeern and elle Pena.L Code of elle QWU'an Sect, (Fribourg/Gottingen: 1986); J. Licht, The Rrde Scro.1.1: A Scro.1.1 froa ell• flild•rn••• of Judea--lOS, lQSa, lQSb, (Jeruaalem: 1957); and the related work of Philip a. Daviea.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
79
strength and spring of glory (hidden) from the assembly of flesh. To those whom God has selected he has given these as an everlasting possession; and he has given them an inheritance in the lot of B the holy ones, and to the sons of the heavens he unites their assembly to form a council of community and a council, a holy foundation, to form an everlasting plantation throughout all 9 ages to come. (lQS, x:r, 6-9) The community of Qumran regarded itself in angelic terms and considered its own identity as continuous with that of God's angelic minions in the world on high.
Beyond the explicit
statement of this belief, we can note, in the lines above, an emphasis upon a sapiential, or (in that limited sense) gnostic inheritance involved in the elevated status of the sect. have yet to determine whether,
We
in the sectarian ideology,
hidden knowledge is the means of transformation, or whether angelic
status,
divinely
conferred,
simply
makes
such
knowledge accessible and evident.
At this point we should
only
and
note
that exalted knowledge
angelic
status
are
concomitant--an observation we shall have occasion to make in regard to certain rabbinic sources as well. A similar theme of realizing angelic identity, along with exalted
knowledge,
psalmody of Qumran.
pervades
the
Hodayot,
the
distinctive
:In fact, the characteristic thanksgiving,
from which the Hodayot derive their scholarly designation, is very often the expression of gratitude
for
God's
having
elevated the sectarian psalmist to angelic station and to heights and glory far beyond the inherently base and earthly human condition which the speaker also considers his rightful,
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
80
or natural lot.
The following Hodayab composition represents
the paradox of lofty and lowly identities that emerge as the dichotomous poles of possibility in human sectarian) life.
(or,
at least,
Between these poles, the self-conception of
the speaker alternates back and forth: 111~N 71Mwn1 nnwn ,W9l nn,,g ,3 ,l11M n311N vacat nn1M1 1~rr 1,M7 11w,n~ n37nnM1 c71D 0117 ,Jn,7un 20 n1Ul IT111 C71D 1107 19Dn nn1~, 21 1WM7 n1~n W, M,3 M1~71 c,w11~ M~~ 22 en 1nun~ ~~,nn7 ~1 uwgn nn1nn n1rr11 en o71n 7111 w,M7 79n1 e,nw ,J~ n1n en 1rr,~ 713 11l7 n3,n1M79J 19071 nJ1 1rr,~ n3nw 77n7 nn1 23 ,n71 o,n~ 7~1n ,JM nn 1nrrn 24 1~, ,JN1 nJ,wnn en1 25 nnw1 71~1~ ,n~~,nn M,3 ,7 rr13 nn1 ,n~wrrl 7111~ e,M37IT
I thank you, Lord, for you have redeemed my soul from extinction, and from the Sheol Abaddon 20 you have lifted me up to an everlasting height, so that I can walk on a boundless plain. And I know that there is hope for he 2~ whom you fashioned from dust for an everlasting community. And the depraved spirit you have purified from great iniquity that he might stand in rank with 22 the host of the holy ones and come into community with the congregation of the sons of heaven. You cast for a man eternal destiny with the spirits of 23 knowledge, so that he might praise your name in the community of jubilation and tell your wonders before all your creations. But I, creature of 24 clay, what am I, mixed in water, and for whom am I taken, and what strength have I that have stood in the lot of evil 25 and with scoundrels in their lot? (1QH•, XI, 19-25) Although the speaker eventually recalls his own humanity and his
concomitant
iniquity,
his
elevation
to
a
status
of
commonality with the host of heaven reads as an accomplished reality at the beginning of this hodayab.
The speaker has
been redeemed (line 19), lifted up (line 20), purified (line 21), and brought into the ranks of the holy ones (lines
21-22),
so that he stands
(D,W11~ M~~)
"in community with the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
81
conqreqation of the sons of heaven" (c,nw
,l~
niD CD
iiT,~).
rt should be noted that this hodayah-composition is one of several, in columns 10-16 of lQHa, that have been suqqested as "Teacher-hymns, " representinq the unique status and experience of Qumran's foundinq leader,
its Teacher of Riqhteousness.
Reservinq judqement, for the moment, on that theory, we can say that our text both aqqrandizes its speaker and offers his experience--his realization of the "hope for be whom you have established from dust for an everlastinq community" C~lD
ilO~
many.
19Dn
~n1~,)--as
(1WN~ ~1~n
a path that miqht be shared by the
Notably, the terms used to denote the supernal host
to which the speaker has been joined are used elsewhere of the sect itself.
The terms ilO (council), iiT, (community) and
~iD
(conqreqation), often appear in reference to the sect, and even
c,Wli~ N~~.
the "host of holy ones" is suqqestive of both
anqels and the sect.
Much more tenuously, o,nw ,ll could be
interpreted--after the manner of the more frequent sobriquet, 11M
,l~
("sons of liqht"), and the appellation c,nw
,,,rr~
CD
("nation of the chosen ones of heaven"), which we have just encountered (in lQM,
xrr,
5) --as indicatinq not only "the
denizens of heaven," but also those people associated with heaven, as the sect is associated with liqbt.
rn notinq that
these terms are often used of the Qumran sect itself, should not minimize their clear, anqelic connotations. trope
of
c,n'11D,
eternity that
1~rr
pervades
the
passaqe
(e.q.
we The
C'11D,
t,N) and the settinq of the C'11D 011 ("eternal",
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
82
or "cosmic heights") certainly indicate a more than normal, earthly condition. 116
The speaker declares that his lot has
been cast among the "spirits of knowledge," so that he can participate in the praise of God, and we should note that , TTl 1 nnN nu~,
"spirits of knowledge of the truth" are among the
wondrous entities envisioned in the eighth of the Songs of the Sabbath
as
Sacrifice
participants
innermost heavenly sanctum O,Wl~i1
("holy ones")
4Q403,
30, 40) • 117
in
( 4Q405,
the
19,
3) ,
praises of
the
where angelic
also partake in the jubilation
(e.g.
We should also observe that the command
to give praise that initiates the sixth of the Songs of the Sabbath
highest heights" "those
is
Sacrifice
addressed
(0,~11
called to the
(Mas1k, 1, 9-11).
,n11n
highest
both to
,JWl,)
"dwellers
in the
and "called ones," or
heights"
(O,n11
011
,N11i2)
Whether or not the speaker of this Hodayot-
composition is testifying of being called or raised to that selfsame
celestial
setting,
reminiscent of those heights.
his
language
is
certainly
The experience presented in
this text may be offered as a paradigm to the many.
It may be
116 While the phrase 0'11D '1w 1n11 appears frequently in classical rabbinic literature, 0'71D on ia rather rare. In Deuteronomy Rabah (Vilna) 11:10, the aun and moon stand o'71D 011::1. The words occur again in Hekhalot Rabati, chapter 10, wit reference to God's aervanta (O,n1wn). Moat notably, the setting appears again in the 131, ("creator of luminaries") bleaaing of the rabbinic recitation of the Sh-a (Seder R. Amram Gaon; Machzor Vitry, 89) aa the place where God's angelic aervanta ( ,n1wn) stand. R. David Abudarham'a liturgical opua links the usage there with Prov.25:3 ("The heaven for height") and Ezekiel 1:18 ("on'1 n:llll"--"and they were lofty"). 1.1.7
Aa to •apirita• in other Qumran texts, Dimant (p.98) haa noted: "In both (the Hodayot and the War Scroll) two common designations for angela are uaed: •angela' (•alachill) and 'apirita• [ruchot)."
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
83
that while the poet of this bodayah is speakinq in terms of an elevation to the anqelic community, he is also be speakinq of his joininq the elite of Qumran, in which case he may consider the two inductions to be synonymous or simultaneous. As
in
many
Qumran
compositions,
self-deprecation
immediately follows the remarkable testament of exaltation in our hodayah-text.
Not only lines 23-25, but a whole ensuinq
seqment of the composition turns to a meditation upon the lowliness of the speaker and his susceptibility to the evil that pervades the earthly world.
A discourse on the rule of
Belial (lines 26-33) in turn qives way to an assured prophecy of violent redemption heaven
(c,nwi1
(D,nw ,llJ.l
NJ.~)
nnrr~n)
(lines 34-36)
in which the host of
and the "war of the heroes of heaven" achieves victory on earth:
35 nnNJ. 1Wilj1 '11J.T Di1,l liTl:J llni1J. ~N Dlll, N,:J ,WlN li1J,,, llllnn,[l] c'1li1 lJn, c,nwi1 NJ.~l lilJ.:J i(ll J.l]Uin N~l ~J.nJ. ~1wn c,nw 36 ,,,J.l nnrr~n1 c~lll i1ln:J 09Nl ill~ i1~1ITJl i1~:J For God will thunder with the roar of his strenqth, and his holy habitation will echo with the truth of 35 his qlory, and the host of the heavens shall qive their voice, and the foundations of the world will melt and tremble, and the battle of the heroes 36 of heaven shall roam in the earth and not turn back until there be eternal, unparalleled utter destruction. (lQHa, XI, 34-l6) Aqain,
it is possible to read the o,nw ,llJ.l
heaven"), whose war is to take place on the earth the D, nw
, 1, rr:J
("the chosen ones of heaven")
("heroes of (~:ln:l)
of
--like
lQM--as
connoting the sect itself; but even if the sect is meant, clearly it is a sect that understands itself as an extension
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
84
of the angelic host.
The divine response described in this
concluding passage begins squarely in the heavens, with God's own wrath in His own abode, to which the heavenly host adds its voice, and even as the response flows into the earthly realm its representatives in that realm are still designated in heavenly terms.
The declaration that the triumph of the
"heroes of heaven"
shall "roam in the earth"
suggests
a
dissolution of boundaries between heavenly and earthly spheres and forces.
In view of the language here and above, we can
note once more that words frequently used to denote the sect-Trr,, 110,
~TD,
~111,
~~D,
nDun,
~J~n,
and
M~~--may
also be
used of the host of heaven, or ambiguously, in a manner that suggests a continuous or conjoined heavenly-earthly assembly. We must take care not speak of Qumran's vision of elect humanity
in
homoqenous.
the
eschaton
as
though
the
sect
had
been
The sect was by no means egalitarian--it was of
priestly conception and was
led
by
a
decidedly
elevated
priestly caste, and it was therefore inherently hierarchical and stratified.
Just as the entire realm or lot of light, in
Qumran's ideology, was in the care of the Angel of God's Truth and his host, so too the sect was in the care of its priestly leadership, and probably--ultimately, or at least ideally--in the care of a Within the
single,
cosmic and
most exalted leader of that caste. national
narratives
of
the Qumran
library we can discern a distinct narrative of the priestly line; and amid the pervasive expressions of the sect's angelic
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
85
self-conception
we
can
discern
especially
exalted,
and
especially realized anqelic self-conceptions within documents that reflect the experiences and the roles of the priestly leadership and of initiates to that leadership.
We will
explore this distinct narrative and especial aggrandizement of the priesthood in the discussions of the individual texts, below--particularly in connection with the so-called Qahat, Levi,
and
Amram-testaments,
as
well
as
the
Rule
of
Benedictions, the so-called Self-Glorification Hymn, and in connection with the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice themselves. Finally, in this overview, before returning to consider the several qenres and texts of the Scrolls in more depth, we should consider the question of anqel-worship at Qumran.
It
is clear that the sect saw its own salvation, and its triumph over the lot of Belial 118 ,
as arisinq through the power or
help of some anqelic aqency subsidiary to God's self, as we have seen in lines from the War Scroll, above.
Occasionally,
acknowledqement and veneration border upon worship in the Qumran literature, althouqh the unique God remains clearly in command, as in the followinq blessing of the congreqation from a document known as Sefer ba-Hilhamah: 0,311~ ~N1W,
[ ••• 1nN1] ~JD1 ~N1W, 3 [~M] OW~ 031~1 5 (1]Wi1j2 CW 111~1 [ ••• ]. l1,~D ~MOW~ [ 4Cn]M 1Wi1i2 ,3N~n 6 ~13 0,311~1 1n[ ••• ] 0,311~1 iD ,n~1D~
11.8 Xn discussing the veneration of angela at Qumran, it should be mentioned that the sect ia charged, by contrast, to curse and damn Belial (4Q286, frag. 7, col. 2).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
., He shall bless them in the name of [the God of] 3 Israel, and be shall beqin to speak, and say: Israel, blessed are y(ou] 4 in the name of God Most High • ( ••• ] and blessed is [His] holy name 5 forever and ever, and blessed (are) His ( ••• ] and blessed are all His holy angels (11Q14, 1, II, 2-6 = 4Q285 1) While this blessing does show a veneration of angels, it is more remarkable for the way in which it combines the blessing of those angels with the blessing of Israel itself--that is, of the sect.
In this way the composition does as much to
elevate the stature of the human community as it does to suggest submission to the celestial host. enjoy similar, blessed status.
Both communities
The sectarian community and
the angels are blessed together, in this liturqy, because they stand together, as the end of the prayer indicates: 14 1n 1Wil~]
~n~w ~D1 ~,rr, cJniD~ ~1WJ(n1 Dll ]~1J( l,Ml] 15 ,JM~nl CJnD ~M M,J CJ~1M~ 1(~i l,Ml p1M~] CJ,~D M1~l 1Wi1~ OWl CJniD~ C(,~~,nn
(And there shall be no disease] at all (or stum]bling block in your congregation, and pernicious animals will vanish from ~4 [the land, and there shall be no pes]tilence in your land, for God is with you and [His holy] ~5 angels [sta]nd in your conqregation, and His holy name is called upon you. (4Q285, 1, 9-11 = 11Q14, 1, II, 13-15 Another instance of angel-veneration seems to occur in 4Qinstruction (4Q418), a text which seems to be addressed to
initiates within the Priestly leadership of the sect,
and
which appears to prescribe that deference to God's "holy ones"
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
87 (C,tlll ii1) u
9
should precede the assumption of exalted status
on the part of the initiate. n9,N1 ~J~,wn~ 11~1N~1 ~J~ nn[g ]~Jw ~nNl ,WJlJTl ctN ~,til~~ ~Ji,~l ~n~ ~JnN 10 ( ••• ]ii1'9 i:lJ li,n ~Jn~nJ nj1n C1tJ:l ~Jnn 11 [ ••• ]~n i1i19~1 ~1J1 C,W1ii1 ~1J 1,W(:l] nng 12 [ ••• C1]tJ:l1 1,W1ii1 1n1N9 11i~ C,~i1 ~1J Cll 13 ( ••• ].W1ii1 1nw~ N1i1J~ [ ••• c~]lll nunn~
nnN
11~1
And you, (He has op]ened insight for you, and He has made you to rule over his treasure, and an epha of truth He has entrusted ( ••. ] 10 they are with you. And it is in your hand to turn away anger from the men of pleasure and to appoint over [ ••• ] 11 your people. Before you take your inheritance from His hand, honor His holy ones, and bef(ore .•• ] 12 begin (with] the sonq of all the holy ones. And every one who is called to His name is holy ( ••• ] 13 durinq all times his splendor, his beauty for the eternal plantation (4Q418, 81, 9-13 = 4Q423 8 + 24) Aside from the suggestion of deference to the angels here we should note, in this last passage, the theme of God's settinq the adept over His house or treasure.
This
is a
trope
reminiscent of God's promise to Joshua the High Priest in Zechariah's vision (,n,:l nN l,in
~nN
Cl).
At the same time,
the initiate is charqed to acknowledqe those of like or higher stature before assuming his own inheritance in God's house. (Joshua also first stands before anqelic ministers in God's court.)
This
fraqment
also
exemplifies
the
fluid
and
ambiguous way in which the words "holy" and "holy ones" ( ,W1ii2 C,W1ii1) are used in the Qumran literature:
"God's holy ones"
U9 For the identification of theae o,w11~ aa angela in 4Q418 specifically, aee Daniel J. Barrington, •wiadom at Qumran, • 1'he CoiiiiJJUiliey of ehe Renewed Covenane: 1'he Notre o... S~poaiu• on ehe Dead Sea Scroll& (Indiana:
1994).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
88
(1,W1ii2)
in line 11 seems to desiqnate the angels,
common
usage at Qumran, and the same angelic group seems also to be indicated in "the song of all the holy ones"
(D,W1i~
11J ,,W)
in line 12; but it is the initiate who is told to break into this song, and the text proclaims that "all who are called to His name are holy"
(Wli~
1nw1
the same fragment reads, ~J111l
1,9~
C,1M
11J~l
1~n
M1i2J~
"~Jntu
11J1
11J).
1WMJ
11
An earlier line of ~JWi~n~:l
C,Wil~ Wi1~1"
l~i~J
~T~
("Honor Him by
this: by consecrating yourself to him, as He has made you holy of holies for all the earth and among all celestials has cast your lot") --another indication that earthly priesthood entails angelic status
(4Q418 81,
3-5
same self-consecration appears,
(=4Q423
8 + 24?)) • 120
This
in another passage of 4Q418
(43, 44, 54, I, 10-11 = 4Q417 2, I 13-14) in connection with a sapiential reward and the suggestion that the adept might comprehend, if not even take part in God's eternal glory and actions: "1,tlllJn n111:lll M19 ,T1 CD D11D
il:lJ~
Din TM1 11 ("And
then you will comprehend eternal glory with the mysteries of His wonder and His valiant deeds. " 121
If there is angel-
120
The initiate ia to serve aa a conduit of bleaainq from God to the people, a function associated with an elevation beyond the lot of flesh: ·~3,ngw 1W~ rr11 ~13n ~J~,i~~ ••• ~~~ 0~1n 11~nJ ~nM1 O,W1i~ 11~~ 11~n rrng• (•Your lips Be has opened a aprinq to bleaa the holy ones, and you, as an eternal fountain of praise ••• Be baa separated you from every spirit of flesh.") The passage seems both to indicate the priestly atatua of the initiate and to indicate that this priestly atatua itself transcends normal humanity. 121
The text aeema to auqqeat that the initiate will acquire the ability to discern the fated lota in life, good and evil, aaaiqned to other human beings, knowledge inscribed in a heavenly book before God (4Q417 2 15-16), not qiven to the •spirit of flesh• (1W~ rr11) which cannot discern good from evil (linea 1718), but entrusted to •znoah, with the nation of spirit (IT11 on WllM7).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
•• veneration in 4Q418 it is continuous with self-veneration, or self-qlorification, a phenomenon quite in evidence at Qumran, as we shall see.
In realizinq their identity as the holiest
beinqs on the earth, the Qumran sectarians, and especially their
priestly
leaders,
achieve
the
status
of
anqels,
entailinq access to divine knowledqe and conqress with the hiqhest divine retinue.
It is perhaps the kernel of Qumran's
secret
holiness,
doctrine
that
as
an
expression
and
fulfillment of election, when it is realized maximally by those whom God has chosen, has an upper limit just short of divinity itself.
2'be Genres and 2'erts in 2'U.rD
2'lle Bodayot: A Psal..ady of Ange~ic B~ection
We have already seen one hodayah composition, above, in which the sectarian speaker testifies that he has been lifted up from an earthly condition "to an eternal heiqht" Ci1D)
to stand "with the host of holy ones"
(C,Wli~
{C11i
~~~
CD)
and to be united in community with the "conqreqation of the sons of heaven"
(C,nW
,J~
niD
CD
iTP~
~1~/)
realize "an eternal destiny" (/11 l CilD) • 122
122
see the treatment of
loa•,
in order to
Such elevation
XI, 19-25, above.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
90
is a sustained theme in the Hodayot. 123 statements of elevation alternate, passages
of
self-abasement
anything but anqelic.
which
At the same time,
as we have seen, seem
antithetical,
with and
We can observe the same pattern once
more in the following Hodayah composition, quoted here in its entirety: ilTln iln1::lli1 1nrr 1:~P::ll 19ll Cll ilnN':?9i1 ,J ,'7N ilJTlM ,wun::1 ,J':?,Jwnl ilJnnM TlC::l ,JnlJT[lil] 4 M,J iln ,JMl 11Jn::l ,ngw ':?1n1 il':?iln s ,JlW':?::ll n111i1 ,9::1 1nn1 ilJM':?9 T,nn Cl,il 6 ':?lJ iliTITlWN ilJn11::ll::ll ilJTCIT::l il1nTM1 i1J1 7 ilJ::llC l11l1 CTM ,Jl 11n::1 ilJTl::lJ i1190Ml ilJnW i1J1lN ili1T~ ilJT, ::11 ilJ, g nnM , J , nuT, , J M1 ,wg J uwunwn Tl::lJ '71Jl i11l::ll ':?lJ ilJITlJ::ll illli ':?lJ 8 ilJn::lWTin::ll nlJ,':?O ::111 ilJ::l1C::ll 9 lllJ ,cgwn ':?lJ i1J9M::l Mlil ilJnM 10 ilJnnM TlC::l cnllTlil ,J i1JJ1~1 ,J::l ':?1J'7 i1J,niT11 WlJN iln1i1C ilJTl::lJ llln':?l vacat cn':?J~il ilJM'79 ,T1::ll TIT,il':? ':?un nnWMl ilTJ nl::lll1n ':?1Jn ilJ':? 11 WTi1ni1'7 uwgn nu':?1n 19lln c,1il':? i1J,W1Ti1 12 ou ':?1lll1 1nnN ,J::l [O]ll :J:~Pni1'71 13 [ilJ]nJ,l':? illllJ rr11n1 [C':?l]ll T1C'7 c,nn 14 ':?lJ Cll WTTTnil':? [ ••• ] ,IT111 ill N::l~ Cll i1J,J9':? Tnlln::l ilJ1 TIT,::l O,llT, Clll il,ilJ nun
I qive thanks to you, my God, because you have done wonders with dust; with a creature of clay you have done (thank) fvery/ mightily. And I, what am I that 4 you have [ta]ught me the secret of your truth and have instructed me in your wondrous works? You have put thanks in my mouth and praise on my tonque, 5 and circumcise my lips in a place of jubilation. I will chant of your kindness and talk of your might all 6 the day always. I shall bless your name and tell your glory amid the sons
l2J
As Dombkowaki-Bopldna (p.328) writes, "These recitals of deliverance experienced constitute the main element of the genre of individual thanksgiving, which predominates 1QB." I have mentioned above that the compositions in columna 10-16 of 1QB have been singled out as particularly representative of an experience of exaltation and have been suggested as a aeries of Teacher-hymns, representing the special status of the sect's founding leader. On the other hand, Martin G. Abegg has noted that "the same dramatic themes are present throughout the Thanksgiving Hymns: (1) humanldnd is a vessel of clay and prone to sin; (2) God is the creator and determiner of all things; (3) the wicked persecute the righteous but God sustains them; (4) God has commissioned the author of the psalms as his mouthpiece." ("4Q49l, 4Q427, and the Teacher of Righteousness,." in Craig A. Evans and Peter w. Flint, ada., Bschaeology, Nessiani. .,. and the Dead Sea scrolls, (Michigan: 1977)).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
91
of Adam and by your abundant goodness 7 my soul will delight. I know that truth is in your mouth, and justice in your hand, and in your thoughts 8 all knowledge, and in your might all strength, and all glory is with you. In your wrath are all punishing judgements, 9 but in your goodness, abundance of forgiveness; and your mercy is for all the sons of your will. For you have taught them the secret of your truth, and have instructed them in your wondrous mysteries. blank And for the sake of your glory you have purified mankind from offence, so that he can make himself holy 11 to you above every impure abomination and guilt of unfaithfulness, to become united with the sons of your truth and in a lot with 12 your holy ones--to raise from the dust the maggot of the dead to an everlasting council and from a perverse spirit to knowledge of you, 13 so that he can stand in rank before you with the perpetual host and the spirits of( ••• ], to renew him with everythinq 14 that will exist, and with those who know, in a community of jubilation. (lQH" XIX, 3-14) The composition reads as a meditation on the speaker's own elevation to lofty and exalted status, 124 but it is also a meditation
on
his
natural,
base
and
human
condition.
Dombkowski Hopkins notes of the Hodayot: in general, "What does stand out clearly in the collection is a constant shiftinq of emotions and themes; this shiftinq creates a thematic and emotional tension,
and it is this tension which must be
recognized as the most important element in lQH." Hopkins
also
alternation
seconds
H.
constitutes
Bardke's an
suggestion
intentional
124
Dombkowski that
"such
'spiritual
lQBb (1Q35), frag. 1, col.. I (•lQ&•, col.. XV) expreeee• the •ame idea• of purification, forgiven••• and elevation •to •tand in your pre•ence for ever and ever. •
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
92
exercise.' n1.2s
Here the aim of the exercise seems to be an
experience of elevation to angelic status.
The lanquage
describing the transition--especially the nomenclature--is ambiquous
in a
difficult
to
manner that we have
tell
where
references
references to the angels begin.
noted before: to
the
it
is
sect end and
"The sons of your truth" (,l::l
ilJnnN), God's "holy ones" (ilJ,W11i1), and even the "everlasting
council" they
(0~1U
110) are terms suggestive of the sect, although
certainly
suggest
the
"perpetual host" (1U
M::l~)
more
angelic
suggestive
of
angels
as
well,
while
the
and the "spirits" (n1IT11) are terms beings,
although,
certain human beings can belong among them.
apparently, The speaker
addresses the possibility of a man's being raised above the materiality,
impurity,
humanity and,
and iniquity that inhere in normal
in being so raised,
joining a preternatural
community that exists above those conditions. The
transition,
as
expressed
in
involves an awareness of secret knowledge.
this
composition,
:rn particular, the
speaker has been initiated into "the secret of [God's] truth" (ilJnnN
110)
(ilJN~9
,WDn::l
and God has taught him His ,l~,Jwnl),
enabling him to give praises in the
"place of jubilation" (1 1JD ill1) • 126
125
B.
Barc:lke,
"wondrous deeds"
We have already noted
•coneideratione eur lee Cantiquee de Qumran, •
Revue
Biblique, 68 (1956), pp.225-226; and Dobkow.ki Hopkins, p.329. 126
for ., l
God'•
rm-r m ) •
In the hodayah that beqine in lQ&• x.v, 26, the epeaker qivee thank• inetructinq him in •the aayeteriee of Your wonder• (i1JM'19 "n:l1
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
93
that, among the spirits of the innermost heavenly sanctuary of the Songs
or the Sabbath
knowledge of truth"
Sacririce are "spirits of (4Q405,
(nnM nn1 ,n11)
19,
3), and we (M~9)
should now also note the pervasiveness of "wonder" that text.
princes"
praises
god
(M~9
nlJ1
jubilations"
with
the sixth of the "chief
"seven
,,J.i llJ.Ul)
words
(4Q403,
with "seven words of his wondrous power"
wondrous
I,
5-6),
and
(~JW
,11J.l
~J)
(nl11J.l
,1J.i llJ.WJ.
In the song of the eighth sabbath, the "offering of
the tonques"
(C~,Jltll~
nn11n) of the second rank of angelic
priests of the wondrous habitation (,JW 110 llllnJ.)
18-27).
(M~g~
,J~JJ.
c,,JW
T1J. nu1 ,T, llJ.W)
(4Q403, 1, II,
In view of such passages, the initiatory instruction
concerning divine wonders this
J.l1~
is described as "seven mysteries of knowledge in
the mystery of wonder"
of
of
1,
blesses "all those powerful in instruction"
M~9
in
Among the many occurrences of "words of wonder" in
the song of the Sixth Sabbath127 ,
1M~9).
the
hodayah
gives
(~JM~9
,WDn) for which the speaker
thanks--and
which
f iqures
in
his
realizing membership in the exalted, eternal congregation--has overtones of the heavenly rites.
So even though the speaker's
mission, or ministry--chanting, blessing, and recounting--is among humankind
1 lJn) and the "community of jubilation"
(~J1
which
U7
(DiM , J J. 11nJ.), the "place of jubilation"
the
speaker
is
enabled to
act
should
Cf. 4Q403, 1, I • 4Q404 1 -5; 4Q40S, 3-6.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
(~J1
1n,)
in
probably be
94
understood as ontoloqically continuous if not identical with the heavenly world and its ministerinq inhabitants. In
a
similar
vein,
the
speaker
of
another
Hodayot
composition, who tells of havinq been divinely appointed as "a father to the sons of lovinqkindness and as a caretaker for the men of portent" {n9ln ,WJN7 1nlN31 10rr
,J~7 ~N)--that
is,
as a reliqious leader of the sect--qoes on to describe himself in preternatural terms,
as a beinq who mediates God's own
radiance: ,nD91~1
24 ,l1~ 01n1 ,W9l ~n1TD ,7(N ~nN ••• ] ~3il~37 ~nll,J~ 1WN 11M~ o,nu~w 11N~ (11W,]n~ ,7l1 13nl n7[1D] 11Nn7 ,7 ~nN
~7Dn7
,3 25 vacat
[ ••• You, my Go]d, have saved my life, and lifted my horn 24 up hiqh. I am radiant with sevenfold liqht, with the li[qht which] you prepared for your qlory. blank 25 For you are my (ever] lastinq luminary, and have established my foot on le[vel qround]. (lQH•, XV, 23-25 (= 1Q35 1; 4Q428 6-7)) The theme of the sevenfold liqht
(o,nu~w
11N)
in which the
speaker of this hodayah says he appears is probably to be associated with a passaqe that appears several columns earlier in the same scroll, in which the speaker testifies of havinq underqone a sevenfold divine purification: ll,~N~ 16 ~n79~ OiN ,l~ ill7 ,~ ~31,~l~ 1Dn71 11J~ ~~ltn 9.0J31 WN ,tulln~ ~~(TJ 9.]1~n~ l~N,~nl on1~1~n~ o,nD ,DW1 ,7D 11~n,, 17 o,nu~w 1~o7 o,rr91J
{,W9l} J,wn ,7N ~nNl 18 vacat ,W9l lNJi, 01,~ 7131 19 rr3n 9.10 .[ ••• ] ••• 3 ~no7g ll,~N W9Jl ~nni7 ~1uo nl,1N
And to show your greatness /throuqh met before the sons of Adam, you did wonders ~6 with the poor man, you brouqht him like qold into the crucible to be worked in fire and like purified silver in the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
95
furnace of the smiths to be refined seven times. 17 The wicked of the nations hustle rush at me with their trials and crush my soul all day lonq blank 18 But you, my God, have chanqed {my soul} from storm to calm and have freed the soul of the poor man like [ ••• ] prey from the power of 19 lions. (1QH•, XIII, 15-19) Aqain,
althouqh
the
lanquaqe
of
the
composition
is
preternatural, the mission of the poet, and the qlory that he manifests, is vis a vis earthly humanity (DiN words
suqqest
that
a
conviction
of
,J~ ill~).
divinely
refined
purified identity afforded the sectarian community, least
its
leadership,
surroundinq world, attitude of
a
sense
of
detachment
The and
or at
from
the
which was reqarded consistently with an
infinite superiority and with an assurance of
eventual triumph already underway. However, there is more to the sectarian self-conception of the Hodayot than the fulfillment of an anqelic role vis a
vis humanity, and more even than an experience of beinq in leaque
or
in
harmony
with
the
anqelic
host.
Metaphor,
analoqy, and imitation are not sufficient to account for such passaqes as the followinq: ~~n~u ,WJN ~,~~ 1Wlij2]~ D,J:l l',~n
13 ~~il~[Jl ~JnnN] ~nlN,~~ ,J l,Nl D,J9 ,JN~n DU iTP ~lll~l ~~il~J ,9:1 l~lW, D~l ••• [ ••• ] ,J ,,,g 14 ••• [ ••• ~iW p],~J rrlg 15 [DWlW ~J,Wlii2 ~]lll~ ~J,lW ,,~,, ~lJ ~U ~~ ~~,1 D~lD nuun ,91U~ l~J ~il~ D~lD i[D ~lJl Dl~n ill l,WllW[l D],i2TTW ill 16 1[,9Jlll ~:l]n 17 [l,N~ n,n,]~ ~,~, ,,nl[,]~[i nN li2uin] lill nll~J ~,~[nl ~,WllW] ~lNW iUl D9N l,N~ ~:ln ~ll llll,l lj2IT llD:l, l~lll ,:l,:lW:l lO~ l,N~ D~lD 18 ,lj2n~ llN l,lln iU ~nWM 19 ,WJM ~l~:l nlUl:l WN~[ ~,~1 ~~lll ,]J:l ~lJ ~~~
For you have brouqht [your truth and] your [qlo]ry in a lot
13 to all the men of your council and
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
together with angels of the countenance, without there being a mediator between [your holy ones ••• ] ••• 14 its fruit, because [ ••• ] They will answer to your glorious commands and will be your princes in the lo[t of tour holy ones. Their root] 15 will sprout like a flo[wer of the field fo]r ever, to make a shoot grow in branches of the everlasting plantation so that it covers all the wo[rld] with its shade, [and] its [crown] 16 (reaches) up to the skie[s, and] its roots down to Sheol. And the source of light [will] be an eternal spring, 18 inexhaustible, in its shining flames all the son[s of injustice) will burn (and it will be turned] into a fire that singes all the men of 19 guilt unto destruction.
''
(1QK•, XIV, 12-19 (=4Q428 5; 4Q429 2))
These lines evidence the sect's belief that it shared in the experience of God and in the realization of God's will that were the lot of the angels in heaven.
For the most exalted
members of the sect (the 0,1W, in the parlance of this text) the experience of God seems to have been unmediated.
The
station of these leaders at the head of the "lot of your holy ones"
(1Wli~
~11l)
may bespeak a mediation of the experience
to those outside the leadership, although it may also present an example to be followed by the many. direct experience was possible,
In any event, the
in the belief of the sect,
because God had granted certain human beings an essentially angelic identity: ~ 1 :J nN 14 D~ tJ19W~ [0~ lD Dii1n ilnll,] :Jil 1WN il~N 1 D,~, C[D 1,Wili1] niDl 1,IT11 N~~ CD CnN1~ 010~ 1,WDn D,n,~ il,N~~ ~l:Jl p1Nil CD l,nlN~~ 15 ~[l:J)l 1Wil~
iD ni1~91 16 c~lD ,~~ ~l:J~ 1n1~wnn ~l:J(:J) n1n1iln~1 17 11~D~ D~ iln[ ••• ] ilWDnl D~lD Di~n ilnnll,:Jil ilnN ,J 1N]1 N~ 1WN nN cn,N1il ,:J 1n~wnn ~l:J~ 1il~:J 119o, D,[~il]~l Di~ ,n,~ 19il~ nlWirr 18 N11~~1 Di~ 1W[N ••• ,n~lD~ il,iln ilnNl [TNn cnlJ,:J)il il[n]N ,:J D~lD nl,ill iD
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
t7
These are they whom you prepared from the very first to judge through them ~4 all your works, even before they were created, along with the host of your spirits and the congregation of your holy ones, with your holy firmament and all its ~5 hosts, with the earth and all its progeny in the seas and in the depths, and all your design unto all periods of eternity ~6 and everlasting appointment. For you prepared them from the very first and you have [ ••• ] the work of [ ••• ] in them so that ~7 they might recount your glory throughout all your dominion--for you have shown them that which was not s[een, ••• ] what was there from of old and create ~8 new things, demolish things standing from of old, and erect things that will endure forever. For you prepared them long ago and you shall exist for ever and ever. (1QH• 1QHodayot, v, 13-19) The sect conceived of itself as sharing in the eternity, the grandeur,
and the cosmic sovereignty of its God.
In the
expression of this self-estimation, the Qumran Hodayot provide an extremely important paradigm of the theios-aner, or Godman, a creature born of woman but sharing in the preternatural glory of the divine. provide
the
scholarship--of
The Dead Sea Scrolls probably do not
paradigm--much a
unique,
looked
messianic
for
God-man,
salvific pathway from humanity to divinity. hand,
by
Christian charting
a
On the other
the scrolls do bear witness to the conception of a
pathway from earthly to heavenly identity, divinely determined and realizable in the life of the elect individual: iD1n~ 11n~~
1n1J,J~ nn1n1 ~,i~ 18 ~n[N1~] ~nN ~, vacat 19 ,,~D ••• ~~, ~1J~ 1~~n~1 1n,,~~ 1nw~~ 11~1 1 1 N1 lD 01~W1 0~1D TID1W,~ 1W9l n1~ ~1J n1n9~1 1 1 nn1 vacat 1i1~J 1w~n 20 01n1 11cnn
blank Only you have [created] ~8 the righteous man, and from the womb you determined him for the time of your desire, to be kept in your covenant and to walk on all (your paths), and to ••• on him ~9 in
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
,. the abundance of your mercy, and to open all the narrowness of his soul to eternal salvation and everlasting peace without limitation, and you have raised his glory above flesh. blank (1QH4 VII, lines 18-20) on the subject of a transcendence of the flesh, we have already
noted
indicators
that
of
defecation,
the
their
Qumran
sectarians
earth-bound
sexuality,
and
the
Hodayot
suggest
infirmity--through
that,
the
humanity--alimentation,
regulation, concealment, and exclusion. from
minimized
even
strict
The lines just quoted beyond
such
human
imitations of the angelic host, the Qumran community may have believed in an actual transformation or transcendence of the flesh in its own experience.
Perhaps this transformation was
conceived of as being realized proleptically, through what we might
call the angelic
role-play of
sectarian rites
and
restrictions, whereas it was to be realized in actuality at the
time
of
God's
final
judgement.
In
any
event,
the
suggestion of an actual transformation of the flesh is also present in the following, tantalizingly fragmentary passage from the Hodayot, which cannot be conclusive but, equally, must not be ignored:
,T11[ ••• ] ••• s ,~M~n~ .[ ••• ]1~9wn~ 4 ~~•u,, ,n[ ••• ] D.[ ••• ] ••• ,~M~n 7 ~~ ~~ 1991lP1[ ••• ]~ 1tu~ 6 " llW9 ~~~,~~ 11un~ ~~,[···l11~nn c,~M 8 llJ~n1 rr11 ,n,~ll~ 11 ..,.,
••• who will summon you 4 to his judgement[ ••• ] to the angels of 5 ••• [ ••• ] and the mysteries of iniquity /to change/ 6 flesh in [ ••• ] and in it will fly all 7 the angels of [ ••• ] as the cords of the spirit, and you have subjugated the celestials from the place of your [ ••• ] in the dwelling of your glory (1QH4 XXIV top, 3-8 (= 4Q428 14))
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
,, Whether
or
not
the
Qumran sect
believed
in
an eventual
"chanqinq" of the flesh, the Hodayot certainly suqqest that they
believed in themselves
as members
of God's
anqelic
community, althouqh perhaps of varyinq ranks, strivinq toward and at times even achievinq full companionship and belonqinq with God's heavenly host.
In this way the sect imaqined
itself as beinq privy to the divine intimacy and immediacy enjoyed
the
by
the
celestial court. 128
anqelic
ministers
in
the
innermost
The Hodayot also stronqly suqqest that
reliqious experience at Qumran came very close to meetinq Elliot Wolfson's criterion for mystical experience--that is, "experience of ontic transformation, i.e. becominq divine or anqelic." All of this is demonstrated most impressively, within the Hodayot,
by a text recently edited and released by Eileen
Schuller. 129
Her
reconstruction
of
a
hodayah
text
from
Qumran's Cave Four (paralleled in lQHa) indicates most clearly that the imaqined relationship of the sect to the anqels exceeded mere metaphor, analoqy, and imitation, and extended to a
concept of transformed and qlorified identity.
The
128
Fletcher-Louia (Lulce-Acea. • • p.l85) addreeeea "the queation of whether the elect (at Qumran) experienced any kind of transformation.• He writea, "There are thoae who have anawered neqatively, ineietinq on the careful aeparation between men and anqela in the DSS. certainly the lanquaqe of aacent and communion ia frequently juxtapoaed with expreaaiona of the depravity of humanity. On the other hand, there ia the view, which now haa the support of cave 4 fraqmenta, that recoqnizea a tranacendent, anqelomorphic humanity reaultinq from tranaformation and communion.• 129 Bileen Schuller, •A Hymn from a Cave Four Hodayoe Manuacript: 4Q427 i + ii,• JBL 112/4 (1993), pp. 605-628, and DJD XXXX, 1999, pp. 77-123.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
100
beginning of this hodayah text overlaps exactly with the ending of the so-called Self Glorification Hymn of the cave four War Scroll (4Q491c), so that it seems very probable that this hodayah and that text are actually a single composition-probably,
originally,
a
Hodayot-composition
that
was
interpolated (and somewhat reworked) into a manuscript of the War Scroll. 130
Still, because the two overlapping texts do
vary from one another,
because they are preserved in two
separate manuscripts found in two separate Qumran caves, and because
Schuller considers
it
"not easy to describe
relationship between the texts," we shall focus portion found in the Hodayot at present,
the
upon the
and turn to the
portion known as the Self-Glorification Hymn in a separate discussion. ut
The Hodayot-fragment reads:
[,n 'PJ, ,n ,ngtu ·nn1 ••• ] 9 c,'7N::l [,J1nJ ,n ••• ] N'71 D,W1i~'7 U1 1['7n~ i,i, ,JN ••• ] 10 ,Ji1U, l1W'7::1 D,'7N DD ,JN N(,]J ~ni, N1'7 ,i(1::1J'71 ••• ,::1] 11 N::l, cnJ1 ,'7 1,nJN T5J::l N'7 1('7n ,J::l cu ,i1::1J112 1 [,]inun ,::1 ::lWIT, N1'7[ ••• ,::1 1ntu] 13 N1'7 (D,1,91N) 0,11,::1 1N 1J,J1~ '7N ni(D::l 1ITnW i1::1J] 14 1'7n'7 11,W D,i,i, 11nT D'71U N::l~::l iiT, 1nn1[1 Wil~] 15 llDn::l 1'7'7~ ~DlW, '7~N::l ,n9tu::l 1nw lW(,i~~l 16 1JJ'7n'7 il::lJ1 1J'7N'7 '7i1l 1::1~ 1U,nW~ D,~~ '71 (J::l17 ] ilnJ'7 1~ 1n, 1~ ~J 1 1W'7 1 TlU llO Martin G. Abegg Jr. notes that the Self-Glorification Hymn (4Q491) "has a clear generic relationship to the Thanksgiving Hymns. ("Who Ascended to Heaven? 4Q491, 4Q427, and the Teacher of Righteousness," Eschat=ology, lfessianism, and t;he Dead Sea Scroll•, Craig B. Evand and Peter w. Flint, ada. (Michigan: 1997.) Schuller suggests, on the basis of lexical items peculiar to 4Q427 7, and not found elsewhere in the Rodayot, that the composition originated independently of the other Hodayoc and was later incorporated into them as well. In any event, the Sel.L-GloriLicacion Hy.n does not appear in the 1QM version of the War Scroll and seems to be one of several •victory hymns• interpolated over t~ into the text. (Schuller, p.627). 131 Of thi.a Hodayot;-material, Abegg (p. 71) writes, "What we have before us in 4Q427, then, is an additional proclamation of our bold and mysterious figure (of the Self-GloriLicat=ion HYJIIIl) who claims to be reckoned with the gods."
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
101
lnWil n:ltd[i118 ] l,M, o,n'7lll n1nntuJ. lll,J.il i1Jl,li12 Dlnn['719 1 11, Tlll ll,ilnl nlMl ,'79ni1 1J1J. ~~~ Tn,J. 20 i1Di1,'791Jl D,'1WlJ D,1i1'7 n11nDJ nl'7l'71 D,T1 D'1lll D,Ml 011 nlllllJ '7,9Wi1'11 nllll ,,~ nJ'7 J[,Wi1'7] nlM[/9 D,]~i1'71[ il]il ,T1 D[nil/] 21 Who is like me among the celestial& 9 [ ••• who can measure what flows from my lips? Who] will confront me with the tongue 10 [... I am the companion of the Kin]g, friend of the holy ones, and there shall not come 11 [unto me ••• and to my gl]ory shall not be similar, for (as for) me, m[y] standing in rank is with the celestials 12 [and my glory is with the sons of the ki]ng. Not with fine gold shall I crown myself, and gold they shall not 13 [place upon me ••• ] shall not be thought of me. Chant, dear ones, sing to the king 14 [of glory! rejoice in the com]munity of God, exult in the tent of salvation! Give praise in the [holy] 15 habitation [e)xalt together in the eternal host! Ascribe grandeur to our God and glory to our King 16 [Sancti] fy his name with lips of might and eternal tongue! Lift your voices 17 in all eras, cause the sound of the shout to be heard! Express eternal rejoicings without 18 cease! Bow down in the united congregation! Bless the One who does lofty wonders and makes known the strength of His hand, 19 to seal mysteries and to reveal hidden things, to lift up those who stumble and those of them who fall 20 [to retu)rn the path of those who hope for knowledge and to abase the exalted meetings of the eternally proud 21 [to make perfec)t mysteries of s[plendor) and to rai[se up glorious wo]nders. (4Q427 7, I+9, 8-21 (= 1QH• XXVI top and cf. 4Q471b) The composition is especially remarkable, in connection with the songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice, for its combination of self-glorification with a
jubilant call to communal and (I
would argue) angelic worship.
The composition is suggestive
of the "congregational mysticism" posited by Baumgarten with reference to the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice, but it is also a personal testament--and this is perhaps a key to the experiential,
mystical
dimension
of
the
angelic
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
self-
102
conception at Qumran.
Mysticism, as Wolfson defines it, must
be a deeply personal and individual matter--an imaqined and believed experience of actual,
ontic transformation.
It
cannot be merely a matter of mouthinq formulae, however qrand or esoteric, and it cannot be limited to the contemplation of exalted
imaqes
and
ideas,
however
contemplation may make them.
vivid
and
compellinq
It is always difficult (with
reqard to many Jewish texts deemed "mystical") to extrapolate personal experience from documents that are most replete with descriptions of outward phenomena, hiqh and wondrous as the phenomena miqht be.
It is perhaps especially difficult to
conceive of actual, mystical experience on a communal scale and in a very
liturqical mode.
well
indicate
how
However, Schuller's hodayah may such
mysticism
miqht
have
been
attempted in practice. The text beqins with a personal statement of exaltation to celestial stature.
The distinctions that the speaker
claims are so far above even the dearest earthly ornaments that he speaks of fine qold as thouqh it were base. speaker is not only a "friend to the holy ones" but a "companion of the Kinq" interroqative,
(l~n~
(O,Wll~~
The U1),
,,,,),and his rhetorical
"Who is like me amonq the celestials?"
(,n
n,~N::l
,Jln:J)
God's
own that only mysticism as defined by Wolfson can
is a personal arroqation of qlory so like to
account for its audacity.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
103
The testimony
sudden to
a
shift
from
communal
this
imperative
captivating and transporting.
wondrous is
first-person
dramatic
and
even
The speaker calls upon the many
to exult as though they had already experienced an elevation akin to his own.
What is more, he uses terms that are both
familiar to the sect and increasingly angelic in connotation. He addresses his audience as "companions," (0,,,,,) even as be (17n~
is "companion of the King"
,,,,), drawing them into his
own experience and calling upon them to act as only companions in that experience might. l 32 "in
the
congregation of
He calls upon them to rejoice
God"
(7M
nlll:l) --which they
know
themselves to be--and the designations that ensue: "the tent of salvation" Wll~)
(~lllW,
7~M)
and "the holy habitation"
(lllln
seem meant to be synonymous with that congregation, so
that the speaker's words tell his listeners that in belonging to the sectarian community they have already attained angelic identities and prerogatives. composition
achieves
contemplative
a
experience
The ingenious approach of the
leap-frog, of
or
mystical
an
end-run
around
metamorphosis
by
powerfully, imperatively suggesting that a transformation has already taken place.
ll2
Schuller (p.6l4) ia uncertain whether those addressed by the apeaker at thia point are .. angela or hWIUUla. .. She indicates the usage of the term as an ende~nt for human being• in Pa.60:7, 108:7, 127:2, and Jer.ll:lS, but also ita reference to the angela in the Ascen•ion of I•aiah 4:1. Although an ~perative to the heavenly angela ia poaaible, on the model of the Song• of ehe Sabbath Sacrifice, it ••em• far more likely--in view of the continuation of the compoaition, which haa to do with the elevation of hWDan beinga--that the apeaker haa in mind a human audience in which he attempt• to induce an experience of angelic identity.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
104
With the force of a comprehensive indoctrination and of supporting practices behind it--indoctrination and practices such as we can observe in the rites and regulations of the Qumran
sect--this
method
might
work;
transformation of self-experience.
it
might
induce
a
If the listeners truly
believe in the speaker as he describes himself then they are liable to believe in themselves as he addresses them--that is, as ones whose natural
lot is to exult in the celestial,
This is an extremely important paradiqm of
eternal host.
mystical transformation by charismatic example in Jewish Late Antiquity. 133 The speaker follows up the communal, angelic imperative with a third-person account of God's saving grace, as though to assure his listeners that what he has said of them, and what he has
required of them,
can actually be
so.
The
description is couched in a further imperative to bless God as the one "Worker of Lofty Wonders" (n1Ml
M,~9n~)
who can effect
such transformations, "revealing the power of His hand" (lP 1 1n 11,
T lll)
(D,lnOJ
as He "seals secrets and reveals hidden things" n1~l~l
O,Tl
Dlnn~),
lifting up mere fallible human
beings, "to make perfect mysteries of splendor and raise up glorious wonders."
The
llJ Fletcher-Louis Luke Ac~s... p.215 notes of interteatamental literature that • ••• in a number of instances, we find a specific pattern in which an angelomorphic red.....r leads, or heads, a righteous COCIIIIlunity who are themselves angelomorphic, though perhaps to a lesser degree (Dan 7-12, the S~ilitudes, perhaps ~an, SibOr 5:238-285).•
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
105
next column of 4Q427 contains a similar passage of praise (part
of
the
same
composition,
according
to
Schuller's
reconstruction), whose comparable terms make clear that the elevation spoken of
in the
first
column
is,
indeed,
an
elevation to angelic status: ~,9W~ N,~ 8 [n1N~9l ~W1D ~N] ~1il 11[1]nN1 1D,nW[~ iD1 9 [ ••• ]~ 11,:lN 19lm 01,1 n,1W 1,N~ TT11 n1~:ll [ ••• 1~]N911 iTT, niD:l O,~N OD1 ~n1~:1 1~1,:ll, O,~ITW 1,rm 1 ,N~ 0,1, p1N ,~W1:J1 vacat 0~1D n7:J~ 9.N 10 11:1::1 ~n~,J1:Jn:l o~1D nrmw1 OiD~:l 11 [c~1u n11J:ll1 ]~[W1ll]~ ~N 111:1 11n, 1 12 [... ]n:lW~ 1 ,N1 ~l nDi:l 13 [ ••• 11n111:1l D,91~~ ~,iln1 n1Nl n[1]N7[9J [11n~1 1,i]OTT :111:1 ~nnDi:l ~n~,Jg 7u :1101 1,Wlin 71~7 ] 1l~~W~1 ~i~~ 7N ~~1lDi, 1nnN ,l:l 71~7 1 ,nTT1 14 )1l1~~1 ~~n11:ll TT1:J:l ~~nNJ~ 1l,N1 N,~ 11:1~~ 15 [ ••• ~n1 ~~N7 1tu:1 ~n n1~,7o N79~1 o{~~},nrn 16 [ ••• 18 [ ••• i)nDn:l :l~,n~~1 1'~~ p~n ~7N 190~ 11 [ ••• J.TT, 21 [ ••• ]~ (;n·'"'"'lg• 1n11 ~~~ :l,W~7 p,7n l,N1 o,nw ,l:l [ ••• C,l],:l W,N~ N71 ~~~ 1l1:li
Proclaim and say: Great is God [who works wonders,] 8 for he brings down the haughty of spirit without remnant and raises up the poor from the dust to [ ••• ] 9 and to the skies he magnifies him in stature and with the celestials in a communal congregation; and heals [him ••• ] 10 wrath for eternal destruction. blank And the stumblers of the earth He raises up beyond price and ete[rnal might] 11 is in their strides and eternal joy in their dwelling-places, everlasting glory without cease [ ••• ] 12 And they shall say: Blessed is God who do[es] lofty wo]nd[er]s and displays his might greatly[ ••• ] 13 in knowledge to all his creations, and goodness upon their faces when they know his many lov[ingkindnesses] and his [abundant] 14 mercy toward all the sons of his truth. We have known You, God of righteousness, and we have understood [ ••• ] 15 the glory, for we have seen your jealousy in the strength of your might and we have recognized [ ••• ] 16 {your} mercy and wondrous forgivinqs. What is flesh in relation to these and what ••• [ ••• ] 17 to recount these from era to era, and to stand in rank [ ••• ] 18 the sons of heaven without an intermediary to answer to You /to hear your wonders/ [ ••• ] 21 to you we have spoken and not to an intermediary man ••• (4Q427 II, 7-21 (= 4Q428 13; 4Q431)
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
101
Schuller suggests that the pattern here is similar to that of Isaiah
11-12,
in
which
"an
extended
description
of
eschatological realities is followed by the summons to give praise." 134
"However," she notes, "here the summons and the
praise are not in terms of 'on that day,' but now, present.nus
in the
The heavenly elevation is already a reality to
be experienced and, as Schuller emphasizes, "because of what
the God has done for the psalmist there is no need for an intermediary. " 136 The humble, "What is flesh ••• • that comes toward the end of this passage should not be taken as a reference to those outside the sect.
On the contrary,
no statement of the
elevation of Qumran's elect seems complete without such a postscript of ostensible humility--and in cases such as this the postscript is perhaps better understood as a statement of wonder at the transformation just experienced. are readily comparable to a Sabbath
Sacrifices,
passage in the Songs of the
following
an
ministers, that asks rhetorically, c,"7N
nDi~
1J19ll 11W"7 nn11n
~n
These lines
account ·~n
of
lJnJl~~,
the c~
angelic ~wrrnJ
~n
••• Ci,JlDn~" ("As what are we to
be reckoned among them, and what is our priesthood in their dwelling places ••• what is the offering of our earthly tonque amid the knowledge of celestials?") 134
Schuller, p.62S.
lJS
Schuller, p.62S.
136
Schuller, p.62S.
(4Q400 2 6-7)
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
In fact,
107
paradoxically, ostensible indicator
that one survivinq line of characteristic,
humility that
in
there
Songs
the was
a
the
stronqest
transformational,
mystical
experience associated with that text.
may
be
We have said that the
sectarians of Qumran--even the speakers of the Hodayot--were profoundly aware of their earthly bodies and imperfections. That such awareness could coexist in one consciousness with the anqelic self-estimations that we have observed is indeed paradoxical--but that is precisely the paradox of mystical experience in the course of human life. 137
When it comes to
explaininq this apparent contradiction in the sectarian selfconception of Qumran, perhaps it is as much as we can do to note that the paradox was experienced and conveyed as
a
mystery and a wonder by the authors of Qumran themselves, as a further passaqe from 4Q427 attests: ~lJ
l,J~~,
,,ll~~ ~Jnlwnnll N,~9~[~ ••• ] 1 1Wl ~n1 n 11lll 1W ~ 190~ nll1 Nl~ [ ••• ] 8 ~J1llJ~ ~~1n1 ~Jnll n,1ll ~nlN,(l~ ••• ~WN] 9 ,,~,~ nlJlJJ ,JNl ~J,nTT1 nn1n~ cgwn ,rrgn [ ••• ] 10 1nw~~ 19n l~ nlT 11l ,nlWTTJ ,n~ llN~ l~l 19[1l lTlN 1nTT] 11 1~, 13 l~l ~n1j1TT C~lll nl,~Jl 191l 1T1Nl ~nn(J ••• ] 12 N,J ~J,J9~14 1 11nn~1 ~Jnn n,1ll N,l~~ ~nlw~ [ ••• llN~l ••• 15] 1W1TT l,Nl ~J 11l Cln11N 11N~ C~lll 11Jnl( ••• [ ••• 1j1]TT l,N~ Cl~W ,~ill ~10 N(~l
,j11TT1
1
And what is flesh 7 [ ••• to] do wondrously, and, in your desiqn, to strenqthen and to establish everythinq for your qlory 8 [ ••• ] the host of knowledqe, to proclaim unto flesh miqhty deeds and solid precepts to the proqeny of 9 [woman? ••• ] You
137 An attempt to avoid thi• paradox ha• led •ome •cholare to conceive of Helchaloe literature a• •death-meditation•, • proleptically de•cribinq realitie• to be experienced fully at the end of earthly life. I would argue that Qumran, and the Helchaloe demon•trate that it i• po••ible to live on earth for a long time while experiencing the my•tical paradox.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
108
have brought him into a covenant with you and have uncovered the heart of dust so that he will be kept 10 ( ••• ] from the traps of judgement, by reason of your mercy. And I--creature 11 (of clay, ear of du]st and heart of stone--for whom am I taken to such an extent that 12 you have [g]iven [ ••• ] into an ear of dust and that you have inscribed events of eternity in the heart 13 [of stone? ••• ] you have caused [ ••• ] to cease, to bring into the covenant with you and to stand 14 (before you ••. ] in the eternal dwelling place, for the light of perfect light unto eternity without darkness 15 [ ••• witho]ut end and eras of peace without li[mit]. (1QH• XXI top, 6-15 (= 4Q427 5; 4Q428 10)) The
speaker does
not deny his
own humanity,
describes and owns angelic experiences.
even as
he
The paradox suggests
that the sectarians of Qumran experienced the possibilities of humanity more broadly,
or more liminally than the usually
conceived distinctions between heaven and earth allow.
On the
basis of the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice alone, FletcherLouis' contention that the sectarians are to be understood as the anqels described in that text seems tenuous.
Takinq the
Hodayot along with the Shirot, however, one can imagine how the
Qumran
sectarians
miqht
indeed
have
apprehended
the
invitations and descriptions of the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice in terms of celestial roles and experiences to be incorporated in their own lives. We cannot know certainly whether and how the Hodayot were used
liturgically
by
the
Qumran
sect. 138
It
138
seems
very
Schuller (p. 628) •ugge•t• that, •the ongoing debate about whether the Bodayoe were actually u•ed liturgically in the prayer of the community or whether they were more didactic and only for per•onal reflection need• to be reexaained now that we have a text with •uch a clear liturgical component.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
109
likely that they were
liturgically used,
probably in the
context of regular services of communal worship.
Calls to the
many, and blessings, such as we have seen, suggest this use. Still, even if such a composition as the invitation to angelic praise in 4Q427 were only read or recited devoutly outside of communal rites (which almost certainly was also the case) it would still have the effect of associating the reader with the elevated status of the speaker and drawing the reader into the celestial experience.
How much the more so, perhaps, were the
composition read aloud by a speaker whom the faithful revered and of whom they would believe the initial testimony of nearly divine stature.
How much the more effective, perhaps, if the
speaker were a chief-priest, clad in the majestic garments of service. Unmistakably, in any case, there is a hierarchy implied in the diction of 4Q427, which is very much in keeping with the known stratification of Qumran society.
Although the
speaker addresses his audience as "companions" (D,T,T,), he arroqates for celestials
himself a
(D,'2M),
supreme position,
even among the
and although he invites his fellows to
share in the rites of the heavenly sanctum, it does not appear that he invites them quite to his own stature.
rt seems
possible that the experience of the listeners was intended to be subsidiary and vicarious--a glimpse and a
taste of the
stature enjoyed in full by their elite or by their leader-especially
since,
as
Dombkowski
Hopkins
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
notes,
110
"Presumably ••• each member of the sect did not share in the same level of knowledge and enlightenment. " 139
The speaker
of
"Teacher
this
composition
Righteousness"
(il11n
need j1"T~)
not 140
be
--as
the
has
famed
been
suggested
of
some
scholars with regard to the Hodayot generally 141 --but his superlative self-glorification and his imperative elevation of the many necessitate considerable authority.
The mystical
experience suggested by the testament and the imperatives of that
text
is
one
founded
upon
a
presumption
of
devout
adherence of the listeners to the charismatic figure of the speaker,
to
such
an
extent
that
this
speaker's
self-
descriptions and his expectations of the many actually serve to define the identity of the listeners and expand their experienced abilities.
Again, this a very important paradiqm
of transformational leadership to discover in Jewish Late Antiquity. Who
is
the
speaker-leader
of
4Q427,
whose
angelic
qrandeur calls the many to give praise as angelic beings
l39
Dombkowski Hopkina, p. 357.
140 It ia even unclear what exactly it would mean could we conclude that the apeaker ia the, ~i3 ~11n aince Gaster (Dead Sea Scriptures, pp. 27-29), for instance, contenda that the term refers to an office held by several "teachers" in turn, while othera ... it as referential to a sinqle, foundinq fiqure of the aect. 141 Dombkowaki Hopkin& lista Van dar Ploeq, Merril, Brownlee and Vermea, •The Qumran CCIIIIDUnity and 1 Q Hodayot: A Reaaaeasment, • Revue de Qumran 10 (1981), pp. 331- 336. •Hyatt,• Dombkowaki writea, "takea the middle way; the author is at leaat a peraon of hiqh atandinq in the Qumran aect who •qeneralizea for all of mankind• from hia own experiences. • Cf. J.P. Hyatt, •The View of Man in the Qumran •Hodayot•,• Journal. of Semitic Studies 2 (1955-56), p. 276. Dombkowaki aidea with Hyatt•a view, more or leas, rejectinq the neceasity of identifying the Teacher aa the author of the Hodayot.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
111
themselves?
The apparent history of the sect, the mode of
psalmody, and the evidence to be considered below make a chief priestly figure the most likely candidate. was founded around a priestly core,
The sect at Qumran
and its vision of the
future is centered upon the priestly office.
The entire sect
seems to have been designed to support and champion its priestly caste and to eschaton.
realize a
priestly vision
of
the
Thus, the use of these Hodayot at Qumran may well
have corresponded closely to a role that carol Newsom has suqqested for the songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice.
Newsom
writes, Consider the situation of the members of the priesthood at Qumran. They understood themselves as alone representinq the true and faithful priesthood, i71'T~ ,l:l and j7'T~ ,l:l ["sons of Zadok" and "sons of riqhteousness"]· Yet physical realities contradicted their claim. Althouqh they were accorded special status within the community, the traditional marks of validation for their identity and leqitimacy as priests of God were not accessible to them. As members of the Qumran community, they did not have authority in the Jerusalem temple; they could not conduct its sacrificial service; they possessed neither the sacred vestments nor utensils. The danqer of this situation was not that outsiders would discount their claim but that their claims to the true priesthood would cease to remain plausible to the members of the sect themselves, especially those who were not of the foundinq qeneration. What may have been needed in such a situation was not merely rhetorical arguments to demonstrate the authenticity of the claims of the qroup, but rather some experientia~ validation of their claims. It seems that the community of Qumran as a whole was desiqned to enqender such an experiential validation. merely a political aqenda.
This was not
It was also a sincere effort to
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
112
transform
the
cosmos--or,
transformation.
The
at
Hodayot
least,
to
anticipate
compositions
that
we
its have
examined encourage their listeners to participate in the glory of their speakers--or, at least, to think of themselves in terms of that glory. Qumran in general, towards
an
These compositions, and the texts of
invite the sect to envision and to work
entire
cosmos
remade
around
their
priestly
leadership. The priests of Qumran could only have commanded the authority necessary to evoke such a vision if they already represented to their followers a heavenly reality manifest upon the earth.
lfedia'ting Angels in 'tile Divine Court on Bartb: Pries'tllood and !'eaple in au-ran Ideology
Apparently, the sect of Qumran was established around a core of former or aspiring temple priests, and perhaps around
a
single,
high-priestly
Righteousness.
figure
Throughout the
in
the
literature of
Teacher
of
Qumran,
the
priesthood holds a preeminent position in the community.
It
seems likely--especially in view of the sources to follow-that the Qumran community regarded its distinctive heritage and traditions as a priesthood.
legacy transmitted and ensured by its
The primacy of Levitical purity in the sect's
regulations, the temple-like heavens imagined by the sect, and even the importance of psalmody, all suggest that the sects's
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
113
exalted conception of its own stature and holiness had roots in a fascination with the priestly office. We have already seen,
through the Pesher,
4QAges of
creation (4Q181), that the Qumran community identified itself with the angelic stature of the patriarchal heroes as they appear
in
1Enoch and
other
apocalyptic
literature.
The
community evidently conceived of itself as the remnant of exalted rsrael, destined for victory the final stage of a conflict of cosmic and angelic forces of good and evil--a conflict
whose
fundamental
first
narratives
stages of
the
the
sect
discerned
pentateuchal
in
tradition
mediated through apocryphal and pseudepigraphic texts. book of Jubilees
the as The
(to be examined closely in the following
chapter), which seems to have informed the self-conception of the sect, is especially remarkable for its understanding of the priesthood in angelic terms. 142 Notably, the pseudepiqrapha peculiar to Qumran include a so-called Apocryphon of Levi (4Q540), a Testament of Qahat (4Q542),
and Visions of Amram
(4Q543-548),
documents that
suggest that the sect had an especial interest in the role and stature of the priestly line in the unfolding cosmic drama. The sectarian priesthood seems to chart the way into the angelic realm for its followers. 143 142
rf we understand the
Cf. Pletcher-Louia Luke-Act• ••• , p. 126.
143
Fletcher-Louia (Luke-Act•, p. 118) notea: "Already in Zechariah 3:110 the High Prieat haa a peculiar right of ace••• to the heavenly court and conaequent community with the angela.• Perhapa the aectarian priesthood at
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
114
Levi,
Qahat,
and
Amram-pseudepiqrapha
as
parts
of
the
foundation upon which the characteristic self-conception of the Qumran sect was built, then we can more readily comprehend the ways in which angels, priesthood, and temple appear in conjunction as a focus of fascination in other Qumran scrolls. With specific regard to the self-identification with angels of the Qumran sect, and the special station of the priesthood in this angelic self-conception, the Visions of Amram provide the most instructive passages.
While
less
explicitly angelic in focus, the Levi and Qahat pseudepigrapha of Qumran also do much to demonstrate and explain the central importance of the priesthood to the sect. one passage in the Apocryphon of Levi speaks of a special, priestly, intermediary instructor and savior-figure,
who might well
be Qumran's
initial Teacher of Righteousness: J ,Jl ~1J~ rr~nw,, ~li ,Jl ~J ~n 19J,, 4 ,,Jn ~n~n wnw ~N n1u1J ~J19~N1 1,nw lnNnJ NJWln ~iU, 1,iN l,Jn NJWlrr ~Ul NUlM ,,~~ ~lJl Mll~J ,~l~U 1,~n 1N,lW NnW,l, 1n N~91U1 NUlN 1[n] 5 ~1J1 1 1il, ,~,~n 1 ,Mil 1 1, [liJ] 6 ~lilll 1 11nM, ~1~~ [ ••• 1] 7 1,9N1 W,Nl ~li 11~~n, ,~l~D 1,N1Jl 11wJnw,1 ,~,n,,l Nnn ~nu,(l] ~n~n onrr1 1~w ,i1
~lnNn ~rn,,
~[nn]
And he shall atone for all the children of his generation, and shall be sent to all the children of 3 his [people]. His word is as the word of the heavens, and his teaching as the will of God. His eternal sun shall shine 4 and its light shall burn in all the ends of the earth; and above the darkness it shall shine. Darkness shall vanish 5 ( fr] Olll the earth and cloud fro• the dry land. They shall speak lllanY words of hilll, and many 6 [lie]s; they shall tell tales of hilll, and utter all disparagelllents against hilll. His generation shall ~an
invited it• follower• to •hare in thi• ace•••·
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
115
be evil and changed 7 (and ••• ] and its place shall be of deceit and violence. [And] the people shall go astray in his generation and they will be bewildered (4QApocrLevi~ (4Q541), 1, 2-7) For our purposes we should take especial note of the belief in the supernatural radiance of this priestly figure and his ability to mediate the divine and heavenly will to the people. The setting of this personage in a time of the people's going astray
accords
with
the
early
sect's
situation in the Jerusalem of its day,
estimation
of
the
and the theme of
defamation against the Teacher is well known from Qumran's
pesher documents.
Among the other fragments of this Levi
document, the one other passage that ought to be mentioned in connection with the centrality of a quasi-angelic priesthood at Qumran is the concluding prophecy: 6
[lfT:ln]
110, il:,TTM '21~'21 N11TT OW i1~1:1M'2 O,j2n1 MNJW 1n i11iln M'21 Mn'2D 1,ill:l ilTITn1 Mv1{~}n
And you shall raise up for your father a name of delight and for all your brothers a tested foundation. You will see and rejoice in eternal light, and you will not be of the enemy. Whether or not these words were written at (or of) Qumran at all, it seems very probable that this conclusion of the Levi document would have been understood by the sect as pointing to its
own
foundation.
A powerful,
priestly,
intermediary
figure, and his priestly adherents, credited with metaphysical distinctions, certainly stood at the center of the sect's early history and self-conception and just such a priestly
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
111
figure is clearly evident in the apocryphal pseudepiqrapha treasured by the group. The Apocryphon of Levi provides a basis for conceivinq of the priests as mediators of divine light and teachinq, and it establishes the priesthood as the basis from which the final triumph of the faithful over the forces of darkness will be achieved.
The surviving fraqments of Qumran's Testament of
Qahat (4Q542) tell of a special, divine knowledge associated with these priestly roles,
and they emphasize a carefully
quarded continuity and purity in the transmission of this knowledge
throuqh
eschaton--that
is,
the to
line
of
Qumran.
Levi
to
The
the
time
Testament
of
of
the
Qahat
promises, apparently to Qahat's priestly descendants, that God will cause His liqht to shine upon them, and allow them to know His "qreat name"
(N~1
NnW)
(1,
r,
line 1).
The text
adjures them to be exceedinqly careful with this inheritance (line 4), breeds"
quardinq it from foreigners
(l,N~,J)
(l,1Jll)
or "half-
(line 5), "because, beinq resident amonq you,
they will become chiefs over you" (lines 6-7).
They are to
take such care so that the inheritance may be transmitted in truth, perfection, and purity (lines 12-13). exclusive
leqacy
of
divine
knowledqe,
The idea of an
the
accompanyinq
admonishment, and the dire prediction of subjuqation, accord with the picture of a priestly qroup claiming sole leqitimacy but
beset
by
temporally
powerful
opponents--the
picture
presented by the Halakhic Letter of Qumran's leadership at the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
117
time of he sect's foundation. this
true
line
of
teaching,
is
essential
agency
the
As in the Apocryphon of Levi,
priesthood,
with
its
proprietary
presented in the Testament of Qahat as the in
the
eventual
triumph
of
light
over
darkness: 713 2 [ ••• l,n7D 1713 iD1 1D3 1n U1W1~~ 11Jn97N 1 lJlJW, Nn7D nJ1~ 3 [ ••• 1113,7ll Nn'N, NUW1~ 1nn ilD M71 l,n7ll , , i 71J7 DN~ 4 [ ••• 111il71 11J,7ll 6 [ ••• 71D l , i lin7 11n1~n1 113i10, 1n s ( ••• 19n NnW(,1N:ll 7 (···1-~TT l,n7D ,:l,TT 71J n~1TT N,TTTn71 11lli,1 NUW1~ ,1(i1~ 8 (···1·7~7 N,77TT 71J~1 N'n1iln~1 i1~9n NJN ,,~ D1nll il37 lllJ1 9 [ ••• N1UW,1 ,J~ 71J 11 ( ••• 1 i~9n NJ N 1 1 i1, J ~ 71 i1 { N} J, ( J ~ 7 1 1 10 ( ••• ,~nJ 713 12 ( ••• ~il1, ,7 ,~N , 171 ,~N , 177 1~il, 1 il~1 lJT llil~ llJ7 13 ( ••• 1 llil~ l11iliTn , i 1iilW~ vacat 11Jnu 11iln1J7,ilnN~
I have taught you in truth from now and unto all (eternity ···1 2 all the word of truth will come upon y[ou ···1 3 eternal blessings will rest upon you and will be ( ••• 1 4 will abide for all the generations of eternity and there will be no more ••• (···1 5 from your foundation, and you will rise to judge judgement up (on ••• 1 6 and to see the sinfulness of all the sinners of eternity ••• [ ••• 1 7 and in fire and in the abyssfesf, and in all the caves, so that there will not ••• [ ••• ] 8 in the generations of truth, and all the children of evil will vanish[ ••• ] 9 And now, to you, Amram, my son, I charg(e ••• ] 10 and to your (so]ns and to their sons I charge (···1 1~ and they gave to Levi my father, and Levi ga(ve] to me ( ••• ] 12 all my writings as witness that you shall take care with them[ ••• ] 13 for you; through them you will merit much, through their being carried on with you. We have already seen the importance of esoteric knowledge to the Qumran community--the knowledge spoken of in the Hodayot and we shall observe it again in the indoctrinating teachings of the sect.
This fragment from the Testament of Amram
identifies the priests as the guardians through whom the essential
knowledge
has
been
passed,
and
it
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
links
this
118
transmission
of
knowledge
directly
to
triumph of the elect over the wicked.
the
eschatological
In view of these
testaments it seems very probable that the exclusive, exalted self-conception of the Qumran sect was a priestly product or, at least, that the sect conceived of itself and its mission as fulfilling a charge and a promise transmitted through the true lineage of Levi to the priestly leadership of Qumran. The Visions of Amram (4Q543-548) make apparent that the vaunted legacy and destiny transmitted through the line of Levi were imagined as an angelic identity.
inheritance and an assurance of
The text presents itself as the vision
revealed by Amram to his sons 144 on his deathbed in Eqypt (4Q543, frag. 1, lines 1-8).
(Intriguingly, Amram includes
among those SWDDloned his son,
"Malachiah"
(Anqel of God) ,
perhaps a designation for Aaron or for Moses.)
The start of
the vision related by Amram is the apparition to him of two chief angels, who quarreled over him and ultimately allowed him to choose the one who would govern him (4Q544, 1, 10-14; 2,
1-6;
3,
1-2).
The
first
is
Malki-resha
(angel-of-
wickedness), dreadful and pestilential in appearance, ruling in darkness over all that is dark.
The other, whose three
names have not survived the fragmentation of the document, is benevolent of aspect and controls "all the sons of light."
It
seems evident that these anqels are, respectively, none other
144
Mi.riam i• al•o . .ntioned at the beginning of the text, but •eeminqly before Amraa •ummon• Aaron and begin• the revelation.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
111
than Belial (or Azazel) and the opposed Angel of God's Truth (or Light),
who control the forces of darkness and light
respectively in so many of Qumran's documents.
The identity
of the sect as the Sons of Light is thus rooted in the legend of a fateful choice made by Amram of the line of Levi, the progenitor of priestly leadership. Quite unfortunately, the passage introducing the legacy and status that Amram transmits to his sons is very poorly preserved, but it involves the following words: ~M
•••
1~1 .•• ~M1W,
1~ ~o1~
••• ~nJrr 1~ 1nJ1 1,n~u •.. 1~ 1nJ1 1,i1 Mi ND1M~ i~Dn •.• ~1~nn ~M 1M~n1 ~1~n ••• i~Dn ~~ ..• 1,n~D ,,i~ .•• ] ~J~ 1nw ~~
and we shall give to you ••• eternal, and we shall give to you wisdom ••• will be added to you ••• A celestial shall you be; and 'Angel of God' shall you be called • • • you will do in this land, and judgement ••• and when your name, for all ••• for the generations of eternity ••• in it you shall do ••• Israel (4Q543, 3, 1-6, cf. 4Q545, 1, I, 15-18) Fragmentary
as
the
God" he
(~1~n
(~M 1M~n),
acquires
is,
it
reads
as
an
angelic
The one to whom it is addressed is to be
commissioning. celestial
passage
~M)
and acquires the designation "Angel of
a status, involving powers of judgement, which
by virtue of
notably, wisdom.
an entrusted
legacy
including,
There is no "like" or "as" in the language
of this elevation; the beneficiary is to be angelic, nothing less, and yet be is also a human being.
The paradox of
this passage from the Visions of Amram suggests a particular understanding at Qumran of the promise made to the Joshua the High Priest in Zechariah's vision:
"If you will keep my trust
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
120
then you too shall judqe my house, and I shall qive you access amonq these [celestials) who stand here"--not someday, but immediately,
as
Joshua's
purification suqqest. fulfillment
of
the
heavenly
transformation
and
That is to say, in Qumran's ideoloqy priestly
role
on
earth
involves
the
assumption of an actual anqelic identity, allowinq access to the anqelic world.
This is paradoxical, to be sure; but the
paradox seems preferable to ascribinq an ideoloqy of mere "analoqy"
or
"imitation"
to
the Qumran
priesthood.
The
paradox is preferable because it does more to account for the texts before us. Allowinq for paradox in the self-experience of the Qumran priesthood does a qreat deal, for example, to account for the followinq blessinq from lQSb, the Rule of Benedictions, that appears to be addressed to the priestly initiate: ,~~M il~J~ Wil~ 11Dn~ C,J9 1M~nJ 25 ~nMl CD ~11l ~,9n1 n1J~n 26 ~J,~l n1wn ~,~o ~,~[n1 27 M,J ~J ,~~ ~1J~1 C~1D nD~ [ ••• ] liT, n~Dl C,J9 ~~n~ [ ••• )11Mn~1 1nD~ w11~ ~Jn,w,, ,,~9W[n ~1J nnM] W"'Tl~~ 1T J (~Jn,UP 1 ••• ] 28 0,~1 , J9 1,M~~1 nllil 1,W1i~1 lnW i~Jnl 1~ Wi[~n ~nM )M,J C,Wil~
•••
nl]M~~
,JM~n
May you be 25 as an anqel of the countenance in the holy habitation for the qlory of the God of Hos[ts ••• You shall] be about, servinq in the sanctuary of the 26 kinqdom, and castinq your lot with the anqels of the countenance and the council of the community [ ••• ] for eternal time and for all the perpetual periods. For 27 [all] his [ju]dqements (are truth.] And may he make you hol(y] amonq his people, like a luminary [ ••• ] for the world in knowledqe, and to shine on the face of the many 28 [ ••• And may he make you) a diadem of the holy of holies, because [you shall be made ho]ly for him and you shall qlorify his name and his holy ones. 1Q28b (lQSb) IV, 24-28
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
121
The blessing wishes that the priest inhabit both the "holy habitation" 145 and the "sanctuary of the kingdom," sharing a lot146 with the
"angels of the countenance"
"council of the community." earthly
distinctions
and also the
This alternation of heavenly and
strongly
suggests
a
convergence
of
angelic and human qualities and experiences in the person of the priest, and the assurance of eternity in line 26 also points to
a
preternaturalization of the priest's
status.
Certainly this blessing urges the priest to think of himself as angelic. The
blessing
of
initiation
above
bears
remarkable
similarity to a passage from Jubilees in which the patriarch rsaac blesses Levi, and in which it is equally apparent that the priesthood is to fulfill an angelic role: May the Lord give you and your seed greatness and great glory. May he draw you and your seed near to him from all flesh to serve in His sanctuary as the angels of the presence and the holy ones. May your sons' seed be like them with respect to honor and greatness and sanctification... And they will 145
11un, the word translated here as •habitation•, can certainly mean the earthly Temple, conceived as a divine dwelling place; however, more so than llJn (also habitation), or lJwn (locua of God's indwelling), 11nn maintains the connotation of God' a celestial dwelling place. llDn can also signify •lair, • as of a lion (Nah.2:12) or jackals (Jer.10:22), and so the word suggests the place in which a baing is moat at home--for God, the heavena. rn Deuteronomy 26: 15, God is exhorted to look down •o,nUli1 1n 1Ui"Ti7 11nnn•, •from Your holy habitation, from the heavens.• rn Jeremiah 25:30 God'a roar ia heard from on high, •1w~i7 11unn.• Pea~ 91:9 declares, •1llDn nnw Ul,n•, •you have placed your dwelling place on high.• rn Second Chronicles, the prayer of the priests blessing the people reaches •n,nw~ 1W~i7 11un~·, •to [God's) holy habitation, to the heavens.• A wonderfully ambiguous usage is found in Zechariah 2:17, in which the human host falls ailent when God takes up residence in Jerusalem, •1Wii7 11unn 11Dl ,J., for Be has roused B~aelf from Ria holy habitation.• 146
Licht (p. 285) points out the a~ilar usage of •casting a lot• to mean volitionally joining a group in Proverbs 1:14. There, by contrast, the fatal choice described is the joining of the wicked.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
122
become judges and rulers and leaders for all the seed of the sons of Jacob. The word of the Lord they will speak righteously, and all of his judgements they will execute righteously. And they will tell my ways to Jacob, and my paths to Israel. The blessing of the Lord shall be in their mouth, so that they might bless all of the seed of the beloved." Commenting on this passage, in connection with the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice, Fletcher-Louis concludes that here, in
Jubilees,
we find "evidence that Mal
2:6-7
(in which the
priest is called a malach of God] represented and provided support for a post-exilic exploration of the angelomorphic identity of the human priesthood. n
Our passage from lQSb
reads as a something of a radicalization of this Jubileestradition. From the perspective of the general sectarian community, the adherents of the priestly core, the angelification of the priest perhaps appeared even closer to complete. Louis writes,
As Fletcher-
again in connection with the Songs
of the
Sabbath Sacrifice: "Like the author of Jubilees the community
which
recited the
Songs
were prepared
to
see
the
human
priesthood as angelomorphic and they both did so within the context of an ongoing tradition of biblical interpretation." (p.9)
If the blessing from lQSb, above, charges the priest to
be holy and luminous, transmitting knowledge from on high and
representing the glory of God to the people, this is probably very much as the people of Qumran experienced him, whatever the priest's own internal. experience of his angelification may have been.
The foll.owing passage,
also from the Rule of
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
123
Benedictions,
although
more
fragmentary,
impression that the priest is mediating
angel
to
the
many,
to
fulfill
and
strengthens
the
the role of a
further
indicates
a
convergence of the earthly priesthood and the angelic host: ~(1~~1
n,,,
~~,n~T
n1n],J n,11
~~,~M
1,Jg ,l1TM MW,
~~(,]W1T~ ~1~ T1~9,1 1n~, 2 ~(~nJ1]~~~ ,~w1, ~~W11~ ~~niD ~1~ ~M 1,Jg 3 M(W, ]~~D1T ~1~( ••• ]1n~1 T 1 ~~~ ~~D1 T Wi~ (, 1 TD i] 1 ~~~ 4 1 ~ ( ••• ] ••• ( ••• ] ~~~ 1n, C~(1D ••• ] ,JTT 5 ••• [ ••• 1,J9 M]W, D~(1]D WT1 ]~ ,~N~n CD1 1W~n C( ••• ]... 6 ••• ( ••• ]n1~~n1
... [ ...
~ May the Lord lift his face towards you, and the plea(sant] aroma (of your offerings may he smell, and al]l those who belong to (yo]ur priesthood 2 may he choose. And may he visit all your holy one(s], and in ( ••• ] all your descendants. (May he li]ft 3 his face towards all your community. May he place on your head [ ••• ] ••• 4 in (perpetual] glor[y, and may he] make your descendants holy with eternal glory. May he lif(t his face •• ] ••• 5 ( ••• ] May he give you (eter]nal ( ••• ] and the kingship ( ••• ] 6 ( ••• ] from flesh. And with the h[oly] angels [ ••• ] (1Q28b (lQSb) lQRule of Benedictions, III, 1-6)
Notably, the motif of distinctive headdress--again reminiscent of
the
angelic
elevation
Zechariah's vision with its
of
Joshua
11~u~ ~,J~
the
High
Priest
in
(pure turban)--appears
in this passage just at the point at which the distinctions wished upon the priest shift from the earthly to the angelic. This passage suggests once more that fulfilling the priestly role on earth entailed an assumption of angelic identity. priest serves
the
role of
an angel
of
the
The
countenance,
mediating the divine glory, and divine will and judgement, to the earthly community.
The two passages just quoted from the
Rule of Benedictions make the angelification of the priest
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
124
explicit.
The followinq one is more ambiguous, but important
nonetheless: 11~ 717Jn ~Jn,w,, lWi]l~ 11un]n ,JliN ~JJ1~, ~J7 Wi[IT, C71D ]nll~J n,1~1 C,Wli~ 26 c,~iJ 7[1J ~19]W, ~J,,wun~l Wil~ [ 2111nn~ ]~Jnl~n 11n~
nJJn,l
71J ]n,w1
c,nn [ 28,1W ]71J 11~, ~J~,~ 1w~ 71J
~J7,nJ,
7tnnl c,J[inn
~J,ngw
n~n1
May the Lord bless you from His holy habitation. May he set you as a qlorious ornament in the midst of 26 the holy ones and may he renew unto you the covenant of eternal priesthood. And may he qrant you your place [in the] holy [habitation]. 27 May he j[udqe al]l the nobles by your works and by what issues from your lips all the [princes of] 28 the nations. May he qive you to inherit the first fruits of [all de]liqhts. And by your hand may he bless the counsel of all flesh. (lQSb, III, 25-28) This passaqe is a prime example of what miqht be termed, "earthly anqelification" translate the priest, heavenly
realm,
nor
at Qumran.
to whom it does
it
It does not clearly is
addressed,
clearly
set
him
into the amonq
the
ministerinq anqels in the celestial throne room--we have seen that "holy ones"
in the Qumran scrolls can mean both the
anqels and the members of the sect. this
passaqe
uses
and
the
Yet the lanquaqe that
preroqatives
it
bestows--the
qrantinq of a place in the holy habitation, the involvement in divine judqement, and assiqnment to mediate divine blessinq-not only model the priesthood upon the anqelic paradiqm, but suqqest a de facto anqelification of the priest, at least in relation to the people beneath him. That the mediation of divine liqht and blessinq by the priesthood was imaqined at Qumran as somethinq supernatural,
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
125
and as involved with heavenly forces and beings, is suggested by one of the very few surviving shreds of a work designated the Apocryphon oL Hoses (1Q29, 4Q375-376).
The fragmentary
state of the document makes it impossible to discern exactly the context of the priestly mediation described, or even to identify the all of the entities involved.
Other fragments of
the same text describe a sacrificial rite of atonement and the approach of the priest to the Ark of the Testimony, so the setting is most likely the service of the Day of Atonement-and the communal experience is decidedly preternatural:
7D 1WM
n,7MnW~ 1~~~ n17~ 1 1nWJ1 ~nM1 [ •••
1~17
l~M~ WM n1J1W7~ 1nu M~,, ~~11,M, 1 IU 7~~~ 71~ ,l,U7 ~7ln ,7MnW~ 2 11~ ] ••• 7 7 [ ••• (?) 1JD~3 ] ~7UJ 1TTM1 ~~,7(M] 1~1, (1WM] 7(1~ ~n,W]U1
~ they shall illumine you, and it will go out with him in tongues of fire. The left-hand stone, that is at its 2 left side shall be revealed to the eyes of all the congregation until the priest finishes speaking. And after the [cloud (?) ] has been lifted up 3 [ ••• ] and you shall keep and d[o all] [that] he speaks to you.
Apparently the priest--probably as he exits from the holy of holies--is
involved
in
a
revelation
of
divine
will,
accompanied by visible fire and light, seemingly proceeding from the temple, and a cloud, which may be the smoke of the incense and which,
in any event,
presumably indicates the
presence of God in the sanctuary.
As an apocryphon,
the
fragments of this text read as an expansion or reworking of Leviticus
and,
as
originate at Qumran.
such,
the
text
does
not
necessarily
Nevertheless, the document can help us
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
121
to understand what the Qumran community may have expected from the priestly office. Several
fragments
of
a
text
designated
4QBlessings
(4Q286-290) comprise a rich catalog of heavenly fixtures and inhabitants, reminiscent of those in the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice.
read
In tone, as well as in content, these passages
remarkably
strings
of
like much
later hekhalot
noun-constructions,
listing
texts
and
in
their
evoking
features of the highest heavens: ~~in1n ,n11[n]~ ~~i1~~ ~n~ 1 l91N1 ~n~,~11~ ~~i1~~
i 1~ i10
,,
~ 1 T1
WN , '0 1n 3 [ ~n~ ] , i 1 0 7 1 ~ 1 ] N79 1 11Nn1 D 1 11N n[11]~l 1 s ( N7]9 n1N9n 0111 1~1[T 011~n1 Wi1~ 1 WDU [ 6 ••• n]1N911 n1N11l 7i111 n1rr~wn 1i~ n111~1 7 ~n ••• ~l,~{n} 11~n1 ~Di n,J~n1 ~n~1rr i1D D 1 N79 1]W1, ,J1~n1 ~i~ ,J~n 7~w 1~1N nnN i101 Wi1~ n~n1 1 T11 D71D 1 niT11 nnN 1 iDIT1 ~1\l n1lD1 0 1 iDTT 8 [~1 1 7li1 ~nl1~n~ Wi1~ 1 D1~W1 .[ ••• ]1~~ 9 [ ••• 0 1 N]79 1 iD1nl il~~ ~nn191~n~ 0 1 . [ ••• ] 10 [ ••• ]D 1 Wi1TT ~nn1~]7rrn~ p1N n1n~w1 [ ••• ] 11 [ ••• ~n]n1i1nn~ [ ••• ]7[ ••• ].1 ~l 1 111(i ••• ] 12 ••• 111i 1 iD[1n1 ~
i1~~ 0111 ~1~n1 n1(i1~]
l 1l
,
1i~1
~,
711 ,n1i~1 ~~1~, ~w1n n1~~1n1 ~~W1i~ 2 (l]1in1
1
:lCll1
i[1~4
[ • • • 1] WTTl 1 1 N [ ••• ]
13
the seat of Your honor and the footstools of your glory in the [hei]ghts where You stand and the pa(th] 2 of your holiness and the chariots of your glory, their keruvim and their ofanim and all their councils 3 foundations of fire and bright flames of light and radiances of splendor, ri[ve]rs of light and luminaries of wonder 4 [splend]or and beauty, and exalted glory, council of holiness and pla[ce of rad] ience and height of beauty, wonders of 5 maje(sty] and gathering place of mighty deeds, splendor of praises and greatness of wonders and healing(s ••• ] 6 wondrous works, counsel of wisdom and form of knowledge and source of understanding ••• [ ••• ] 7 and holy council and council of truth, store of intelligence from the sons of righteousness and habitations of upr(ightness, qreat of] 8 lovingkindnesses and responses of good and true lovingkindnesses and eternal mercies and wondrous myste[ries ••• ] 10 [ ••• ] in their in their seasons and periods of glory in [their] announced
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
the
127 times~~ [ ••• ] and Sabbaths of the land [in their] divi[sions and the fixed] times of release •.• ~2 [ ••• et]ernal releases and[ ••• ] ~3 [ ••• ]light and dark[ness ••• ] (4Q286 1, II, 1-13)
God's footstool usually suggests the temple and the Ark of the Covenant, 66:1,
as opposed to the heavenly throne--as in Isaiah
Lamentations
2:1,
Psalms
99:5
and
132:7,
and
1
Chronicles 28:2--but here, remarkably, the divine footrests are in the heavens.
This subsuming of the divine footstool
among the heavenly paraphanalia perhaps indicates that the temple-court sectarians,
that the one
held
the
fascination
into which they
of
the
Qumran
imagined themselves,
presently and in the earthly world of the eschaton, was the celestial sanctuary.
The word i10 is used in this passage as
it is used elsewhere of the sect, to designate a close group or gathering,
and the catalog of such convocations in the
heavenly setting, each designated a particular virtue, might indicate that the sectarians believed it was possible to take part in those assemblies by manifesting their respective virtues. The setting of all these wonders is imagined to be the temple.
This is made apparent by a fragmentary passage from
the second fragment of 4Q286,
in which the catalog of the
heaven1y assemblies and their attributes continues: ~n~,]i10~[ ••• ] 2 [W]i~n ,Nwn ,IT11 ~131 ~n1i~ TlD~ r1u~ ugwn nNJ~ .[ ••• ] 3 rr13~ o,~N ,,,~l ~nn1~wn[~1 O,Wil~ Wi[1~ ••• ] 5 ~3Wi1~ OW nN ~n~13 iiT[,~4 ]
11M1
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
128
••• in the strength of their majesty, and all the spirits that bear the sanctuary 2 [ ••• ] in [their] councils [and in] their [d]ominion, celestial valiant ones in strength 3 [ ••• ] the zeal of judgement in might 4 [to]gether all of them Your holy name 5 [ ••• ho]ly of holies, and light (4Q286 2, 1-6) The designations, (tPWil~
Wil~)
"sanctuary"
(Wi~n)
and "holy of holies",
suggest strongly that the paradigm for the
heavenly imagining of 4QBlessings is the Jerusalem temple, and so too do the architectural and decorative images and the holy service--and servants--evoked in the following passage from 4Q287: ••• ]D
••• ] 2 [ ••• ]~n~,,,J ~[n ••• ]1 ~n~[ ••• ] 1 n1n'11 ~nil:lJ ,n[ ••• ] 3 [ ••• ]~n1i~ nl,J[:ln [ ••• ]. lJD ,n111 WN ,JN'1n ~n.[ ••• ] [ 4 ••• ] .[ ••• ] ••• [ ••• ] 6 [ ••• D,W]il~ Wil~ ,n11 nn~11 8 [ ••• ,]iDln '11J:l D,Wil~[ ••• 7 ] [ ••• ]Wil~ ,D,~11 ,n1wn '11Jl ~n[ ••• ] 9 [ ••• ~]Jnl~l'1M il:lJ cw nN[ ••• ] W(ili2] 11 [ ••• ~n],tmln c,nn:l[ ••• ] 10 [ ••• Wil]i2 n1N9n:l ~J,]n1wn ['11J] 12 ••• [ ••• ~J,n1J'1]n ,'1J,~:l ~J~~~ ,JN'1[n ,J]lDn:l ~JWili2[ ••• 13 ] ,JN'1n ~n11~[ ~n~[
~n~,N'19 1~[1T] 5
]their[ ••• ] and[ ••• ] their platforms[ ••• ] their [ ••• ] their majestic [str]uctures [ ••• ] 3 their glorious [ ••• ] • • • their wonderful doors [ ••• ] 4 [ ••• ] their [ ••• ] the angels of fire and the spirits of cloud [ ••• ] 5 [ ••• sp]lendor of the embroidery of the spirits of the holy of hol [ ies ••• ] 6 [ ••• ] ••• [ ••• ] and the holy firmaments [ ••• ] 7 [ ••• ] the holy ones in all the appointed tim[es ••• ] 8 your glorious divine name [ ••• ] 9 [ ••• ] and all the h[oly] servants [ ••• ] 10 [ ••• ] in the perfection of t[heir] deeds [ ••• ] 11 [ ••• hol]y in [Your] r[oyal] palaces [ ••• ] ••• 12 [ ••• ] all who serve [ You with] their majestic [beauty]. The angels of 13 [ ••• ]your holy[ ••• ] in the dwelli[ngs of the an]gels of your righteousness (4Q287, 2, 1-13 (=4Q286 12)) 1
2
[ •••
[ ••• ]
The combination of heavenly description and "appointed times"
reminds of certain Apocalyptic literature,
Jubilees and 1Enoch.
However,
notably
in terms of classification,
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
121
there is no escaping that, 4QBlessings is, very literally, a bekbalot-text--that is, a text concerned with the details of the temple-like chambers of heaven--and the similarity of this document's
phraseology
and
tone
compositions is equally striking.
to As I
classic
helchalot
agree with a
late
(post-talmudic) dating of the compilation and redaction of the hekhalot literature,
I can entertain the notion of a direct
connection, or series of simple links, between the sectarian outpost at Qumran--destroyed in 68CE--and the mysticism of the classic hekhalot texts only with considerable skepticism. Still,
in the face of that skepticism, it would be well to
remember
that
a
transcription
of
the
so-called
Damascus
Covenant did land in the Cairo Genizah (not to mention a copy
of the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifices at Masada).
That is to
say, some documents treasured at Qumran, including decidedly sectarian writings, found lives beyond the sect itself. Dimant has written that, at Qumran, "the coJDJDunity, or, in fact, its core of full members, functioned analogically to a community of priestly angels, officiating in the innermost sanctuary of the heavenly temple. " 147
The texts we have
seen suggest that we must go farther--beyond analogy--and say that the community at Qumran was centered upon a priesthood conceived of and experienced in angelic terms and that the piety, and the self-conception of Qumran was centered upon the possibility of partaking in the angelic identity vouchsafed to 147
Dimant, P• 98.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
130
the priests.
Again, this self-understanding is paradoxical,
and we must ask what sense it can have made to human beings who--notwithstanding experience
the
their
temporal
lofty
and
imaginings--continued
quotidian
realities,
not
to to
mention the indignities, of an embattled earthly life. one solution would be to posit that the transformed identity is experienced only transiently, intermittently, or proleptically, at the height of special rites and practices, or that the mystic is only a sometime visitor to the world of the angels. angelic
Certainly, there do appear to be high-points of
experience
at
Qumran,
especially
in
liturgical
compositions--in certain of the Hodayot and possibly in the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice.
Yet the angelic status of the
sect does not come across in its literature as transient or restricted to certain times.
As we have seen, angelic status
is termed as an abiding state of being.
Again, the key to
understanding this paradox is in remembering that the sect believed it was living in the eschaton, when the kingdom of God would be realized in the earth.
That is, the sectarians
did not need to experience journeys to the heavens or even imagine dramatic transformations of their physical bodies in order to assume angelic identities because the heavenly world was coming to them.
This belief is especially manifest with
regard to the Temple as conceived by the sect.
Even the
sanctuary as ideally conceived in the so-called Temple Scroll-not to mention the Temple under Hasmonean and Herodian
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
131
control--is only a place-holder for the divine sanctum soon to be established on the earth: n1~n ~M1t1P
[ ••• ] ,,~n ,nW 4 [l,~W]N 1WN n,~~ [ ••• ] , l ~ nNn i,nn s ilTil U!JWllil n1 1n~ 1n1, :l ~,~~, ilnil,1iJ ~,~~ 6 l:l,,i2, 1WM ~,~~ ilnilnl~iJn ,,ill en,~,, 1 (iln]il~ 11~1~ ,~ 1M,~, 1WM ilnil,nlJnn D~ln~ ilnnM 8 ,nJ~Wl C~ln~ Oil~ il,ilN ,~llNl Dn~ ,~ nM ,,~n 9 l,~WD 1WN ~il~~~ ,Wij2[n nnN] ~W1j2Ml inl ll,~il~ 10 ,Wij2n nN ,JN N1:lN 1WM il,1:lil 01, 1n ,il~~ ~N n,~~ ~li2n, on ,n,~ 1WM n,,:l~ c,n,il ~lJ ,~ [Dl,]
i~~
[ ••• ] In the house 4 upon which I [shall make] my name [reside ••• ] burnt offerings, [day] by day, according to the rule of this requlation, s continually, form the children of Israel, besides their freewill offerings. All that they will offer me, 6 all their vows and all their presents which they bring me for th[eir] acceptance 7 I shall accept them. They shall be for me a people and I will be for them forever; and I shall dwell 8 with them forever and always. I shall sanctify my [te]mple with my glory, for I shall make my glory reside 9 upon it until the day of creation, when I shall create my temple, 10 to establish it for myself for all days, according to the covenant which I made with Jacob at Bethel. (11Q19, XXIX, 3-10)
As Lawrence Schiffman has written, even the "ideal Temple" imagined by the
~emple
Scroll "would be replaced in the end of days
with a divinely created sanctuary. " 148
If this is so, then
we might say, conversely--and the sectarians of Qumran may have believed--that the angels
in heaven were themselves
place-holders for the sectarian priesthood and its supporters, who would assume their rightful positions in and around God's true sanctuary as soon as it was established in their earthly Lawrence Schiffman, •The r ..p~e Scro~~ and the Mature of ita Law,• p. 43. •until then,• Schiffman writea, •the author/redactor aaw hia acroll aa repreaenting the correct way in which the Temple wa• to be built and operated.• 148
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
132
world.
This hypothetical conception helps us to understand
how a priest of Qumran could hope to inhabit simultaneously the "sanctuary of the kingdom" and the "holy habitation" of the heavens, and it helps us to understand how the sect of Qumran may have experienced an intensification of angelic identity while yet inhabiting the earth.
If,
as Wolfson
defines it, true mysticism involves an ontic transformation-an experience of becoming angelic or divine--how do
its
practitioners account for the persistence of their earthly lives? world
Qumran answers this challenge with an ideology of a in
transformation,
so
that
angelic
identity
is
increasingly the natural state of the elect in the earth.
!'he Sel:r-Glori:rication B}'ml
4Q49~c::
Before turning to the so-called War Scroll generally, a brief
look
at
the
embedded
text
known
as
the
Self-
Glori:rication Hymn will serve to strengthen the conclusions that are emerging in this chapter.
The fragment reads as
follows: 1n11:11 TT(1:J:l ••• ] 2 [ ••• ]n1N11l il'9il[ ••• ] ••• [ ••• ] 1 ••• ] 3 ~~~:1( ••• ]:1 O,W11~ 17,1,1 0(,~,]1~ (1]ll1, ••• 111 111 7]1:J:l 1nn1D ,T11 1nnM TNn ill,:Jil 7N1W[, c,n71D n1D7 o,J,:lN n~u1 c,n[ ••• ] ••• [ ••• 4 ] 7,rr( l:lW, 7:1 C,7M niD:l T1D MO:J O,n7[1D ••• 5 ] ,n,nn[ ••• ]. 6 ,n11 N.[ ••• N]17 ilnil,:l,lll 01~ ,:J7n 71:J 1:1 Ml:l, M171 ,n71T 0n11, M171 {ilnl,} M17 ,11:l:J[ ••• ] 01:1,.[ ••• ] 7 l,M1 O,DW:l il[ ••• ]:l ,n:lW, ,lM M,:J M,:l ,n]1Mn 1W:l:J M17 W11~ niD:l ,l1:Jn1 :lWTT 1" 1nN 0,7M CD ,lN T1:17 M,[n] Wl1~il 11(Dn ••• ] 8 11:l:J:l ,7 1~, 71:J( M,:J :l1W, C, ,M:l:J (M]1il M,n M,7 ilni, ,11:l:J:l M,n1 ,:1 :lWTTl M, n 1 , l 1n:J c, 1D~ ( 7 1 :J M1til, M, n 1n ( ••• 1 9 190 { • } 1 10 ilnln M17 il,11il1 ,n,lWl l,M1 N,:l ilnlil D1 7(1:10,]
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
133
M,n ,ngw ~Tnl[ M,9 ,n]ng~ M,J{l}i'l, M,U .[ ,n,,,~~1 u1 1~n~ ,.,,., ••• ] 11 ,ugwn~ ~n,.,, ,J,.,n, M,n, ~,3, ,inDn e,~M en M,JM M,[3 ~ni, Ml~ e,Wli~~ {? M1~1) M,~l T9 (? Ml~) M,~ 1~n~ ,J~ en .,11J3[1 ] 13 ~[ ••• ] vacat [ ••• ] vacat [ ••• ] 12 e,1,91M en3 [ ••• 1]~11nr W1'1i7~ 11Dn~[ ••• ] ,~,~M~ e,~,in[ 1JJ1 l,M, e,n~1n nnnw~[ ••• ] ~J1 M,l~~ ,n,nw[~ ••• ] 14 ~[ ••• ] 16 [ ••• ,n,]wn 11~ e,~~~ e[ ••• ] 1s [ ••• ].3 [ ••• ]n13J ,,., n,,.,~~ ~
[ ••• ] has done awesome thinqs wondrously[ ••. ] 2 [ ••• in the streq]th of His power the ju[st] exult and the holy ones rejoice in [ ••. ] in riqhteousness. 3 [ ••• I]srael He established from of old; His truth and the mysteries of His wisdom in al[l generations ••• ] miqht 4 [ ••• ] • • • [ ••• ] ••• and the council of the poor for an eternal conqregation. [ ••• ] the perfect ones of 5 [ ••• et] ernal; a miqhty throne in the conqregation of the celestials, in which none of the kings of the East will sit, and their nobles n[ot ••• ] my silence (?) 6 [ ••• ] my qlory shall not {be compared} and none other shall be exalted besides me, nor come against me for I have sat in[ ••• ], in the heavens and there is no 7 [ ••• ] I am reckoned amonq the celestials and my dwellinq-place is in the holy congregation. (My] des[ire] is not like (that of) flesh, [but] all that is dear to me is in (the) qlory (of) 8 [ ••• ] holy [hab]itation. [W]ho has been considered despicable on my account? And who is comparable to me in my glory? Who, like the seafarers, will come back and tell? 9 [ ••• ]Who will bea(r all] sorrows as I do? And who (suffe]rs evil like me? There is none. I have been instructed, and no teaching is comparable 9 [to my teachinq ••• ]And who will attack me when [I] op[en my mouth]? And who can measure what flows from my lips? And who will confront me and retain comparison with my judgement?~~ [ ••• friend of the king, companion to the holy ones ••• incomparable, f]or (as for) me, [my] standinq in rank is with the celestials and my qlory is with the sons of the kinq. Mine is (Not?) [pur]e qold and mine is (not ? ) the gold of Ophir ~2 [ ••• ] blank [ ••• ] blank [ ••• ] ~3 [ ••• exult,] righteous ones, in the God of [ ••• ] in the holy habitation chant to H[im ••• ] ~4 [... cau]se joy to be he[ard] in the meditation ( ••• ] eternal rejoicing without • • • [ ••• ] ~5 to raise the horn of His annoi[ted ••• ] ~6 [ .•• ] to make known His power with strenqth [ ••• ] 4Q49lc (4QSelf-Glorification Hymnb), 1 I 1-16
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
134
Initially, M. Bai11et identified the speaker of this text as the anqel Michael, a conclusion rightly contested by Morton Smith, who suqgested instead with regard to its authorship, "One thinks
immediately of the author of the Hodayot. " 149
"However," Smith wrote, the anqels of the Hodayot and those of the War Scroll usually come down into the assemblies of the saints. This speaker's claim to have been taken up and seated in heaven and counted as one of the elim is more direct and explicit than anything I recall in the Hodayot or in any of the Dead Sea documents hitherto published. While the text is extreme and special in its formulation, it does
fit
into
the
world
of
encountered in this chapter.
ideas
that
we
have
already
The convergence of heavenly and
earthly realms may account for the unusual apparent direction of angelic traffic noted by Smith, and it may also explain the angelified speaker's preoccupation with earthly kings--also noted by Smith.
That interest in the "kings of the East"
ruled out an oriqinally heavenly angel as speaker in Smith's analysis ("Would an archanqel have stooped to say that?" 150 ) but it did suggest to Smith an original settinq in the early years
of
speaker,
Herod's Smith
reiqn. 151 posited
As
to
"probably
the
experience of
••• the
influence
the of
speculation on deification by ascent towards or into the
149
Morton Smith, •A•cent to the Beaven• ill 4QM•. • Lawrence Schiffman. ed. Archaeology .nd Biaeory ill ehe Dead Sea scroll•, JSOT (Sheffield: 1990). p. 187. 150
Smith. P• 168.
151
Smith. p. 186.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
135
heavens,
speculation which may have gone along with some
practices that produced extraordinary experiences understood as
encounters
with
gods
or
angels."
Speculation
seems
certainly to be in play, although the paradigm of ascent, borrowed from apocalyptic and hekhalot literature, is probably not quite on the mark. J.
J.
Collins also rules
out
speaker as the voice of this text.
an originally
angelic
"The hymn," he writes,
"gives the impression that the speaker has come to be reckoned with the gods but was not of heavenly origin. " 152
In that
assessment, Collins affirms Smith's analysis, but also notes, "This is not precisely an example of ascent,
at least as
ascents are described in the apocalypses, although it is a related phenomenon."
As to its author, Collins suggests the
Teacher of Righteousness, but also indicates difficulties with this identification. may have been,
He suggests, "The author of this hymn
not the Teacher, but a teacher in the late
first century B.C.E." Martin G. Abegg Jr. , as we have noted, explores the links between this text and the Hodayot-composition published by Schuller, and suggests the Hodayot as a fittinq home for the whole, over and against Schuller's own inclination to think that the so-called hymn originated independently. "Whatever we
conclude about
the
original
He writes,
setting of
the
statements in manuscript III of 4Q491, it appears clear that 152
COlli.n8, 1995, P• 44
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
131
the answer to our quest for the identity of the implied speaker of this text and of 4Q427 rises and falls with our judqement concerninq the author of the Thanksgiving Hymns. Although we cannot be absolutely certain of the speaker's identity,
the Teacher of
Riqhteousness,
founder of the Qumran community,
the
acknowledqed
is a strong candidate." 153
Whoever the speaker may have been, he would have made a fitting lead-chorister, so to speak,
for the Songs of the
The deqree of self-qlorification here
Sabbath Sacrifice.
seems requisite for the speaker of the calls to anqelic worship believed
in the Songs. to
occupy
so
Put differently, exalted
a
station
only a
speaker
could
credibly
describe the angelic realm, seeminqly direct its choirs, and imperatively sugqest to his listeners that they experience themselves as belonginq to the anqelic host--as does the speaker of the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice.
If founded
upon a sustained and gradual indoctrination and preparation, such an angelification by charismatic example and imperative miqht well fit the bill of mysticism as defined by Wolfson. Indeed--assuming,
for
the
moment,
a
single
speaker
(or
speaker's office)
in all of these texts--if his listeners
believed wholeheartedly and with qreat enthusiasm in the stature of this leader as he describes himself in 4Q491, how could they have dared to doubt that they were anqels when he ls3
Abegg, P· 72.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
137
blessed them as such in the priestly initiation of the
Ru~e
of
called to them as such in the Songs of the
Benedictions,
Sabbath Sacrifice--or, for that matter in this text?
For
here
we
can
note
once
more
a
characteristic
alternation of self-aggrandizement, description of God's inner court, host,
and imperative leadership of worship as an angelic amid suggestions of secret,
divine knowledge,
elect
lineage, predestined identity, and true priestly status. heady brew! speculate),
Add to it, the
sensory
perhaps cues
of
(and here, priestly
of course, vestments
A we and
incense-smoke, almost certainly chanting, banners and weapons inscribed with the names of principal angels (as in the War Rule) ,
and an ingrained ascetic and levi tical practice of
minimizing the outward signs of the flesh--and Wolfson's criterion for mysticism,
the personal experience of ontic
transformation, seems well within reach.
Indeed, a community
that shared in such an experience, under the leadership of a priestly elect, would be just such a community as might take seriously and imagine vividly the plan of the war of the end of days set forth Glorification
in the War Scroll--in which the
Se~f
Hymn is nested.
The themes and ideas of the so called War Rule (lQM and 4QM), have been the subject of a great deal of study which has brought
to
light
the
possibility
of
multiple
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
sources
138
underlying the text as we have it and has suggested a great range of possible periods of composition and redaction, from the Hasmonean to the Herodian.
According to Davies, whose
conclusions represent the current thinking on this scroll, the earliest elements in the scroll come from "a compilation made in the Hasmonean period of traditions which arose during and immediately
after
the
Maccabean
wars,
applied
to
an
eschatological war in which the twelve tribes of Israel would vanquish the nations. " 154
The final redaction of the text,
according to Davies "is to be attributed to the period after the Roman occupation of Palestine, i.e., the second half of the 1st century B.C.
onwards. " 155
If this is so then lQM
represents a consistent and sustained interest at Qumran in a final epic battle in which the sect envisioned itself taking part. Notably, a common feature throughout all the component portions of this scroll is the theme of angelic involvement in the final war.
Not only is the triumphant side identified as
the portion of the angel Michael, while the opposing forces of the "nations" or "Kittim" are identified as the lot of the opposed angelic potentate, Belial, but the celestial forces of light and darkness associated with these two principal angelic figures are consistently portrayed as active agents in the battle itself, the sectarians expecting, i t seems, to fight in 154
Davie•, 1011: 1'he fiar
155
Davie•, p. 123.
Scro~~
fro• Qwaran (Rome: 1977) p. 123.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
131
tandem with their angelic counterparts. 156 as
close
as
relationship imagined war.
we
can
with
to
the
understanding
angels
that
is
Now we must come
the
nature
reflected
of in
the this
For the purpose of this study, it is important
to consider the degree and the nature of the convergence of angelic and human forces described in the War Rule. the
sectarians
conceived
of
their
earthly
Clearly
struggle
as
reflecting a parallel and determining conflict of heavenly forces.
Seemingly, the joining of angelic and human hosts
spoken of in the War Rule was believed to involve the immanent presence of celestial beings among the earthly combatants. Finally, the conception of this battle also came to involve a reciprocal belonging of the earthly combatants within the celestial host. The
general
idea
of
conjoint
heavenly
and
earthly
campaign is certainly reminiscent of the passage from the song of Deborah and Barak, in Judges 5:20 N10,0 CD
1nrr~J
c~,nl~,onn"
"C,~~,~~
1nrr~J
c,nw 1n
("From the heavens the stars fought
from their pathways, fought against Sisera.")
The idea of
angelic involvement in an earthly war is also most reminiscent of the appearance of the Captain of the Host of the Lord to Joshua before his battle at Jericho (Jos.5: 13-15).
That is to
say, there is certainly biblical precedent for the imagining
156
COllin• ('"The Son of Han ••• • p. 56) not•• of the War Scroll that '"though it i• po••ible to di•tingui•h the heavenly battle between Michael and Belial frOID the earthly battle, yet the angelic ho•t atingle• freely with the araty of X•rael.'"
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
140
of celestial beings as interested and involved parties in earthly conflicts.
Such precedents themselves already bespeak
a certain degree of self-association with the angels. both
of
these
biblical
examples,
correspond to the angelic, remains
clearly
celestial.
human,
while
the
Yet, in
human
may
and share a mission, the human
and
the
celestial
distinct
and
The present question is whether, in Qumran's War
Scroll, ideas of angelic parallelism and involvement evolved to incorporate an imagined preternaturalization of the earthly combatants, that is, an angelic self-conception. We have already noted that the sectarians' camp of war, described
in
1QM,
was
especially
to
be
guarded
against
impurity and against base indicators of mere humanity, such as deification,
"because angels of holiness are with them in
their lines" (4QMa frags. 1-3, line 10).
These regulations
indicate an effort to be worthy of the company of these angels through striving to be as like them as possible. more,
What is
the apparatus and decorations to be involved in the
earthly battle,
as described in the War Rule,
were to be
emblazoned with angelic names: ]~[M]~,n 11W,M1~ ~u 1~n~, ~M91 ,D,~1~ ~D ~M,1W
[
16
[ ••
~lMnW~
7M911
15
,Jln
nl7lln~ ,W,~W~ ~M,1~l
~M,1Wl
7D
1,n],~
~,~ ~n1 ,JW~
~M,1~ll
7D
~M~,n
And on all the shields of the towers ~5 they shall write: on the first, "Michael," [on the second "Gabriel," on the third,] "Sariel," on the fourth, "Rafael;" "Michael" and "Gavriel" on [the right, and •sariel" and "Rafael" on the left .•• ] (1QM, IX, lines 14-16)
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
141
The imaqined proximity of the anqels, the imitation of them, and this sort of totemic use of anqelic names on the reqalia of
the
war
speak
of
a
certain
sectarians with the anqels.
self-association
of
the
Yet on the basis of that evidence
alone we could not say surely that the earthly warriors conceived of themselves as anythinq more than human beinqs enjoyinq exalted company and quidance. The passaqe from lQM (XXI, lines 1-5) quoted at lenqth in the introduction to this chapter does more to tell us about the sectarian self-conception involved in this association with the anqelic host.
The passaqe states that the "chosen
ones of the holy nation" have been "placed" by God amonq the "multitude of holy ones in heaven."
Their names are inscribed
in the "book of the names of all their hosts," carved "with the chisel of life "to rule in all times of eternity."
So
when the passaqe finally states that the chosen ones on earth are to be mustered "toqether with your holy ones and with your anqels to have the upper hand in the battle and destroy the rebels of the earth, " and when the victors are termed the "nation of the chosen ones of heaven," it seems certain that we are hearinq of sectarian warriors who belonq amonq the anqels, just as the anqels belonq in the earthly camp of war. This is the self-conception urqed by the War Rule. How was this anqelic self-conception to be experienced by the members of the sect?
The elevation of the earthly chosen
ones to anqelic status reads as an experienced reality in
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
142
lines such as those quoted above; and yet Qumran was populated by human beinqs whose imaqined day of final triumph was still set in the future. normal
bodily
sectarians
Concern about impurity,
functions
experienced
heavenly anqels.
indicates themselves
the ways as
infirmity, and in which
different
from
the the
On the basis of one final excerpt from the
War Rule we can say somethinq about the ways in which they may have also experienced themselves as similar to those anqels. One doxoloqy embedded in the text of the War Rule reads as follows: ~WD, 1WN p1N~l O(,n]W~ 7N1W, 7N ~JlnJ N,n 1WN 7N1W, ~JnDJ N,nl ~~Trr~ ~JTI1l~lJl 9 D,7lil~ ,,nl7nl n,,~ ,Wli~ en 10 n1~1N~ ,nn 71Jn ~J7 11 ,Nl11 i~JJ 71~ ,UnlWl ( ••• ] ••• ( ••• ~]J,~ ,7,Jwn Til~lnD ,DnlWl lTlN ,7lln Wil~ ,JN7n ~J,WDnJ n1rr~ ~1rr
Who is like you, God of Israel, in the hea(ven]s or on earth to do as your qreat deeds 9 and like your miqhty marvels, and who is like your nation, Israel, whom you chose for yourself from amonq all the nations of the lands, 10 a nation of ones sanctified in covenant and learned in the law, wise in knowledqe, ( ••• ] hearers of the qlorious voice and seers of 11 the holy anqels, open of ear, hearinq profound thinqs? (1QM,
This passaqe suqqests sapiential,
auditory,
X,
8-11}
and visionary
experience as elements involved in the quasi-anqelic life of the Qumran sectarians.
Accordinq to these prayerful lines the
community enjoys visual experience of the anqelic host and auditory experience, as it seems, of God's own voice. 157 157
As
This passage is not unique in the Qumran library in cla~ng such distinctive experiences. A rather fragmentary passage from a text known as fiord• of the Luminari•• (4Q504, frag. 3, II, linea 7-8) has been reconstructed aa reading, •[ ••• Bye) to eye You have been a. .n in our midst[ ••• ) B [ ••• )and Your
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
143
in other passages that we have seen, the distinctions of the elect
seem
to
supernatural.
ranqe
the more
mundane
to
the more
There is nothinq necessarily angelic in beinq
learned of the law ill,~).
from
{~1n
,in1~n)
and wise in knowledge
{,~,3wn
On the other hand, being truly covenanted and properly
learned apparently were considered as steps along the way to more wondrous experiences, such as envisioning the angels and hearing God's glorious voice.
Cons"ti'tu"tion of an Allge~ic Co..uni"ty: !'be Ru~e Sera~~ (~QS, ~Qsa, lQSb), !'he Ru~e of "the Co..uni"ty (JlO in,il), "the Ru~e of "the Congregation (il"TDil lJ!V and "the Ru~e oL Benedictions (,l:li
'1 , ::Jbm'1
i1 ::J, :1)
The
primacy
of
the
priesthood,
and
the
essentially
priestly and temple-centered character of the sect's religion and law, are especially evident in the following passage from the Rule of tbe Community: Wil~
n11
plM~
11~1~1
ilO,~
il~Mil O,Jl3nil ~13J ~NlW,J il~N n1,i1J nDUil ~Dn1 DW9 nnWN ~D 193~ O~lD 4 nnM~ n1n,l3 ogwn~ c,ngw s nn11n1 n~T ,~~nn1 n1~1u 1w~n ,WlN 1~,iJ, M,ilil nul 11~1 nnln n~ilJ 11i c,nn1 ~i~ in, n,~1 c,Wi1~ Wi1~ in,il~ 111i1N~ Wi1~ n,J in,il 6 ogwn~ 1~wn, 111i1N ,l~ ~1 7 c,nn~ o,3~1ilil ~Nlw,~ 1i11 8 in,il ,WlM 11Jn ~3~ ~11li11 M~, Cil,g ~D1 1li1J1 ••• o,nn~ C,3~1ilil Wil~il ,WlN
When these be in Israel, in accordance with these rules, as a foundation of holy spirit for truth 4 eternal, to atone for the quilt of iniquity and for holy word• (we] have heard.• That particular pa••age apeak• of the experience of Iarael at Sinai, but the a~ •eem• to be to extend that experience into the •elf-conception of the elect in the pre•ent. Thia aeem• eapecially likely if B•ther G. Chazon ia correct in her conclu•ion that 4Q504 ia a liturgical compo•ition, an order of weekday prayer• for u•e by the community, and that it wa• u•ed a• •uch by the community for over two centuriea (•4QDIBBAN: Liturgy or Literature?,• Revue de Quaran 15 (1992), pp. 447-455).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
144
the unfaithfulness of sin, and for favor for the earth, above the flesh of burnt offerings and the fats of sacrifices, and the offering 5 of the lips be for judgement as the pleasant aroma of righteousness and the perfectness of the path be as a voluntary free-will offering--at that time the men 6 of the community shall set apart a holy house for Aaron, in order to become a most holy community, and a communal house for Israel who walk in perfection. Only the sons of Aaron will rule in judgement and with regard to property and by their word shall [all] go out and [by their word shall] the lot of all the provision for the men of the community [be determined]. And they are the holy men who walk in perfection ••. This text is representative both of a distinctive sectarian piety that expresses itself in the terminology of the temple and of a great temporal authority vested in the priesthood at the center of the sect, concomitant with an idealization of that priesthood. In the overview at the start of this chapter, we noted that the Rule of tbe Community (lQS)
conceives of a
community of heavenly and earthly constituents.
joint
The text
instructs the members of the sect that God has granted them "an inheritance in the lot of the holy ones, and to the sons of the heavens He unites their assembly to form a council of community
and
a
council,
a
holy
foundation,
to
form
ever lasting plantation throughout all ages to come. " 158
an The
word "plantation" (nDtJn) has a distinctly earthly connotation, which might seem odd in the context of the sect's selfassociation with
the celestial
host;
but what
that
term
represents is essential to the hope and the vision of Qumran. 158
s..
the treatment of lQS, XI,
l~n••
6-9, above.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
145
For all its fascination with the heavens and the angels, and for all its efforts to escape the impediments of the flesh, the eschatological hopes of Qumran were remarkably focused upon the earth as the site of the
final
triumph of the
eschaton and the eventual center of God's sovereignty in the end
of
days.
anticipated,
The
personal
transformation
contemplated,
and experienced in the sect of Qumran is not
separable from the cosmic transformation that sect believed to
be underway in its world. transformation
is
In turn, and equally, that cosmic
inseparable
from
the
transformation
of
society and self toward which the self-styled elect of Qumran were directed.
lQS, the Rule of the Community, can best be
understood as a document that introduces the regulations and behavior
that
befit a
human
society aspiring
to
angelic
identity in a transformed cosmos, and the duties incumbent upon the members of such a community. 159 The
following
brief
passage,
from
the
Rule
of
the
Community, gives poetic expression in the first person to the lifestyle of devotion toward which those who joined the Qumran community directed themselves: 11~n7 ~7,71 1 ,~1TT
,7~J 11J~1 7N i1~~7 ,nl,ll 71~1 nni~ ~1nTN 01, N1~n OD 10 1U9wn 1~~ NWN ,ngw 7,7TI1 1Wi1~ 1nN 1~1~ 1 ~1D N~1n tlD1 7N n,1~~ i1N{i1} 1~N J1W ,n7J7 ,71~l 11 O,WN cn1,~~1
159
L~cht (p. 18) emphas~zea that the Rule of the commun~ty ~· not a general code of law, but presents ·~nternal regulat~ona of the sect,• and that, beyond law per ae, the document ~· concerned w~th •matter• that ahape the character of the ca.aun~ty, • aaaong them, ·r~tea, bleaa~ng• and cursea, obl~gatory bel~efa and op~~ona, and poetry that expre••e• the character~at~c rel~g~oua atandpo~nt of the aectar~an.•
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
141
I will sinq with knowledqe and for the qlory of God shall all my music be, the playinq of my harp accordinq to his holy order, and the flute of my lips I shall tune to its correct measure. 10 At the onset of day and niqht I shall enter the covenant of God, and when eveninq and morninq depart I shall repeat his precepts; and by their existence I shall set my limit without turninq away. (1QS, X, 9-11) The ideal of such a devoted and reqimented, not to say anqelic life, in harmonious accord with divine will, is associated by the authorship of 1QS with an ultimate destiny of richest rewards: N91n7 ~~ ,J71~ 71J n11~9, 7~n nnM ,l~7 rr11 ,.,o ~7N iD n1J1~ 71J OD D1T n1191 D,n, 111M~ D17W J111 7 11M~ 11~ n1n on il~J 7,7Jl ~J ,,IT~ o,n71D nrrnw1 D,n71D These are the foundations of the spirit of the sons of truth (in) the world. And the reward of those who walk in it will be healinq, 7 plentiful peace in a lonq life, fruitful offsprinq with all everlastinq blessinqs, eternal enjoyment with endless life, and a crown of qlory 8 with majestic raiment in eternal liqht ( 1QS, IV, 6-8) It is quite remarkable that the rewards enumerated in these lines,
althouqh culminatinq in timeless and preternatural
glory (iD beqin
nlJ1~,
with
11~
n•n ,i1JJ 7,7J,
decidedly
satisfactions
temporal,
(n119 ,c,n,
~l
earthly,
111M D1T)
60 .l
,,IT, o,n71D nrrnw), and
even
carnal
It would be wronq
l60
Licht note•, on thi• pa••age, that "the member• of the ••ct hoped for the •material• and not ju•t the ••piritual• reward• of the world to come" (p. 97). I would rather •ay that the ••ctarian• believed that the material benefit• of a well-regulated earthly life were continuou• with the preternatural reward• of angelic identity. I hope thi• chapter demon•tratea that tho•• preternatural reward• were not merely prize• to be anticipated but realitie• to be experienced imaginatively in the life of the •ect.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
147
then to say that the attitude of this document is worlddenying or set in complete asceticism or denial against the ways of mundane humanity.
Rather,
completely fulfilled
life--fulfilled through strict
human
lQS suggests that the
requlation, to be sure--can be continuous with the realization of an elevated and eternal identity. With regard to the exaltation expressed in the passage above, we should take especial note of the glorious crown and qarment, which we have encountered already in biblical and apocryphal passages and will see again in rabbinic sources. Like Joshua the High Priest in the vision of Zechariah, it is by keeping God's trust and the pathways set by God below that the adept of Qumran achieves belonging and access angelic kind.
of
an
As with Joshua in Zechariah's vision, the mark
of the belonging is conceived visually in the form of garment and head-dress. Although the angelic and human constituents that make up the joint heavenly-earthly community tend toward identity at the high-points of lQS, the collapse is also markedly less than complete--just as the realization of the sect's cherished eschatology was incipient but not yet complete.
Anqelic life
remains the ideal, and human life the reality.
An awareness
of the
flesh
and the hinderance
it can pose to
angelic
identity is a perennial theme in lQS, as throughout Qumran literature. lowliness
Characteristically, reminders of physicality and often
appear
in
close
proximity
to
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
the
most
148
audacious self-identifications with the angels.
For example,
following the forthright declaration (in XI, 6-9) that God has elevated the earthly elect to become a united community with the sons of heaven, we read: ,nNl:JTT ,lJ(Jjg ,n1J11ll ~1ll 10~ 110~1 illlW1 OiN~ ,JN1 ,J lWlTT ,J~1il1 iln1 110~ 10 ,~~~ n11lJJ Oll { ••• } 11 1i,n1 l:J5JaJnil ~N~ ,J 1ill~ l,J, N1~ W1JN1 1J11 OiN~ 111il o1n Nl~
But I belong to evil humankind and to the society of unfaithful flesh; my failings, my iniquities, my sins, { ••• } with the depravities of my heart, 10 belong to the assembly of worms and of those who walk in darkness. For not to man belongs His path, nor does a human being steady his step, for unto God is the judgement and from His hand is the perfection of the path. (1QS, XI, 9-10) This passage cannot be a negation of what goes before, nor should it be read as an admission that the speaker does not participate in the glory he describes.
This passage of self-
abasement is followed by further segments that stress God's salvation of the speaker from stumbling and from fleshly transgressions (lines 12-15) and further lines in which the speaker asserts anew that he has been raised up to stand eternally in God's presence (lines 16-17) • 161 We should remember that these passages occur in a text of instruction, teaching, qroup.
outlining a
teaching,
and perhaps a
mode of
to be impressed upon the aspiring adepts of the
This beinq so, we should perhaps think of the first-
161
Licht write• of thi• portion of lQS, •since the poet i• certain of hi• cho•enne••, he know• that the •in• that attach to him by dint of hi• humanity will not impede him, for God will •ave him froa them. (P• 224)
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
141
person compositions that appear at the end of 1QS--statements of dedication,
promises of devotion synchronized with the
seasons and movements of the celestial bodies,
claims of
communal glory and exaltation, and abject acknowledgements of human failing such as the one quoted above--as meditations of indoctrination. limitations
of
We might conclude that meditation on the human
existence
contributed
an
essential
element to the sectarian effort to realize a life beyond those limitations. 1QS,
as
we
have
it,
ends
with
another
extended,
prayerful and meditative passage that both indicates a lofty possibility, seemingly realized in the life of the speaker, but also immediately emphasizes the qulf between that reality and the earthly life of a human being: i1i~::l 1Jil il:Ji::lll ::1'1 16 illli'1 nn19il .,'1N ilnN 111::1 ::l~,nil'7 DiN ,1,n::l'1 iln,~1 1WNJ il:JnnN 1::1'1 Ci1il1 1.,W1Jn il:JJ1~1 1'7::11 l1i cnn N1'1 il:J,ill'7::ln N,J ill'1 il:J.,J9'1 11 il, i1 J il '7 1 J 1 illli '7 1 J 18 iln, 1 1 i1 ilnN '7 1 J ilUllP N1 ~ '7,JWil'71 il:Jn~ll '1ll ::l,Wil'1 il:Jn'11T 1ITN 1,N1 il,il il:JJ1~1::l
'1J
1J1::lni1'71 il:J,T1 i1n1ll::l t:J,::lil'11 i1JW1ii1 n::1wnn '71J::l 19 nN '1,Ji1'7 '71J, ,n1 i1Jn111::ll 20 n1J Cll i1J,n1N~9J ~1J::l ilWN i1'1,1 21 il:JN'79 ,Wlln::l CiNi1 1::1 i1N1il ~N iln1 i1Ji1::l:J 111 in iln1 cn'1 1 1 '1::lln 191ln ilN 1 i1 1 il:J, .J g~ ::lWTP iln 1nrr ::l,Ul, iln 1ni11Uln 19ll'11 p11i1 1nrr 22 i111,~n ilN1ill 1,::1, iln n~ll~l i, 1~1,1
Blessed are you, my God, who opens 16 the heart of your servant to knowledge. Establish all his deeds in justice, and raise up the son of your handmaid, as you have desired the chosen of mankind, to stand before you 17 eternally. For without you no path is made perfect, and without your will nothing can be done. You have taught 18 all knowledge and all that exists came to be at your will. Beyond you there is no-one to oppose your counsel and to understand 19 all your holy thought, to gaze into the depth of your mysteries and to contemplate all of your wonders and the strength of 20 your might.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
150
Who can endure your glory? What indeed is the son of man among your marvelous deeds? 21 As what shall one born of woman be considered in your presence? Shaped from dust has he been, maggots' food shall be his dwelling; he is spat saliva, 22 molded clay, and for dust is his longinq. What will the clay reply and the one shaped by hand? And what counsel shall he attain by understanding? (1QS, XI, 15-22 = 4Q264 I) The passage's blend of superiority and humility is typical of The opening of the speaker's heart to knowledqe
Qumran.
enables him to assume an eternal place amonq the elect men (CiM
the
,,,TT:l)
in God's ranks, 162 yet the knowledge for which
speaker gives
thanks
is
beyond
human
inaccessible to mere earthly comprehension.
understanding,
It seems probable
that this composition, with all its negativity, is intended to inculcate or cultivate a sense of transcendent status vis a
vis normal humanity, a feeling of exaltation concomitant with In its second column,
having attained esoteric knowledge.
lines 19-25, the Rule of the Community describes the community arrayed for instruction "year after year, Belial's dominion," first,
in strict order,
all the days of
the priests entering
one behind the other, "according to their spirits,"
followed by the Levites, and finally "all the people shall enter in order, one after the other in thousands, hundreds, fifties,
and
idealization,
tens." this
Though
order
of
the
high
assembly
is
numbers
suggest
consistent with
regulations elsewhere in the scrolls so that this passage 162 (n,,,rr~),
We have already noted the angelic connotation• of •cho•en one•• a• in •n,nw ,,,~ on•, •the nation of the cho•en one• of heaven,• in
lQK.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
151
probably
does
assembly for
describe
an
actual
indoctrination.
procedure
of
communal
A similar regimentation
is
manifest in the section of lQS that describes the communal meals to be held by the sect.
The purpose of the strict
ordering of such ranked assemblies is explained in the lines that immediately follow: n~ll 23 '2N iTP :l 1 illDll n, :l W, N '2N1tlP W, N '2~ nDi'2 C1j7llll C 11, N 1 '2 1 1 illDll n, :lll W, N '2 1 9W, N'2 1 D,n'2 1D iOIT n:l~N1 :l1C n1JD1 nllN iiT,:l ,,~, '21J~ N,J 24 1'211l D,ll'21D i10 ,J:l1 Wi1j7 n~N:l 1~D1'2 W,N 25 i7i~ n:lWITn1
••• so that each Israelite may know his standing in God's community 23 in conformity with an eternal plan. And no-one shall move down from his rank nor move up from the place of his lot. 24 For all shall be in a Community of truth, of proper meekness, of compassionate love and upright purpose, 25 towards each other, in a holy council, associates of an everlasting society. (lQS, XX, 19-25) The regimentation of this order of assembly corresponds to the description of the eschatological assembly imagined in the Rule of the Congregation (lQSa).
That triumphal assembly was
to involve a celebratory, messianic banquet and, as Schiffman bas suggested, "the Messianic banquet has so many features in common with the communal meal of the group that one can only conclude that the function of the Qumran communal meals was to be what the Rabbis termed 'a sample of the world to come'" 163
The fact that the world-to-come of the Qumran sectarians included feasting in addition to the exalted, temple-centered reality that we have considered above, is another indication
163
Lawrence Schiffaan, •Communal Meal• at Qumran,• p. 53.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
152
that humanity was to retain somethinq of its distinctive, earthly nature even as it moved toward its anqelic role in the world of the eschaton. 164 1QS
prohibits
coarse
{which
is
to
say
un-anqelic)
behavior in the military encampment of the sect, prescribinq punishments, such as those specified in 1QS, VII, lines 15-17, for "one who spits in the course of a meetinq of the Many" {line 15),
one who "takes out
'his hand'
from under his
clothes, or if these are raqs which allow his nakedness to be seen" {lines 15-16), and even for "whoever takes out his left hand to qesticulate with it" {line 17), for example.
Since
eatinq {and so, presumably, spittinq) and sexual intercourse, alonq
with
defecation,
differentiate
human
beinqs
from
celestial ones, these restrictions can be read as an effort to pass, as it were, for anqels, or to prepare for the anqelic life by concealinq and limitinq the conspicuous indicators of earthly humanity. Ritual excluded
impurity,
their
disease,
sufferers
from
and
physical
membership
in
164
disability the
ideal
J .J. Collin• note• that •The eo-called lfessianic Rule, lQSa, aeeumes that the conditione of human exietence are not greatly altered by the coming of the Keeeiaha. Proviaion muet etill be made for the education of children, and for community meal• and regulationa. One of the ta•k• of the princely Meseiah, however, wae to wage war on the ltittial, the Gentile enemiea of Ierael. Thie war ie included in the end of day• in the Peaher on Isaiah (4Qptaaa). The phrase [Pi1 1 ,,mtil) ie never applied, however, to the conditione that ensue after the eechatological war. We ehould perhape allow for eome variation in the way the motif ie ueed, but in general we may agree with Ste~del that the end of day• ie •the laet period of time directly before the time of ealvation. • ( •The Expectation of the End in the Dead Sea Scrolla,• Craig A. Evan• and Peter w. Flint, eda. Eschatology, llessiani. . and the Dead sea scrolls (Michigan: 1997) pp.
81-82.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
153
community as it was imagined and experienced at Qumran. 1QSa,
the
Ru~e
of
the Congregation,
which
envisions the
sectarian assembly and banquet at the end of days, conspicuously
human
conditions
are
In
deemed
such
unacceptable
specifically because they are not appropriate in a conjoint human and angelic company. ~~~~ 11n~
M1~,
~M DiM~ 4 n1Nn0 ~1~n nrrM~ Ul1ln W,M ~1~1 inun ~, Trr~ 5 ,n~l~ ~~M~ llllln w,M ~1~1 ~~M 1M neg D,i, 6 1M D,~l1 ~M~l 11W~~ lll1Jn ~1J1 ~ill~ D,lll n1M1~ 7 11W~~ lll1ln 01n 1M D~M 1M W1IT 1M 11ll ~~M N1~, ~M 8 ~ill~ 11n~ ~Trrn~ ,n~~~ ~W1~ l~T W,N 1M Dnilll Wi1~ 9 ,~M~n N,J DW~ ,W1JM ~ill 11n~ ~~,n~~ 1~1W11il 10 Wi1~~ n~ll ~M 1li~ ~~Mn iiTM~ 1~1 W, DM1 .M1~ 11 lll1ln M,~ W,M~ M1~, N~ ~ill~ 11n ~M1 1~,9n
Any man afflicted by any of the impurities 4 of a man shall not enter the assembly of these; and any man who is afflicted by these should not s hold rank in the midst of the congregation. And any one afflicted in his skin, paralysed in his feet, or 6 in his hands, lame, blind, deaf, dumb, or defiled in his flesh with a blemish 7 visible to the eyes, or the tottering old man who cannot keep upright in the midst of the assembly. B these shall not enter to take their place among the congregation of the men of name, for the angels of holiness are in their congregation. And if one of these has something to say to the holy council, ~o they shall ask it of him but that man he shall not come into the congregation for he is afflicted. These regulations have their roots in the levitical code, of course,
in which the disabled and blemished are excluded,
along with the rituals. 165 certain
impure,
from
association with the Temple
While 1QSa does not enable us to say anything
about
the
original
concept
of
sacred
community
underlying the levitical regulations themselves, the document 165
Por a di.•cu••i.on of th••• Qumran law• in detail, see Lawrence Schi.ffman, The B•chaeo~ogical cam.uniey of ehe Dead Sea Scro~~., pp. 38-51.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
154
certainly does enable us to understand how these regulations were interpreted and justified at Qumran through the concept of
a
united
human
and
angelic
assembly.
The
community
believed itself to be in one lot with the angelic host,
a
situation with which impurity, deformity, and even conspicuous humanity, were incompatible. For all
that
it contemplated,
and
even experienced,
angelic identity, the sect of Qumran conceived of itself--even in the eschaton--as a community rooted in the earth.
Qumran's
distinctive, paradoxical combination of heavenly and earthly aspirations reflects a sectarian effort to pave the way for God's rule on the earth by perfecting the human community of Israel (or, at least, its •remnant") to such an extent that it might realize itself equal as equal to the angels, able to constitute the fitting entourage and court of God's own glory.
!'be Songs of ~a Sabba~ Sacrifice !'be.se~ves
Even before entering into the question of whether and how the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice were used ritually by the sect at Qumran, we can note in their textual fra9Jilents several levels of meaning which must have emanated from the selfidentification of the sectarians with the host of heaven, and which must have contributed to that experience. that
the Songs
are
a
product
of
Qumran's
This assumes sect
and
its
particular ideoloqy--and that is the impression they make. While i t is certainly true, as Carol Newsom has written, that
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
155
"certain aspects of the religious problematic that appear to underlie the Sabbath Shirot were common to a wide spectrum of contemporary Judaism, " 166 nevertheless there
is a
specific
affinity between the world-view and cosmic narrative apparent in the Songs and the ideology of the undoubtedly sectarian documents at Qumran.
First of all, let me demonstrate that
affinity of world-view, which also constitutes the first level of meaning
on which
the Songs
bespeak an
identification
between the sectarians themselves and the heavenly host that the text presents. In keeping with the ideology of Qumran, the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice feature a divine, predestined cosmic plan whose creatures live fates determined before their coming into being.
It is true that angelic participants in the worship of
God's heavenly sanctuary are the apparent cast of the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice, {MasShirShabb) ,
but 4Q402,
touch upon
the
and its Masada parallel
framing
cosmic history
in
language that reminds of those narratives that address the status of the sect itself,
such as we have seen in other
Qumran texts: "1,n1nrn1 1nuin1 iD
o,n71D n1i1Dn 71J all
that
exists,
,,~"
,,~
71J
nui
~,~J
eternally,
and
from
his
knowledge
and
{4Q402 4 12-
The description of those who take part in this scheme
sounds similarly familiar: 166
N,J
{"For from the God of knowledge came
decisions all the predestined things, forever") 13).
,~INn
"Dn1,~
,J97 Di1
1i1~J
Schiffman, 1989, p. 116.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
,tmmn N,J
1545 1n~wrrnn•
("For they are of His glorious deeds, before they
even came into being [they are part] of His thought") 4
15).
The Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice also tell of a
great, divine war at an appointed time (4Q402 4 7). ( 4Q402
(4Q402
("?~~
This war may be a heavenly battle
4 10) ,
o,~7N
nnn7n")
(c,~nw
nnrr7n)
but we have seen already that heavenly and
earthly battles correspond and merge in the thought of Qumran, and the "new wondrous deeds" (N79 n1w1n ,wnn) associated with the war in 4Q402 may well entail a blending of heavenly and earthly struggles.
All of this is to say that sectarian
listeners at Qumran would have recognized the oft-rehearsed story of their own community's situation in the narrative elements that frame the heavenly worship of the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice.
Amonq the creatures of the divine plan, according to the Songs, God has established a special caste of priests, who
stand amid those who are holy and eternal, to serve the divine countenance
in
assemblies
and
councils
distinguished
by
special knowledge and also in the "temple of His kingdom." The priestly leadership of the sect can hardly have failed to recognize itself in the terms of this role-description: ]
17 1,~,1 C,W11~ ,W11~ ID ,W11~~[ 10, N,~ ~lll:l 111 :lJ 1,:11:1 c, J5J ,n1wn [ 1n1 J7n w1~n:1 :11 1~4 1,~1n n1n c,~17N[ n1n11 71J ,11o:11 nlll] 5 ,,N 71J7 ell nlll( ,1o,n 71J7 111:lJ] 6 ,u5Jwn1 rr11 ,wnn 71J7 c,~17N 111:lJ n1J,:l ,J~1~7
For He has established among the eternally holy those holy of holies to be for him priests of the inner sanctwa in the sanctuary of his kingdom-ministers of the countenance in the sanctum of His
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
157
glory; in the congregation of all celestials of knowledge and in the councils of all spirits of divinity He has engraved His laws for all creatures of spirit and the statutes of His glory for all founders of knowledge, a people who comprehend the glory of God. (4Q400 1, I 3-6 (=4Q401 15)) The distinctive combination, in this passage, of a celestial setting, an angelic experience of immediate proximity to the countenance of God, a
"sanctuary of God's kingdom" and a
mission to God's "nation," consequent to divine judgements, should be familiar to us from the initiatory blessing of the Rule of Benedictions (1QSb IV, 24-28).
There, the priestly
initiate is promised that he will be "as an angel of the countenance in the holy habitation"
("Wil~
lllln~
D,J9
lM~nJ")
and find himself "serving in the sanctuary of the kingdom and casting [his] lot with the angels of the countenance and the council of the community" ("CD liT,
n~Dl
(1~9wn
D,J9
~J
the many"
,JN~n")--"for
~11l
~,9nl
nlJ~n
~J,~~
n1wn
all of God's judgements are truth"
nnN N,J")--so that he may "shine upon the face of ("D,~1
,J9
,,N~~").
This notion, in the Songs of
the Sabbath Sacrifice, of a priestly appointment spanning the gulf between heaven and earth, and the terms used to define the role,
must have been immediately recognizable to the
priestly initiates of Qumran as descriptive of themselves. The holiness of these "priests of the inner sanctum, " 167 follows from their adherence to laws prescribed for them by
167 Perhaps ~,1~ ,lnJ would be better translated •approaching priests,• in the sense of •priests who draw near.•
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
158
God: "ID
1
WI1~
~1J
1WI~n,
engraved for them holy
0~
1n~
laws,
n1rr
0 1 WI1~
1
~1IT1"
("He has
by which all the eternally
sanctified are to make themselves holy") (4Q400 1 I 15); there is no impure person amid their sancta
("0~ 1 WI1~~ ~nc
1
1
~");
and God has "purified these pure ones of light" so that they might deal with those "depraved of path" and "atone" "appease God's will") for those who "return from sin" 1
DW9
~W ID~ 1J1~1
1 I 16).
119J 1 1 111
1
1DJ
~1J
1
71nl7 11N
(or
("1~0 1 1
11~0")
(4Q400
These holy priests are described as "distinguished
in the camps of the celestials," but also "awesome in the assemblies of humankind" ("0 1 N11J1 C 1 WJN
1
IC1n7")
C 1 ~17N
(4Q400 2 2 = 4Q401 14 I
1
JITn
71J~ C 1 1~JJ
8).
~n~
One of their
functions is to tell of, and thus mediate, the splendor of God's sovereignty, according to their knowledge 1n1J7n cnD1J")
(4Q400 2 3); and,
in addition,
they "announce hidden things" ("n11nCJ 7) the
•
1D 1 nW~")
( 11 11~
11901
it seems 168 , (4Q401 14 II
All of this sounds very much like the role with which initiate
to
the
priestly
leadership
is
charged
in
4Qinstruction, as well as in 1QSb, and is also consonant with the priestly self-conception evident in the Self-Glorification Hymn and in the Bodayot.
Perhaps it is precisely in terms of
such priestly mediation of divine realities that we should understand the reference in the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice to "a nation that comprehends the Glory of God" C 1 ~7N).
168
(11~J n1J
1
~
CD
Those called to serve in the interior temple-court
The text at thia point ia very fragmentary.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
159
both experience the divine countenance and represent God's qlory to those who stand at a somewhat qreater remove.
That
seems to have been the role of the priestly leadership of Qumran.
Consequently, when we read--fast on the heels of the
description of the mediatinq, holy priests, just quoted--the self-abasinq phrases, c,~M nDi~
1l19D
amonq them,
11W~
"~n
••• c~,lllln~
~n
llnll~Jl
c~ ~wnnl
~n
nn11n" {"As what are we to be reckoned
and what is our priesthood in their dwellinq
places ••• what is the offerinq of our earthly tonque amid the knowledqe of celestials?")
(4Q400 2 6-7), we would be quite
wronq to conclude that the authorship and the audience of the
Songs intended by these words to distance and separate itself and its leaders from the heavenly sanctum and its anqels of the countenance. 169 aqain
that
just
On the contrary, we have seen aqain and such
self-abasement
is
the
perennial
accompaniment of self-aqqrandizement at Qumran, the reverse side of the coin, as it were--and a coin can be recoqnized by its
reverse
side.
In
fact
we
are
ready
to
conclude,
qenerally, that laments of the "what am I" and "what are we" varieties at Qumran should always be read with the proqression of verses 5 and 6 of the biblical Psalm 8 very much in mind. There the rhetorical question, ",J CiM 1~i~9n"
169
1~1
1~1JTn
,J WllM
~n
{"What is man that You should remember him, and the
Nitzan doe• draw thi• conclu•ion, a• I have mentioned.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
human beinq that you should recall him?" 170 )
is
immediately by the statement,
nun
1~1cun"
"1i~1
i1~~1
c,~7Nn
followed 1~1cnn1
("But You have made him little less than a qod, and
You have crowned him in qlory and splendor.")
To follow that
paradiqm, the human "offerinq of the tonque"
(1 1W7
nn11n)
modestly played down in 4Q400, should actually be thouqht of as a desired, even essential contribution to the praises of the celestial host. 171 Thus far we have seen that the sect at Qumran must have identified with the celestial population of the Songs of the
Sabbath Sacrifice both in terms of a shared cosmic narrative, and in terms of a paradiqm of priestly leadership and priestly mediation of divine qlory and knowledqe.
Fletcher-Louis' work
has correlated the titles and sobriquets of the songs with the lanquaqe used to describe the sect itself.
Fletcher-Louis'
project is focussed upon the culmination of the Songs in what he deems an implied qlorification of the elect priesthood as an embodiment of the divine qlory of the heavenly temple.
On
the way to this culmination, Fletcher-Louis also identifies desiqnations of qroups, assemblies, and divisions named in the
Songs which miqht equally be used of the assembled members of
170
or •appoint CCIIIIIliaaioning.
h~·--an ~rtant
reading in this context of priestly
171 we should also no~• that in the eighth Song--set in the innermost heavenly sanctum (whether we choose Newsom's •pyramidal• or Morray-Jones' and Fletcher-Louis' •proqreaaive• readinq)--the offering of the chief angelic priest of the inner sanctum (.:l,,il Fll:Jl'l wn•) ia described by the same words a• •rmnn lllli~·, an offering of the tongue.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
1&1
the Qumran sect. the Songs of
By dint of that characteristic terminology,
the
Sabbath
would have spoken to
Sacrifice
members of the Qumran sect beyond the priestly leadership, and probably would have fostered an identification with certain ranks of anqels for such lay-sectarians (so to speak) as well. In
several
sevenfold,
of
the
wondrous
principle
Songs,
(M~9
blessinqs
variously desiqnated communal qroups.
fiqures
,1~1
extend
D~W~---11~1)
to
The sobriquets of these
blessed assemblies would have been recognizable to sectarian listeners, including non-priests, as designations that applied to the sect itself in general. (~1~
destined for justice" straight" (1W1, (1J1~1
,,~nJ
,~~1~
~1~),
~1~),
The appellations, "all those
,iD1J
~1~),
"all those who walk
"all those who burry to His will"
"all those pure of path" (111 ,n,nn
"all those valiant of knowledge" those who hope in Him"
(1~
,~1rr
(7~Ul
71~),
,11~l
~1~),
~1~),
and "all
must have evoked the
self-recognition of sectarian listeners of whatever rank and standing, so that the more wondrous and exalted desiqnations interspersed with these--for example, pure"
(c,n~1ll
(C,~11~
,7,M
,,1~\'l
71~),
~1~),
"all
"all those eternally
"all those innermost celestials" those
holy
foundation of knowledge" (nDi ,,o,nn
ones
c,w11~
who praise the sovereiqnty of his glory" 111~~),
who
71~),
(n1~~n
"all those eternally blessed" (c,n71D
form
the
"all those ,7~i1n
~1~
,~11~ ~1~),
and
the fragmented "all those who know the mysteries of ••• •
(71~
••• ,T1 ,Di1,), would probably have been apprehended by these
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
112
same sectarian listeners as exaltations of themselves,
as
aqqrandizements of their own elect status. Assemblies called by similar names are charqed to offer praises in the Songs oL the Sabbath Sacrifices.
The beqinninq
of the sonq of the Seventh Sabbath (in 4Q403 and parallels) presents the most intact and extensive of the survivinq calls to worship in the sequence, includinq the following passaqe, which is representative: 11W~~ 111~~ 11~1 M~9 ,~1~M~ 1J11(~ 1nlli] ,JJ1n 1JJ1 [M1~ N,~ 1~1 ,11~ ~1~ ,9~ 37 1M~9 n1J1 nn1 ,l1~ ~1J ,rr11 ~1J~ 1n11~1~ U91Wl in {nni} ,JJ1n ~J~ c,~1~M 111, lil~~~ M,J i1~~ 1(~]n~ i1~ ,~M ~~ 1il~ 38 1,~ 1nnM~
111,
~~~
n1rr11
~lJl
nn1
,~,M
~J
Sing with joy, you who sing joyously of His knowledqe, with joyous song of the God of wonder, and proclaim His qlory in the tongue of all those who proclaim the joyous knowledqe of His wonder 37 by the mouth of all those who proclaim Him, for he is God of all those who sing joyously of eternal knowledge and judqes in His miqht all spirits of understanding. 38 Give thanks, all celestials of splendor, to the King of splendor for to His glory all celestials of knowledge give thanks and all spirits of justice qive thanks for His truth. (4Q403 1 I 36-38) Sectarian
listeners
can
hardly
have
failed
to
recoqnize
themselves in at least some of the titles of the praise-qivers called in this liturqy; and those praise-qivers are decidedly angelic in character, and the setting in which they are evoked is certainly the divine throne-room--and this settinq becomes more and more wondrous as the liturqy progresses.
After
another call to praise in lines 38-41, the text begins to revert from imperative to descriptive tone and, at the same time, focus on the praise-qivers themselves seem to qive way
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
1&3
or merge into attention to the architectural details of the heavenly environment: Nwn ,i1nD C,Wi1~ W(i1~ ,i10], ~13 1~~~, ~~N~ c,~]1~N 42 (11]nr 1n,J~n n1J,9 ~131 c,n11 011 1~10 {1T} D,~1 iiT, N[wn]~ (11N1 nDi ,IT11 ~13] IT13 (D,]~~N ,IT11 1(~1IT~W143 ] 1Wi1~ Wi~n~ 0,11~0 [1n1111~ ~13 c,n11n w11 D,~1 c,n~1(D ,n~1n n1i]1~~ (W]i1~ ,rr111 1n,]J~n 1n,[J~n1 44 ~(1]3 1n11,~1 45 ~Dnn C,n~[1D Wi]1~ ,IT(11] D,,rr D,~~N C,Wi1~ ~1~T~
N11(J
,wun
i1~(3~
n1rr11
N~91 1i~1 i1~ N~9J N~9 D,~1~ C,W]1i~ ~13[n] N~9 ,Wi~n ~13~ ••• ] [ 46nD]i Dn111N 11N~ [1n11,~ ]~(13 ~i~1 nnN 1~n 11un~ ~~,~o c,~1~M
With these [words?] all those (who form] the foundation of the holy of holies give praise, supporting columns of the dwelling of the highest heights and all the corners of His structure. Sing 42 to God awesome in strength all spirits of knowledge and light, to bear together the firmament, most pure of all purities, for the sanctuary of His holiness, 43 and give praise to Him, divine spirits, to acknowledge eternally the firmament, highest of all heights, all its beams and its walls, all 44 its structure, the work of its form, spirits of the holy of holies of the living God, spirits of eternal holiness, above 45 all holy ones, in the firmament of wondrous wonder, splendor and majesty, and wonder of the glory, in the light of their light, knowledge ••• 46 ••• in all the sanctuaries of wonder, divine spirits round about the dwelling place of the King of truth and justice. All its walls ••• (4Q403 1, I 41-46 = 4Q405 frags. 4, 5, 69, 58, 57, 9-15) The firmament above the heads of the creatures of Ezekiel's vision seems to be at issue here, and the Ezekelian impression of
the
heavenly
temple
as
the
seat
of
God's
glory
is
strengthened in the next column of 4Q403 (and its parallels in 4Q405
and 11Q17),
by the repeated
instances
holies" (lines 6-7) and "inner sanctum"
(1,~i),
of "holy of and by rushing
celestials with the appearance of coals of fire (II line 6), and "their cherubim and ofanim" (line 15).
The Songs oL the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
114
Sabbath
Sacrifice
seea
to
be
geared
toward
allowing
experiential access to that Ezekelian, celestial reality. Even so,
rather than simply impose the paradigm of
apocalyptic translation, such as Enoch's, or the program of later merkabab-speculation and hekablot-ascent, upon the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice, it makes sense instead to propose a
function for the Songs at Qumran that is consonant with the ideoloqy of the sect and takes into account what we have seen of its world-view. It is less appropriate to speak of Qumran as a gateway to the heavens for its sectarians than it is to say that those sectarians experienced their enclave as a bastion or outpost of the angelic realm upon the earth--a beachhead, as it were, for the eschatological invasion of a heavenly reality into the world of humankind.
Focussed as the Songs of the Sabbath
Sacrifice are upon the heavens, we still must recoqnize that
the sect of Qumran was not preparing communally to forsake the earth for the celestial sanctum.
Instead, the sect was
mustering forces to participate triumphantly in the forcible imposition of God's heavenly temple and its service upon the earth. Correspondingly, we may propose the role of the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice in the sect of Qumran to be as follows:
A caste of priests, regarded by their followers as already participating in an angelic reality, and probably cultivating that experience for themselves, extends to those followers the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
1&5
possibility of experiencinq anqelic identity as well.
Throuqh
charismatic example combined with aqqrandizinq exhortations and imperatives, the priestly leadership encouraqes amonq its followinq
a
transformed
self-understandinq.
The
self-
experience thus induced is understood as confirminq, and even contributinq
to
earthly world
an
into
eschatoloqical the
transformation
abode of God.
of
the
Throuqh rich and
captivatinq descriptions of the celestial world, alternatinq with imperatives addressed in suqqestive and allurinq terms, the exalted priesthood qives its sect to understand that its earthly home is ontoloqically continuous with the abode of the anqels.
Thus, in its own imaqininq, when the sect ultimately
charqes forth from Qumran to purify Jerusalem it will be from no mere earthly outpost, but from the heavens themselves. The scheme just set forth is consonant with the planninq and imaqininq, at Qumran,
of an epic final battle between
darkness and liqht for sovereiqnty in Jerusalem.
It is in
accord with the emphasis at Qumran on the practices and rightful custodianship of the temple in Jerusalem.
It is in
keepinq with the manifest effort at Qumran to manaqe the realities of embodied human existence so that the concerns of anqelic
life--purity,
service,
reqimented
behavior,
and
militancy on behalf of God--would supersede the concerns of earthly flesh. Qumran of
This scheme makes sense of the project at
orqanizinq human society in such a
actualize an eschatological reality in the earth.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
way as
to
Experience
1,, of the heavens and angelic self-experience were not ends unto themselves at Qumran but subserved a plan for transforming the world and, in particular, the temple in Jerusalem. The Songs of tbe Sabbath Sacrifice cannot be separated from the Qumran sect's triumphal narrative of the cosmos, nor from the hierarchical structure of its society,
organized
around its alienated and aspiring temple-priests.
How much
any
sectarian
individual,
at
any
level
of
the
sect's
hierarchy, truly experienced his angelic identity as real and actualized must remain a matter of conjecture.
Still, the
idea of such real and actual experience seems to have been the basis of religious life at Qumran, and every indication points to experience and praxis, not to doctrine alone.
T h e
alternations of descriptive and imperative tone in the songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice, and elsewhere in the literature of
Qumran, are intended to bring about the general experience of an
angelic
reality and
angelic
identity;
but the
actual
experiences induced by such texts in individual members of the sect must have been a matter of degrees, however continuous each level of experience might have been with the next.
At
the very least the sectarians addressed in these texts must be have been sanctum.
expected to
imagine
and
envision the
heavenly
They seem also to have been invited to think of
themselves as belonging to that setting.
The leaders of the
sect
of
were
essential,
certainly
induced
to
think
themselves
as
constituent members of God's angelic elect and
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
1S7
guides of God's people on earth.
The leadership of the sect
was encouraged to think of itself as bridging the heavens and the earth, and the sect at large was encouraged to regard its leadership in that way. If there was a communal lection of the Songs of the Sabbath
Sacrifice
at
Qumran--which
seems
likely--the
participants and listeners of the lection would have had various responses, described.
along the continuum of experience just
These experiences would have been determined to a
large degree by the roles and stations of the participants and listeners within the sectarian community.
We may speculate
that a lowly member of the sect might have recognized some point in the text past which he could, or should no longer identify with the ever-loftier celestials evoked, but such a person would probably also have assumed that his superiors, and perhaps the leader of the liturgy in particular, realized angelic
identity
more
exalted
than
his
own.
(The
preponderance of description in the text may testify to the importance of imaginal spectatorship in the experience of the many.)
In fact,
faith in the superiority of the realized
identities of his leaders would probably have been an integral ingredient
of
a
lowly
sectarian's
own
experience
of
angelification. In conclusion, the experience targeted by the angelifying texts of Qumran was one of experienced, antic transformation. That is, the desired result was a deeply felt change of self-
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
168
conception, predestined,
entailing the
perception
divinely determined,
that of the angels in heaven.
in
one's
self of
a
identity continuous with
In this sense, liturgies like
the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice would have enabled a communal experience of mysticism. 172 Even if the person at the pinnacle of a lection of the Songs,
the issuer of the calls to worship and the dramatic
purveyor of the images and sobriquets of the divine throneroom--presumably the self-glorifying, priestly leader of 4Q427 and 4Q49lc--even if the holder of that high and essential office were a fraud, so to speak, and experienced nothing like a
mystical
still
he
would
provided to those below him ample fodder
for
a
experience.
transformation
himself,
have
mystical
The compelling lection of such a text in a well-
prepared sectarian assembly would have given participants ample opportunity to experience themselves as angels and to glimpse the world as it would be when they were.
That very
experience, or the promise of it, and scarcely anything less, may have been exactly compelling enough to justify a decision of forsaking city-life to follow a band of would-be priests and live an existence of exile and enmity in Wadi Qumran, on the shore of the Dead Sea.
172 Moreover, the apparent leader'• claial of a throne in the heaven• (in 4Q49lc) lend• further weight to the •ugge•tion that the ultimate my•tical experience of •becoming divine or angelic, • a• •et forth by Wolf•on in collftection with the Shirot and with hekha~oe literature, wa• realized at lea•t in the upper echelon of Qumran.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
11t
Chapter Two
TIIB UGBLXC LBGACY OJ' ADAII
Zarae1 aa an Angelic Lineage iD Paeudepigrapba outaide QUaran
InUoduation The library of Qumran, as we have seen, provides dramatic evidence of efforts toward the experience of angelic identity. The intensity and pervasiveness of angelic fascination in the sources of Qumran is intelligible in terms of that locale's having been the home of a single religious movement (evolving, to be sure, but relatively circumscribed through the period of its existence) for whom an idea of Israel's affinity with the angels apparently was a foundational and sustaining raison d'etre. On the other hand, the texts of Qumran are far from alone in representing ideas and motifs that can be grouped under the heading of •angelic Israel."
For one thing, there can be
little doubt that the idea of Israel as angelic came to Qumran from without, from a larger Jewish world that was preoccupied with the theme. 173
Jubilees, and the Similitudes of 1Enoch,
Jame• a. Charle8WOrth, in •The Portrayal of the Righteous as an Angel, • pp. 135-151, defend• the a••ertion that the theme of angelic humanity i• •certainly a Jewish concept that antedate• the second century C.E. and may predate the fall of Jerusal. . ~ 10.• (P• 135). I would argue, on the basis of Qumran's evidence and of evidence in this chapter, that the concept wa• 173
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
170
which originated outside of Qumran, are witnessed among the Dead Sea Scrolls as well, and probably informed and inspired the formation and early development of the Qumran sect. 174 As well,
fraqments of the songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice,
likely indigenous to Qumran, have been found at Masada, which hints at broader contemporary interest in Qumran's traditions and
practices,
history. 175
at
least
toward
the
end
of
the
sect's
What is more, among those of the so-called "Old
Testament Pseudepiqrapha" 176 that are dated to the last two centuries in which the Jerusalem Temple stood and to about the first
four
affinity
centuries
and
after
convergence
its
between
destruction, Israel
and
notions the
of
angels
widespread safely before the second century C.E. and also before Jerusalem's fall. Thia ia also the view of w. P. Smelik, who, in his article, •on Mystical Transformation of the Righteous into Light in Judaism,• remarks upon what he terms a •remarkable boom of angelology in the last prechristian centuries,• and document• with a number of citation• his assertion that •the association of the righteoua with angela, star• and light became well attested and widespread.• (p. 125)
o.s. Wintermute, in O'rP, vol.2, pp.43-44, notes that •moat scholars are convinced that there ia an explicit reference to Jubilee• [in the Damascua Rule) (CD 16.2-4). Be also notea, •The majority of scholars who have atudied the relationahip between Jubil-• and the doctrines of the sect at Qumran have noted a strong kinship. • On the other hand, •Jubil-• doea not reflect any significant break with the larger national body whereaa the ~an aect baa broken with the eatablishment and ita prieathood, which it judge• apostate.• 174
175 It bears recalling once more that the ao-called Damaacua covenant (the Rule oL the congregation) made ita way into the cairo Genizah, a fact that ahould inspire some humility in apeculationa concerning the geographical and chronological range of intereat in ~an·• ideas. 176
Por a general diacuaaion and definition of thia textual field, see Charleaworth•a introduction to 'rhe Old 'reat. . .nt Pseudepigrapha (Hereinafter, O'rP), vol. 1, pp. xxi-xxxiv, in particular xxiv-xxv.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
171
abound. 177
'Angelic
Jewish texts,
Israel'
is
a
preeminent
theme
among
(and in Jewish elements of other texts 178 ) that
represent Jewish religious thought in the period immediately before and during the rise of rabbinism. The persistence of the theme of angelic humanity outside Judaism is attested by the preservation (and adaptation) of so many
of
the
relevant
texts
in
the
Eastern
and
African
churches, in whose lanquages many of these documents come to us.
on the other hand, relatively little has been said to
date of the theme's persistence in rabbinic Judaism. qreat
flourishing
of
angelic
fascination
and
The
heavenly
speculation that characterizes the textual record of Judaism following the Maccabean revolt
is such an explosion and,
apparently, so sweeping a wave through pre-rabbinic Judaism, that the question of where this phenomenon went--how it was absorbed, harnessed, diffused, or contained in the classical rabbinic tradition--should be far more obvious and pressing
I. Gruenwald, in Apoca~yptic and lferlcabah lfysticiSIII, (Leiden: 1980) p. 47, notea that, before Jewiah apocalyptical literature'& "disappearance" (which he aaya waa complete within thirty or forty yeara after the Temple • a destruction-a concluaion open to doubt), the genre "underwent a noteworthy change. Ita natural intereat in the world of the divine Merkavah gained more power and aignificance. Thua one can find in the apocalyptic texta which were written under the tragic impreaaion of the deatruction of Jerusalem a marked interest in theoaophical aubjecta." 177
178
Moat of the texta to be examined in thia chapter come to ua through varioua Baatern and A£rican churchea. Aa well, the Gnoatic Apoca~ypae of Ad. . the Chriatian ~eae. . .ne of Ad. ., Apoca~ypae of Baruch, ~eaeamene of Iaaac and lfartyrdo• and Aacenaion of Iaaiah, are all booka that in their preaent atate tran~t Chriatian meaaagea but, aa we ahall diacuaa, are thought to include earlier Jewiah tradition&. We ahall alao aee an Apocalypse of Seehel, apparently of Jewiah origin, that ia preaerved in the COlogne Mani Codex.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
172
than it has been amonq scholars of rabbinic reliqion.
Of
course it is necessary, first of all, to explore the phenomena in question before turninq to their traces in the classical rabbinic canon. As to qeneric characteristics of the texts at hand: a qreat many of the relevant pseudepiqraphic books are of a quided-tour variety, in which particular human protaqonists and
narrators
are
emissaries. 179
taken up
into
the
heavens
by
anqelic
The frequency of this theme itself bespeaks
wide acceptance of the notion that human beinqs miqht enjoy anqel-like experiences.
Further, in many of those same texts,
and in others, patriarchs and prophets of the Israelite line {and at least two matriarchs) are presented as partakinq in somethinq
like
anqelic
identity.
In
particular,
the
prominence of an anqel-like conception of Adam amonq these texts points toward an understandinq of mankind as oriqinally anqelic.
Finally, almost all of the texts included by these
descriptions
also
involve
visions
and
promises
of
the
riqhteous elect enjoyinq anqel-like identity after death or in a time-to-come. The anqelic themes in the various pseudepiqraphic works have of course been recoqnized and commented upon before, not least by the principal editors and translators of the various works, the true pioneers in this textual field.
The work here
179 The•• include lBnoch, 2Bnoch, Apocalyp•• of Zephaniah, 4Ezra, Vi•ion• of Ezra, Apocalyp•e of Sederach, Apocalyp•• of Abraham, Te•tament of Levi, Te•tament of Abraham, Te•tament of I•aac, A•c•n•ion of I•aiah.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
173
has been facilitated especially by the succinct and well cross-referenced introductions to many of these sources in Charlesworth's
two
Charlesworth's
article of Angel." 180
Righteous
as
an
included
in
that
one
volumes.
study,
1980
on
With
must
also
single
"The Portrayal regard
Charlesworth
to
the
writes,
of
out the
sources "almost
all ••• present the ideal figure as really a human with angelic qualities or even angelic status. " 181
While agreeing with
Charlesworth's caution that "the diverse traditions should not be forced into a coherent system," 182 this chapter will argue that many of these traditions are most comprehensible in terms of a common underpinning narrative motif.
These texts also
reflect what we may rightly call a Zeitgeist characterized by a
propensity and a
angelic lines.
readiness to conceive of rsrael along
This study is in agreement with, and should
affirm Charlesworth's conclusion that, in these sources, "We are confronted with evidence of the impressive elasticity of the Jewish perspective of man and the importance of man in the cosmos. " 183
More recently, crispin H. T. Fletcher-Louis has
written an extensive and abundantly annotated
chapter on
"Jewish angelomorphic traditions," examining, as he puts it, "the extent and form of Jewish textual evidence for the view 180
s-
181
Charle•worth, 1980, P• 135.
182
Charle•worth, 1980, P• 145.
183
Charle•worth, 1980, P• 146.
the fir•t note of
th~•
chapter, above.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
174
that humanity or particular human beings can be angelic in identity or status. " 184 The endeavor here, however, must be more than a mere stroll
through
Fletcher-Louis'
very
pertinent
study
and
through the indispensable work of Charlesworth and of other scholars.
For
one thing,
this
chapter's
survey
of
the
pseudepigrapha enables us further to define exactly what we are seeking in the rabbinic sources.
To specify:
we are
looking for conceptions of the Israelite line as actually sharing in the nature of the angels.
in a particular ontology of Israel,
This study is interested in texts that portray
living Israelites as angelic in essence.
Eschatology,
as
Fletcher-Louis observes, often "recapitulates protology. 11185 That is, descriptions of the righteous enjoying angelic life after death
and at the
end of days
often correspond to
ascriptions of angelic nature to Israel's progenitors, and especially
to
the
first
human
beings
before
their
transgression. On the other hand, one cannot necessarily infer ontology or anthropology from teleology.
The promise of angelic life
on the other side of a great personal or cosmic transformation is qualitatively different from the suggestion that one might
184
I must acknowledge as well that in Fletcher-Louis' chapter I encountered a number of relevant sources--especially Christian ones and texts beyond the scope of Charlesworth's two volumes--that had not previously figured in my own thinking. 185
Fletcher-Louis, 1997, pp. 138-139.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
175
come to realize inherent angelic nature in the here-and-now, during earthly life.
Correspondingly, we are here interested
in eschatological and post-mortem angelification only where these
themes
clearly contribute
to
the
trope of
angelic
identity realizable within the present life.
Paradmcical. llotiL, Paradorical. Narrative
The
very
idea
of
"angelic
humanity"
would
seem
an
oxymoron, mankind being famously and apparently a creature of the earth. epicenter
So it is perhaps best to begin this survey at the of
the
paradox,
incarnate human being. 186
with
the earthly
body of
the
The book of Jubilees includes the
following elaboration on the law of circumcision within its narrative of Abraham and Sarah: This law (of circumcision] is for all the generations, and there is no circumc1s1ng of days 187 and there is no passing beyond eight days because it is an eternal ordinance and written in the heavenly tablets. And anyone who is born whose own flesh is not circumcised on the eighth day is not from the sons of the covenant which the Lord made for Abraham since (he is) from the children of destruction. And there is therefore no sign upon him so that he might belong to the Lord because (he is destined) to be destroyed and annihilated from the earth and to be uprooted from the earth because he has broken the covenant of the Lord our God. Because the nature of all the angels-of-the186
Charleaworth, in hia 1980 atudy, collecting Jewiah heroea repreaented aa angela, notea, •a1moat all paaaagea [included) present the ideal figure a• really a human with angelic qualitiea or even angelic atatua." (p. 135) 1
~
i.e. ahortaning the period before circumciaion; cf.
o. s. Wintermute,
OTP, vol. 2, p.87, note b.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
17, presence and of tbe ange~s-of- sanctifica-tion •as tbus Lro• tbe day of 'their crea'tion. ADd in 'tile presence of tbe ange~s-of-tbe-presence and tbe ange~s-of-sanctifica'tion be sanctified Israe~ so tba't 'they mgb't be vitb b1. and lf'itb his ho~y ange~s.
(Jubilees 15:27) As
a
sign
of
angelic
nature
inscribed
in
the
flesh,
circumcision perhaps best represents the paradox of angelic identity realized through earthly
life.
Circumcision
is
conceived here as a ritual of angelification--or, at the very least, of angelomorphism.
It is a covenantal act that brings
the human body into conformity with an angelic paradigm.
The
rite distinquishes the faithful line of Israel from other factions round about and allows Israel access to the company of the angels and of the divine.
o. s.
noted, has commented that Jubilees,
Wintermute, as we have in contrast with other
texts found at Qumran, "does not reflect any significant break with the larger national body." 188
Still, the eschatological
polemic here against non-circumcision certainly is an internal harangue, defining an elite or true Israel, as much as it is a statement of distinction from other nations. 189
188
To borrow
O'l'P, vol. 2, p.44.
189
Jubileea 16:33-34 makea the internal harangue explicit, predicting that "the aona of Iarael will deny thia ordinance, • making themaelvea "like the gentiles, • and incurring •great wrath from the Lord. • Notably, theae noncircumciaera are termed •the aona of Belial.• Fletcher-Louia (1997, p. 126) writea, "The book of Jubilee• ia a thoroughly Jewiah apocalypae with an early second century B.c. origin. There are atrong connection• with later Eaaeniam ••• However, the exiatence of manuacripta out aide Qumran indicatea Jubilee• ia representative of wider ideaa, c01111110n to Jewiah groupa wishing to define themaelvea over againat the threat of Hellenization. • Later in hia atudy, Fletcher-Louia obaervea generally of the Second Temple period, "Whilat the demarcation of the nation over againat paganism waa widely atrenqthened, ao too many Jewa inveated their energy in demarcating themaelvea aa truly faithful Jewa
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
177
Wintermute's idiom in a "national
body"
circumcision,
of
literal sense,
Israel
is
according to this
the characteristic
angel-like text,
by
dint
of
and the covenantal
conformity of the body is seen as a passport to community with God's holy angels. 190 An internal harangue is suggested in particular by the
statement that those who are uncircumcised have "broken the covenant of the Lord our God" (15:26) • 191
However, elsewhere
in the book, the camp to be "destroyed and annihilated from the earth and to be uprooted from the earth," is the camp of idolatry. 192
Admittedly the idolatrous camp might include
apostate Israelites as well, but such can hardly be the sole
over against their racial siblings,• and he goes on to say, "such groups could express their separation and sense of privilege in angelomorphic terms." (1997, p. 184) Albert I. Baumqarten, in The Flourishing of Jewish Seces, writes of the period following the Maccabean revolt: "With the old national per~ter facing a new sort of danger, as a result of an outcome of which Jews might have only dared dream, but possessed of a cultural bias in favor of a situation in which they found themselves protected from the outside world by a perimeter, sects flourished which established new voluntary boundaries of their own against other Jews." (p. 88)
° Circumcision, according to Jubilees 16:31-32 corresponds to a divine choice to reign over Israel with out intermediation, in contradistinction to other nations, who are governed by •spirits" who "lead them astray.• Israel is delineated in this passage in particular over and against "Ishmael and his sons and brothers and Baau." 19
191 The reference might be to compliance with an anti-circumcision edict, however a theme of censuring voluntary, hellenizing tendencies in Jubilees is evidenced by the dictate, in connection with Adam's covering of his nakedness: "Therefore it ia C(llllllAnded in the heavenly tablets to all who know the judgement of the Law that they should cover their shame and they should not be uncovered aa the gentiles are uncovered" (3:31). 192
In Jubilees 22:22: "As for those who worship idols and for the hated ones, there is no hope in the land of the living; because they will go down to Sheol. And in the place of judgement they will wal.k and they wil.l have no memory upon the earth, ao all of those who worship idols shall be taken away."
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
178
subjects of the prediction; surely the nations who do not accept Israel's God are also meant. Much as we have seen throughout the literature of Qumran, Jubilees casts the faithfully covenanted Israelite line over and against a camp of evil and error to be vanquished utterly in the eschaton.
Israel is excluded from the faction of evil,
as we have just seen, by dint of its inclusion in one camp with God's holy angels. the
angels
through
an
The nation realizes its affinity with adherence
to
God's
laws
that
is
expressed in earthly life, and even through the flesh. On
the
other
hand,
Jubilees,
like
many
of
the
pseudepigrapha that we shall examine in this chapter, gives evil in the world of humankind a decidedly angelic point of origin.
At issue is the theme of the celestials who were
drawn to the daughters of mankind, procreated with them, and thereby caused all flesh to corrupt its way, and injustice to increase in the earth (Jubilees 5:1-2).
In comparison with
other pseudepigrapha that we shall see, Jubilees is perhaps somewhat oblique with regard to this theme, but it too gives the impression that the conflict of good and evil in the earthly world is actually a tendencies. identity
with
An
Israelite
the
angels
struggle of opposite angelic inclination
in
heaven
to is
strive opposed
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
toward by
the
179
corruptinq tendency of a certain anqelic faction to forsake heaven and propaqate rebellion in the earth. 193 such a briefly formulated synopsis of the theme is, of course,
somethinq of a simplification; the pseudepiqraphic
narratives tell not one but several stories. course
of
this
chapter
we
shall
see
Still, in the
that
quite
a
few
pseudepiqrapha seem to be, in part, variations on this common narrative that casts--to simplify aqain--the faction of the fallen anqels aqainst the faction of the fallen but oriqinally anqelic Adam.
Whereas the faction of the fallen anqels is
doomed to ultimate
failure and destruction,
the
covenant
between God and the Israelite line enables the elect amonq Adam's descendants to retain or reqain somethinq of Adam's oriqinal
anqelic
nature
and
thereby,
eventually,
to
triumph. 194 Another early pseudepiqraphon (apparently also brouqht to Qumran), 1Enoch, presents a much more poiqnant and dramatic
193
It ia in thia aenae, preawaably, that Jubilee• include• noncircumciaing Jewa among the •aona of Beliar• in 16: 33. Jubileea initially aeema to aee the corrupt influence of the fallen angela aa extinguished through the divine decree of death (5:8), the violence through which the deacendanta of the illicit uniona are •wiped out from the earth• (5:9), the decree of a •new righteouaneaa• (5:12), and the flood (5:20-32). However, aoon after the flood, Noah obaervea of hia aon•, • I • - in your deeda before me that you have not been onea who walked in righteouaneaa becauae you have begun to walk in the patha of corruption ••• Por I • - · and behold, the demona have begun to mi•lead you and your children.• (7:26-27). The aetting of Noah'• remark in a aummary of the flood-narrative give• the imprea•ion that Noah'a aona have allowed the iniquity reaulting from what he calla here the •fornication of the watchera• (7:21) to •lip through even the draatic purge of the deluge. The flood might thua aeem a tragically futile epiaode, except that, along with God' a aubaequent covenant with Noah (which anticipate• the blood-covenant with Iarael according to 6:10-12), the cataatrophe doea level the playing field aomewhat, ao to apeak. 194
Por thia narrative line, cf. llnoch 15:8,11-12; 19:1; 10:21-22; 69:111; and 86-87 (where the narrative ia told in the form of an animal-apocalypae).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
180
expression
of
this
affinity with the
same
counterintuitive
faithful
angels
theme:
in heaven set
angelically originated evil in the earth. particularly
clear
in
the
a
framing
human
against
The theme is
narrative
of
Enoch's
intercession on behalf of the fallen angelic "Watchers." This purpose of Enoch's heavenly journey reverses expected roles entirely:
one might well expect pleas for heavenly angels to
intercede on behalf of a humanity responsible for sin in the wake of Adam's transgression. 195
Instead, while Adam's sin
cannot not entirely be denied, the origin of evil in the world is placed squarely in the story of the rebellious celestial Watchers and their leader Azazel (first told in chapters 68) • 196
of
Contrary to what one might expect, the commingling
these
angels
introduction
into
with the
human earth
women, of
and
the
heavenly
concomitant
"secrets"
is
responsible for a distancing of human beings from their own intended angelic status.
This counterintuitive phenomenon is
most explicitly (and perhaps most paradoxically) indicated in lEnoch in connection with an angel called Pinem'e,
listed
195 Indeed, this ia exactly the normative assumption with which God upbraids the Watchers in 1Enoch 15, •tt ia meet that you [Watchers] intercede on behalf of man, and not man on your behalf.• 196 This account of the origin of iniquity ia recapitulated also in lEnoch 64:2: •These are the angela who descended upon the earth and revealed what was hidden to the children of the people, and led the children of the people astray to commit sin,• and the theme is also apparent in 16:1-2: •rrom the days of the slaughter and destruction, and the death of the giants and the spiritual beings of the spirit, and the flesh, from which they have proceeded forth, which will corrupt without incurring judgement, they will corrupt until the great age ia conaUDD&ted, until everything is concluded upon the Watchers and the wicked ones.• Later in this chapter we shall see that Adam's transgression itself ia often regarded as the first human act instigated by the fallen angelic faction.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
181
amonq the leaders of the fallen Watchers, who is said to have revealed to mankind "all the secrets of their wisdom," and "caused the people to penetrate the secret of writinq and the use of ink and paper" (69:8-9).
The text qoes on to explain:
on account of this matter there are many who have erred from eternity to eternity, until this very day. For human beinqs were not created but to be like anqels, permanently to maintain pure and riqhteous lives. Death, which destroys everythinq, would have not touched them had it not been throuqh their knowledqe, by which they shall perish; death is now eatinq us by means of this power. (lEnocb 69:10-11) Xt is doubtful that the authorship of this ink-and-paper work, 1Eno~h,
words.
intended to be ironically self-referential with these Mankind at larqe, accordinq to this passaqe, is at
risk of remaininq diminished from anqelic status because of access
to
the
heavenly
secrets
of
wisdom
and
writinq.
Evidently the authorship of 1Enoch believed that, outside its own divinely sanctioned tradition, wisdom and writinq were vectors of error and iniquity.
That conviction obviates the
paradox or irony of our passaqe somewhat,
but it remains
remarkable that 1Enoch itself, and all other scriptures that purport to combat the camp of evil instiqated by the fallen anqels, emerqe as efforts to fiqht anqelic forces with their own deadly weapons--to use the secrets of wisdom and writinq to counteract the disastrous consequences of the introduction of these same faculties to humankind. A broadly accepted narrative of the form just outlined--a elrama pittinq the upward-strivinq descendants of an Adam
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
182
diminished from original angelic status against an opposite earthly faction inspired by rebellious fallen angels--must have emerged safely before the destruction of the second Temple.
It seems evident that this narrative theme underlies
many of the various pseudepiqrapha that speak to the theme of angelic Israel.
Our understanding of many of the texts that
we encounter among the pseudepiqrapha can be improved with reference to the theme of an elect human line's divinely sanctioned effort to realize and regain its original angellike stature. in
Ultimately, our understanding of certain themes
classical
rabbinic
literature
can
be
improved
with
reference to this pseudepiqraphic theme as well.
Ange~ic Israe~:
A
Pries'tl.y ParaditpJ
Before turning to the various expressions of the theme just outlined,
it is essential that we appreciate just how
much the angelic conception of Israel that is involved depends on
the
levitical
tradition
of
Israel
as
"a
kingdom
of
priests."
We should first recall the biblical narratives of
prophetic
commissioning
in
which
priestly
figures
are
initially awed by the alterity of angels only to realize something like angelic identity in themselves Zech, 3) •
(E.g.
I sa. 6,
We shall hear many echoes of this theme in the
sources of the present chapter.
It is also worth noting that
Fletcher-Louis,
has argued for
most recently,
a
possible
association of the •one like a son of man• in Daniel with the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
183
figure of the High Priest officiating in the Temple. 197
We
have also seen the centrality of the priestly line and of the Temple-modalities
of
psalmody,
purity,
and
communal
regimentation in the angelic conception of Israel at Qumran. Bearing all this in mind, it is quite arguable that the notion of
angelic
Israel
originates
as
an
essentially
priestly
The argument is borne out by the evidence of the
concept.
pseudepiqrapha. To begin with Jubilees once more, Jacob's blessing of Levi in that book indicates the belief in a particular priestly lot in common with God's angels: May the Lord give you and your seed very great glory. May He draw you and your seed near to Him from all flesh to serve in His sanctuary as the angels of the presence and the holy ones. May your sons' seed be like them with respect to glory and greatness and sanctification. And may he make them qreat in every age. And they will become judges and rulers and leaders for all of the seed of the sons of Jacob. (Jubilees 31:11-15) Certainly at Qumran this blessing was interpreted as more than a matter of mere analogy and parallelism. further priestly
evidence role
for
among
There is also
an ontological understanding of the other
texts
to
be
examined
in
this
chapter. 198
cr~•pin H.T. !'letcher-Lou~•, •The H~gh Prie•t •• Divine Mediator in the Hebrew Bible: Dan. 7:13 •• a Te•t ca•e,• SBL S.-inar Papers, 1997, pp. 161-193. (1997b). 197
198
Temple
cf. al•o Jame• Kugel'•, •Lev~'• Blevat~on to the Prie•thood in Second BTR 86, 1993.
Writ~ng••
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
184
The angel who mediates the revelation of Jubil.ees to Moses
says
that
the
line
of
Levi
was
"chosen
for
the
priesthood and levitical orders to minister before the Lord always
just as we do. " 199
lEnoch
as
well,
the
In the animal-apocalypse of
establishment
of
the
tabernacle
corresponds to a transformation of the figure of Moses from a sheep
into a
man,
clear code
as we shall see, 200
pericope,
for angelification and thus another
in that
indication
that the angelic ontology of Israel is dependent upon the priestly tradition.
As well,
calendrical and astronomical
we should consider that the interest within Jubilees and
lEnoch is paralleled in Qumran's sectarian texts, and was, apparently, a point of contention between the early sect there and
the
priesthood
in
Jerusalem, 201 another
these books' belonging in the priestly domain.
indication
of
We shall also
observe that Levi plays an essential role in the induction of Asenath into the secrets of Judaism and angel-like identity in
Joseph and Asenath. The Letter of Aristeas
(variously dated between 250
B.C.E. and 100 C.E.) presents an outside view of High Priest and his service as something other-worldly.
199
Jubil•••r pa••age mu•t refer 237-8)r Bgo (199lr note that Jubil••• 200
In this theme,
30:18. Pletcher-Loui• al•o ob•erve• that the "we" in thi• to the •angelic community• (1997r p.l26). Mach (1992ar pp. pp. 363-4)r Kugel (1993r p. 35) and Weinfeld 1995r p. 149 all treat• the prie•tly line a• angelic.
And cf. Pletcher-Loui8r 1997r p. 182.
201
We •hould recall that the foundational •aalakhic Letter• of Qumranr 4QMMTr begin• with a calendar.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
185
the
letter
may
very
well
reflect
presentation of itself to the people. is
mostly
an
account
of
the
the
priesthood's
own
The Letter of Aristeas
translation
of
the
Jewish
Scriptures into Greek, but it also contains a description of Jerusalem and of the Temple that includes the following lines in a description of Eleazar, the High Priest: on his breast he wears what is called the "oracle," to which are attached "twelve stones" of different kinds, set in gold, each stone flashing its own natural distinctive color--quite indescribable. Upon his head he has what is called the "tiara," and upon this, the inimitable "mitre," the hallowed diadem having in relief on the front in the middle in holy letters on a golden leaf the name of God, ineffable in glory. The wearer is considered worthy of such vestments at the services. Their appearance makes one awe-struck and dumbfounded: A man would think he had come out of this world into another one. I emphatically assert that every man who comes near the spectacle of what I have described will experience astonishment and amazement beyond words, his very being transformed by the hallowed arrangement of every single detail. Aristeas vv.99-99
At the least, the letter interprets the appearance of the High Priest as being recognizably calculated to give the impression of
an
angelic
being.
To
Israelites
regarding
him
as
emblematic of their entire people, the High Priest would have conveyed an implicit message of national angelic identity. The lanquage of the text suggests that the fiqure of the High
Priest crosses the
boundary between this world
and
another, yet it also can be read as saying that the observer himself would feel as though he had left this world upon
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
18&
seeinq the Hiqh Priest in the Temple service. 202
In this
way, the Hiqh Priest serves the same role as do the various quidinq anqels of the pseudepiqraphic tours of heaven: he awes with the qlory of the supernal realm and allows the one who encounters him to share in the experience of that realm.
In
that
an
sense,
the
Hiqh
apocalyptic fiqure.
Priest
serves
as
somethinq
of
What is more, the entire qenre of anqel-
mediated apocalypses could well be founded on the paradiqm of a
priesthood that represents the anqelic world,
allows its adherents to experience that world. a
and thus
This would be
priesthood that mediates truths from that world to the
people, a priesthood that functions, as Hecataeus of Abdera, writinq
in the
late fourth
century B.C. E.,
puts
it,
"as
angeloi to them of God's commandments. " 203
202
Fletcher Louis (1997, p. 125) points out that while R.J.H. Shutt, in OTP (v.l, p.19) interprets the line as referring to the observer•• own experience, the 1913 translation of Herbert Andrews, in Charles• edition, translates that the experience of seeing the High Priest was such •aa to make one feel that one had come into the presence of a man who belonged to a different world. • 203 Cf. Fletcher-Louis, 1997, pp. 120-122. Beata Ego, in her 1989 study, describes the relationship between the earthly •xultua• of the temple and the heavenly realm in terms of what she calla •urbild-Abbild-Denken,• a convergence to the point of identity between the symbol. and the symbol.ized. She goes on to assert, "Auf Grund des antiken Symbolverataendnisaes, daa auf der Binheit von Bil.d und Sache baaiert, iat der irdiache Kul.tus nicht nur zeichenhafte Representation des himmliachen Kul.tua, aondern mit dieaem geradezu identiach.• (p. 68). That is, in Bgo•a view, the earthl.y community is not merely meant to symbolize the angelic realm, ita identity ia meant to converge with that realm.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
187
In the Beg.i nni ng:
Ange~ic
Ada.
Mount Zion, the site of Jerusalem's Temple, is a focal point in Jubilees' angel-like conception of Israel, and Mount Sinai, the locus of the book's revelation to Moses upon his ascent to God, is another.
A third focus of especial interest
in mankind's angelic nature is the Garden of Eden.
All three
of these loci are readily conceived as points of congress and convergence,
perhaps
to the point
earthly and heavenly realms. are
also
converge.
points
at
which
of
unity,
between the
As such, these imaginal places human
and
angelic
identities
The three places are suggestively listed together
in the account of Noah's rejoicing at his son Shea's allotted portion: And he knew that the garden of Eden was the holy of holies and the dwelling of the Lord. And Mount sinai (was) in the midst of the wilderness, and Mount Zion (was) in the midst of the navel of the earth. These three were created as holy places, one facing the other. The service of the High Priest in the Temple's holy of holies, as we shall continue to see, was conceived as a high-point of human Sinai
angelomorphism. 204 and
Zion,
Thus
suggests
the
that
equation of the
angelic
Eden
with
character
recapitulated by Moses on Sinai and by the High Priest on
204
Pletcher Loui• (1997, p. 139) ha• noted that •the •pacific correlation between the cult and Bden/paradi•e ••• i• well known and developed in the po•tbiblical period.•
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
188
Mount Zion in the Temple's inner sanctum, was thought of as original to humanity, as having been realized optimally in the first created human being. We shall see that the notion of a wondrous, angel-like Adam is a prominent fixture of rabbinic thought. conception of Adam is also widespread literature. 205 clearly
in pseudepigraphic
The idea is prominent at the outset of the
gnostic
centuries,
A similar
Apocalypse
c. E. , 206
of
Adam,
dated
to
which seems to rely upon a
the
first
commonplace
acceptance of the notion of an angelomorphic Adam in its presentation of an original humankind greater in stature even than the demiurge: The revelation which Adam taught his son Seth in the seven hundredth year, saying, Listen to my words, my son Seth. When God created me out of earth along with Eve your mother, I used to go about with her in a glory which she had seen in the aeon from which we had come. She taught me a word of knowledge of the eternal God. And we were like the great eternal angels, for we were loftier than the God who created us and the powers that were with him, whom we did not know. (ApAdam 1:1-3) An affinity between Adam and the angels is also the essential assertion
in the opening of the Testament of Adam,
also
ascribed to the early centuries C.E. {between the second and 205
CharleftrOrth pp.l37-9).
(1980) collect• •everal of the relevant text•
206
(e•p.
The compo•Ltion of thi• text i• dated to the fu•t centuria• C. B., but the work'• relLance upon ready acceptance of the idea of an angelic Adam i• •ugge•tLve of a long•tanding tradition to thL• effect. G. Macrae wrLte• in OTP vol. 1, p. 708, •The l~Lt• for dating are approx~tely the fir•t to the fourth centurL•• A.D., and the document probably belong• earlier rather than later in thi• period. In addition, it may contain tradLtional element• that are much earlier.•
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
181
the
fifth,
with the Jewish foundations
of the
survivinq
Christian recensions probably considerably older) 207 : The fourth hour is the "holy, holy, holy" praise of the seraphim. And so X [Adam] used to hear, before I sinned, the sound of their winqs in Paradise. But after I transqressed aqainst the law, I no lonqer heard that sound. The fifth hour is the praise of the waters that are above the heaven. And so I, toqether with the anqels, used to hear the sound of miqhty waves, a sound which would prompt them to lift a hymn of praise to the Creator. (TAdam 1: 4-5) Here, Adam shares, until his sin, in an anqelic experience of the qoinqs on in the hiqher heavens.
His perception of the
praises above seem no more limited than that of the anqels at larqe. The Testament oL Adam presents the idea that Adam was initially intended to become "a qod". 208
This plan is not
neqated by Adam's transqression, accordinq to the text, but only deferred with Adam's consiqnment to death for three days, after which time he is indeed seated at God's riqht hand and divinized
(TAdam 3:2-4) • 209
The Enoch-apocalypse preserved
207 Cf. Stephen Edward Robino•on, !'eae.-.ne oL Ad11111: An Exutinaeion oL ehe Syriac .nd Greek !'radieiona, SBL Di••ertation Serie• (Atlanta: 1982) pp. 148-53, and O!'P, vol. 1, p.990. 208 If ·~M· i• the underlying Hebrew here then the a••ociation of the term with Adam doe• not nece••arily originate in •o marked a •Two-Power••-theme a• we find in thi• text and it• enthron-nt of the fir.t man next to Goc:l. Recall that the prie•tly initiate of ~an •eem• to be promi•ed the identity of an ~M in 4Q543, 3, 1-6, (cf. 4Q545, 1, I, 15-18). 209 Thu• Adam •et• a precedent for Jeau•' own death, reaurrection, and a•cenaion, and hi• charting of thi• route from humanity to divinity indicate• a belief that •uch a potential wa• inherent, and realizable, in humanity even before the incarnation of the Chri•t. Cf. Fletcher-Louia, 1997, p.140.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
190
in Slavonic
(2Enoch)
also speaks of Adam as an
intended
angelic co-regent or viceroy: And on earth r assigned him to be a second angel, honored and great and glorious. And r assigned him to be a king, to reign on the earth and to have my wisdom. And there was nothing comparable to him on the earth, even among my creatures that exist. (2Enoch 30:11-13) This narrative of the commissioning of Adam in 2Enoch is immediately preceded
(in the Leningrad manuscript210 )
by a
poetic fragment that speaks poignantly of the paradox of human-angelic nature in a manner that shares a great deal with a rabbinic conception, which we shall encounter,
of man's
comprehending several divine "creatings," from "above" and from "below."
The fragment reads:
From invisible and visible substances r created man. From his two natures come both death and life. And as my image he knows the world like no other creature. But even at his greatest he is small, And again at his smallest he is great. (2Enoch 30:10) The text continues,
in the divine voice,
to assign "four
special stars" to Adam (30: 14) --and this may be a
further
indication of angelification, since, in 2Enoch, angels govern stars. 2 u
Moreover, the text associates the four letters of
Adam's name with the four directions of the cosmos (30:13), a motif present not only in this text,
210
charle•worth'• •J• liS, a.k.a.
•BAR liS, •
but in the Sibylline
Library of the Academy of
Science•, Leningrad. 211
s - ••pecially 4:1.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
111
Oracles (3:26) and in the Life of Adam and Eve (27:1) as well. This conception of an omnidirectional Adam, so to speak, calls to mind the cosmos-spanning Adam of midrashic literature, who stretches "from one end of the world to the other. " 212
The
close correspondence of these pseudepiqraphic motifs to themes in the rabbinic sources that we shall see does not mean that these extra-canonical works as such were known to the authors and tradents of rabbinic midrashim.
Certainly, however, these
motifs were present in the various milieux of early rabbinic creativity.
The similarities suggest that a need was felt, on
the part of at least some rabbinic sages, to contend with, and absorb such themes. Classical Rabbinic literature preserves a tradition of the angels worshiping the figure of the first man. 213
In the
rabbinic sources, that worship is retold as an error, arising out of an angelic confusion of the likeness of God with the genuine article.
Remarkably, the Life of Adam and Eve, a text
dated by M.D. Johnson to between 100 B.C.E. and 200 c.E. 214 , recounts that the heavenly angels were required to worship
Th••• trad~t~on• are gathered and exam~ned by Su•an H~d~tch in 'The Co•mic Adam• (1983). 212
213
E.q. Gene•~• Rabbah 8:10, probably the earlie•t rabbinic •ource to thi•
effect. 214
O'ZP, vol. 2., p. 252.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
192
Adam as he was paraded before them by the angel Michael. 215 According to this text, it was the refusal of the Satan and those angels subordinate to him to worship the first man that led to their beinq cast out of heaven and to their jealousy and spite toward mankind: "So with deceit r assailed your wife and made you to be expelled throuqh her from the joys of your bliss,
as
r
have
been
expelled
spiteful,
fallen anqel puts it. 216
narrative
(4:1-2),
"clearly
my qlory,"
as
the
According to this same
Adam and Eve ate "the food of anqels"
before beinq expelled from Eden. motif
from
one
way
Fletcher-Louis deems this
of
expressing
humanity's
angelomorphism," and he links it to the account in the fifth or sixth century C.E. Conflict of Adam and Eve in which Adam and Eve begin to thirst for water after their sin, when, as well, they can no longer see the anqels. 217 A similar
account
of
the
angels
being
commanded to
worship Adam--and of the refusal of one anqelic party to do so,
resul tinq in a banishment from heaven and inciting of
215
Fletcher-Louia (1997, p. 142) write• that thia text may be "underatood aa advocating a two-power• theology, • and it doea aeem likely that Adam • • intended atature in thia text ia aa we have aeen indicated in 2Enoch 30:11-13. 216
LAB, Viea, 12-16. Notably, the anqela fall down in worahip of God at the aiqht of the fiqure of Adam even when be ia dead, aa they arrive in a chariot of liqht from the open heaven• to tranaport him to the paradiae of the third heaven. ((LAB, Apocalypae, 33). It ia Adam himaelf, however, who ia worshiped by the anqela in Viea 12-16. The Apocalyp•e of Sederach (an amalqam of text• from the earlieat centuria• c.z. and a later Cbriatian aermon) alae tells of the anqela beinq required to worahip Adam, and alao cite• Satan•• refuaal to do so aa the reaaon for bia expulaion from heaven and apite toward mankind. 217
Fletcber-Louia, 1997, p. 141.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
113
transqression on the earth--survives in the Apocalypse of Sederach,
admittedl.y
a
much
later text,
Byzantine period, but shaped, according to of much earlier material."a18
redacted
s.
in
the
Agourides, "out
Clearly an account such as the
one that we have just seen in the Life of Adam and Eve is the basis of Sederach's qrievance with God concerning the origin of evil amonq mankind: Sederach said to him, "It was by your will that Adam was deceived, my Master. You commanded your anqels to worship Adam, but he who was first amonq the anqels disobeyed your order and did not worship him; and so you banished him, because he transqressed your commandment and did not come forth to worship the creation of your hands. If you loved man, why did you not kill the devil, the artificer of all iniquity? ApSederach 5:1-3 In the Testament of Abraham (dated by E.P. Sanders to 100
c. E.,
"pl. us or minus twenty-five years,") 219 the patriarch,
led by the angel Michael to the first gate of heaven, espies "a man seated on a qolden throne."
The appearance of the man
is "terrifyinq, like the Master's," (11:4) 220 he is described as
"wondrous"
(11:6),
and
he
despairs
and
(much
less
frequently) rejoices in turn as he watches the souls of the departed pass through a narrow or a broad gate--according to
218
u
9
220
O'rl', vol.l, p. 606. O"rl', vol. 1, pp. 874-875.
Aga.i.n, the "Two-Power•• •ugge•tion i• r-.rkable.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
114
their merits and their ultimate fates, we learn (11: 1-7). 2 ;u To Abraham's inquiry, "Who is this most wondrous man, who is adorned in such qlory ••• ? " Michael respond=:= 1 first-formed 222 Adam who is in such qlory,
"This is the
and he looks at
the world, since everyone has come from him" (11:9).
This
portrayal of Adam, resplendent in heavenly qlory, reminds of a fulfilled divine promise in the later Testament of Adam, where the first human beinq is elevated to become "a qod," seated at the Lord's riqht hand. 223
Seated224 in celestial
majesty
in
at
this
fateful
crossroads
the
Testament
of
Abraham, Adam suqqests a wondrous, anqelic, or even divine potential inherent in humankind, despite the human propensity toward transqression and shortcominq which the first man also represents. The Greek Apocalypse of Baruch text,
probably
of
the
second
(JBaruch), a Christian
century
C. E.,
certainly fashioned around earlier J e w i s h
and
almost
textual
221
Te•tament of Abraham 11:1-12. The broad gate leading to "destruction~" and •eternal puni•hment~· and the narrow one "to life~" another indication of Adam'• angalomorphic natura being realized~ even in death~ by only a emall elect among men. "Among ••van thou•and~· in the word• of the en•uing text it•elf~ "there i• •carcaly to be found one •avad •oul~ righteou• and undefiled." 222
Gk. ho proeoplaaeoa.
223
Again~ the parallel• with Chri•tology are remarkable.
224
Wolf•on, in •My•ticiem and the Poetic-Liturgical eompoeition• from recognize• that while ••cent to heaven i• often characterized by a •tanding po•tur•~ con•ummation of the my•tical aim i• repr•••nted by anthron-nt.
Qqmran~·
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
195
elements, 225 speaks of Adam's diminishment, subsequent to his transgression, as a loss of divine glory, a fate shared by all his sinful progeny: Then know, Baruch, just as Adam through this tree was condemned and was stripped of the glory of God, thus men who now insatiably drink the wine deriving from it transgress worse than Adam, and become distant from the glory of God, and will secure for themselves eternal fire. (3Baruch 6:16) To the extent that the descendants of Adam share in their progenitor's transgression,
they perpetuate his separation
from the highest angelic nature and status.
Still, while a
divide between mankind and the angelic world is acknowledged as the usual lot of postlapsarian humankind, that divide is not
at
all
according
to
originally such
inherent,
narratives
of
nor the
is
it
first
inevitable, human
being.
Visions and assertions such as we have seen suggest that the divide between humankind and the angels, consequent to Adam's sin, was not thought of as insurmountable.
On the contrary,
Adam's original glory seems to have been a focus of yearning, and of striving as well. The closing--or, at least, bridging--of the gulf between the human and angelic worlds is a predominating theme in the pseudepiqraphic
literature
that
ascribes
itself
principal figures of Israel's biblical lineage.
225
to
the
As Fletcher-
H.B. Gaylord Jr. write• in Ml' vol.l, p. 656, in connection with 3Baruch, •The •cholarly dichotomy o£ Jewi•h and Cbri8tian writing• in the fir•t two centuria•, like the earlier one between dia•pora and Pale•tinian Jewry, may be a ~•leading attempt to di•tingui•h what i• clo•ely interrelated.•
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
191
Louis has noted, such pseudepiqrapha are marked by "a tendency to idealize Israel's heroes in an anqelomorphic direction." This
idealization,
Fletcher-Louis
observes,
"leads
succession of anqelomorphic f iqures from Adam, likes of Noah,
Enoch,
Jacob,
Joseph,
to
a
throuqh the
and Moses."
Thus,
anqelic protoloqy and eschatoloqy, as Fletcher-Louis puts it, are "bound by a succession of heroes who maintain, or reqain the oriqinal,
i.e.
Adamic,
anqelomorphic status of human
identity. " 226
!'be
ADge~ic
Line of
Israe~
Surveyinq the pseudepiqraphic literature of the era in which rabbinic Judaism took shape, one can define Israel and its ancestors precisely as that elite lineaqe vouchsafed the ability to recapture and realize the oriqinal possibility of anqelic humanity.
A divine intention that the Israelite line
preserve somethinq of Adam's oriqinal anqelic identity is implicit in the account, in the Life of Adam and Eve (Vita 2528), in which, after his sin but before beinq expelled from Eden,
Adam is taken up to heaven in a fiery chariot, amid
"many thousands of anqels" to God's immediate presence where he pleads, "Let not the name that reminds of your majesty227 226
l'letcber-Loui•, 1997, pp. 138-139.
2 ~ A• M.D. John•on note• (in o.rP, vol. 2, p. 268, perbap• tbi• allude• to Adam' • n . . . being an acro•tic for the four di.rection• of the world; but certainly it al•o •ugge•t• that Adam--eponyaou• for humanity--i• the •n. . . that realind• of [God'•) maje•ty. The notion ca11• to ~nd the title given by Abraham Jo•hua
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
197
be blotted out•
(27:1-3).
In response,
Adam is assured,
"There shall not be abolished from your seed forever those who would serve me"
(27:3).
That promise alone would not be
sufficient to indicate a continuation of angelic humanity. However, when Cain is born in the Life of Adam and Eve (Vita 21:3) the text describes him as "lustrous," (1ucidus), and in the
corresponding Greek text
Diapbotos by name.
(ApMos
1: 3)
Cain
is
called
Like his father, then, Cain represents the
heavenly potential of humanity--although,
of course,
Cain,
like Adam, also represents paradigmatically the failure of mankind to realize its illustrious potential. seth Not only Cain, among Adam's children, but Seth as well is conceived as having been wondrous and angel-like, if we may admit as evidence an "Apocalypse of Sethel," preserved in something of a catalogue of patriarchal apocalyptic testaments in the Cologne Hani Codex.
According to Charlesworth, the
account •apparently predates Mani (215-275
c. E.) and in no way
seems to reflect peculiarly Manichean ideas;
it seems very
Jewish and contains no discernable Christian elements ... aas The Sethel apocalypse (CHC 50.1-51.1)
immediately follows a
brief passage concerning Adam's nature (and alleged literary
Beachel to a amal.l volume of hia early poetry: Der She.-Hamefora•h: llen•ch, worth mentioning becauae Beechel'a poem• are certainly informed by claaeical rabbinic aa well aa Baaidic aourcea. zza Charlesworth, 1980:139, and cf. Bimmelfarb l99lb:81-2, and PletcherLouia, p. 145, note 209.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
118
oevre), which reads: "And [Adam] became mightier than all the powers and the angels of creation. these are in his writings."
Now many other things like
The text continues:
Likewise, also Sethel, his son, has written thus in his Apocalypse, saying: "I opened my eyes and beheld before my face an angel whose splendor I was not able to speak of from my experience. For it was nothing other than flashes of lightning ••• ••• when I listened to these things, my heart rejoiced and my mind was changed, and I became like one of the greatest angels. When that angel placed his hand upon my right hand, he wrenched me from the world from which I was born and carried me off to another place exceedingly great. Now I heard behind me a very great uproar from those angels whom I left behind in this world ••• 229 This
is
an
account
of
angelic
transformation,
and
the
wrenching of Sethel from the earth, and his dumbfoundedness at the appearance of the angel who removes him, might be read to preclude
sethel's
identity
in
this
having world.
possessed On
the
any other
sort hand,
of
angelic
Sethel
is
introduced here as the son of the angelomorphic Adam; the inclusion of "el" in the variation of Seth's name suggests angelic identity; and the world from which Sethel is torn is apparently inhabited by angels as well, whom he says he leaves behind.
The passage suggests a transformative reaction of
recognition,
an account of Sethel's encountering and then
2 9
a Thia ia the reading of the text aa recon•tructed and tranalated from the Gr-k by Ron cameron and Arthur J. Dewey, The Co~ogne lfani Codez ( P. Co~ on. inv. nr. 4710) •concerning the Origin of hi• Body•, SBL, (Montana: 1979).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
111
realizinq an anqelic identity that is already his own, but not fully experienced or actualized previously. 230 BDocb (at. a.I.)
The notion of an inborn but unrealized anqelic identity of the highest sort in the Israelite line helps to account for the peculiar narrative twist of the pseudepiqraphic Enochliterature
(both
in
lEnoch
and
2Enoch231 )
in
which
the
patriarch is either sent into heaven (lEnoch) or summoned to heaven (2Enoch) to intercede on behalf of the fallen anqels. It is otherwise entirely perplexinq that angels would call for a human advocate; but if Enoch, even before he realizes his angelic identity in heaven, is already, even if unknowingly, of
higher
angelic
understandable.
rank,
then
the
narrative
becomes
more
Such an inborn but unrealized rank, in turn,
makes sense if Enoch, from the outset, preserves within him
230 With regard to Seth and his nature, we should also take note of the narrative in the Li.Le oL Ad. . and Bve in which Eve and Seth are sent on an errand to the edge of Eden by the dying Adam--whose death-throes, and his outrage at them, seem narrated precisely to emphasize his fall from an original angelic identity (Viea 35:1-36:2, ApMos 9). In both Viea and ApMoa texts, Seth ia attacked by a wild beast for no apparent reason, other than to occasion Eve•a outraged rebuke to the animal, •sow ia it that you were not afraid to throw yourself at the image of God?" (Viea 37:3), and (in ApMoa 10:3), •&ow did you not remember your subjection, for you were once subjected to the image of God?" These words suggest that in losing fully realized angelic identity mankind also lost something of ita promised dominion even over the lesser creatures of the world. In any event, aa Fletcher-Louis (1997, p.l45) observes, "it ia not until Bnoch•--to use the patriarchal chain aa a chronoloqy--"that [angelic identity] is clearly recovered.• 231
The so-called 3Bnoch ia actually a Nerk&b&b-taxt whose aynopaia of the themes of that genre augqeata a late, and quite probably post-talmudic, comp.i.lation and composition. Still, the continuity of some characteristic motifs in 3Enoch with the earlier Bnoch-paeudepigrapha evidence not only a sustained interest within Judaism in the trad.i.tion of an angelified Enoch, but also the persistence of particular traditions of Enoch's elevation.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
200
somethinq of the oriqinal stature of Adam as God's anqelic viceroy. The same notion of a man of elect lineaqe discoverinq a qreat unrealized or unactualized anqelic potential in himself seems also to be at the root of that seqment of 1Enoch which has often been interpreted as narratinq Enoch's transformation into the eschatoloqical Son of Man who is ultimately to establish God's dominion on the earth. 232
Concerninq this
narrative seqment, Alan Seqal has written, This is an extraordinarily important event, as it underlines the importance of mystic transformation between the adept and the anqelic vice-reqent of God, qivinq a plausible explanation of how the sectarians that produced the visions in Daniel expected to be transformed into stars. Indeed, it is possible to say that 1 Enoch 71 qi ves us the experience of an adept underqoinq the astral transformation prophesied in Dan. 12:3 albeit in the name of a pseudepiqraphal hero. 233 This
pericope
has
also
been
perplexinq
to
scholarship,
particularly because the wondrous and redemptive Son of Man described in the forerunninq portion of 1Enoch, known as the
Similitudes, appears first of all as a fiqure external to Enoch himself, whose life and times Enoch is enabled to see. Prior to Enoch's "transformation" or "transmoqrification" 234 -
232
B.g. Morna D. Booker, The Son oL llan in llarlc, SPCK, London, 1967, pp. 41-42; P. M. Ca•ey, Son oL llan: The Ineerpreeaeion and InLluence oL Daniel 7, SPCK, London, 1979, p. 102ff; Segal, 1995, p. 103. 233
Segal, 1995, pp. 103-104.
n 4 Segal•• and Fletcher-Loui•• cho•en term• for the event, re•pectively.
•t fell on my face, my whole body mollified and my •pirit tran•fo~,· i• the account (in 71: 11) of what happened to Bnoch when he beheld the cry•talline inner •anctWD of the heaven of heaven•. It •hould be noted that thi• i• not nearly •o
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
201
-upon which the patriarch is greeted by "the Antecedent of Time, with Michael, Gabriel, Raphael, Phanuel, and a hundred thousand and ten million times a hundred thousand anqels that are countless," and is addressed by an anqel as "son of man"-prior, then, to this ultimate elevation, Enoch is presented with a vision of a holder of the same title, "son of man," who has, as Fletcher-Louis notes, "both anqelomorphic and supraanqelic features": 'His countenance was full of grace like that of one amonq the holy anqels' (46:1). He sits on a throne of qlory, at times apparently his own (51:3), at others sharinq that of God (62: 2, 5; 69:29 cf. 61: 8). He is the primary aqent of revelation (46:3; 48:7; 53:6), and judqement (49:4; 62:11; cf. 45:3; 61:8; 69:27-8; 63:11; 38:2f; 53:6; and 92:1), and is even the recipient of human worship (48:5; 62:9; cf. 46:5, 52:4; and 92:1). In 61:10 he is counted amonqst God's anqelic powers. At several points he has a hidden and even pre-mundane existence (48:3, 6; 62:7). In 69:13-29 the Son of Man is associated with the Name of God, or the oath that has cosmocratic power ••• zls It should be emphasized that this same character is also presented to Enoch as "the one born of human beinqs, " and that the especial province of this son of man is to be humankind
graphic and dramatic a traneformation ae we find in 2Enoch 22:4-10, where the patriarch marvel• at the celeetial being that he become•: '"And I gazed at myeelf, and I had become like one of the gloriou• onee, and there wae no obeervable difference.• (22:10). Nonetheleee, a• Alan Segal hae done, it ie quite poeeible to map Enoch' • experience onto the later paradigm of lrerlcabah-myeticiem and literature while noting ite much earlier roote. Seqal writee: '"In chapter 39, Enoch aacenda to heaven while reciting hymn• and bleeeing• •• do the Merkabah myetic•J there he ia overcome with the eplendor and glory of the throne roome. Hie face chang•• on account of the vieion, which evidently reflect• the experience of the prophecy that '"thoee who are wee shall ehine as the etare• (Dan. 12:3), becauee 1 Enoch 62:15 etatea that the elect ehall shine ae atara and be clothed with garment• of glory• (1995, p.l03). zls Fletcher-Louie, 1997, p.l50.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
202
and
its world.
rectification rewarding
He of
"the
Spirits. " 236
is to
the
be the agent of the ultimate
earthly
faithful
ones
realm, who
deposing
cling
to
kings
the
Lord
and of
Thus it would not be entirely surprising were
a living human being, Enoch, elevated to this singular station or assigned it for a return to earth in the time to come.
In
other words, it is plausible, as James Vanderkam writes, that in having the Son of Man presented to Enoch initially as a separate
fiqure,
"the
author
is
indulging
in
a
sort
wordplay which prepares the reader, however obliquely, Enoch's
identification as
Son of
Man
in
71: 14, "
of for
or,
as
Fletcher-Louis puts it, "Throughout the parables (Enoch is] encountering his heavenly self/counterpart--the Son of Man--as one might encounter one's alter ego in the visionary or dream state. " 237 on the other hand, we should recall that "son of man," is a frequent sobriquet for human visitors to the heavenly realm in the biblical narratives of prophetic commissioning after which
Enoch's
Zech.J).
self-realization
is
modelled
(especially
If we concentrate upon the notion of an angelic
lineage of Israel, and are not pressed toward the concept of a unique, divine or angelomorphic christ, then it is more than enough for our purposes to say that Enoch is made to realize
236
237
B.g. 46:4-8.
Pletcher-t.oui•,
1997,
p.lSl,
where Fletcher-Loui• al•o provide•
•ummary of other •cholarly per8pective•.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
a
203
himself as partaking in the very same exalted human-anqelic nature as will the particular son of man who is to reiqn in the eschaton--and it may well be unwarranted to make messianic claims for Enoch's "transmogrification" in this text.
Enoch
need not become the messianic Son of Man himself in order to realize himself as beinq every bit as wondrous an angelic "son of
Adam,"
enjoying
the
heavenly
rank
and
prerogatives
oriqinally intended for the first human being. We have already seen that superior angelic rank--worthy of adoration by other angels--was the originally intended lot of Adam. such rank seems to be regained by Enoch, but he does not see himself alone in that destiny, at least not in a brief segment of
lEnoch that occurs riqht between the qlorious
descriptions of the eschatological son of man and the account of Enoch's own admittance to the heaven of heavens: And it happened after this that [Enoch's] livinq name was raised up to that son of man and to the Lord238 from among those who dwell upon the earth; it was lifted up in a wind chariot and it disappeared from among them. "From that day on, I was not counted among them. But he placed me between two winds, between the northeast and the west, where the angels took a cord to measure for me the place for the elect and riqhteous ones. And there I saw the first fathers and the riqhteous ones of old, dwelling in that place. (lEnoch 70:1-4) Not only Enoch, but his forefathers as well, have a riqhtful place with the Lord and with the final, triumphal son of man. 238
Note that if thi.• pa••age mean• that Enoch become• •that •on of man, • then it al•o mean• that he become• •the Lord,• an admi••ible reading from a Chri•tian point of view, to be •ure, but unlikely a• the actual •en•• of thi• pre-Chri•tian text.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
204
The measuring out of that "place for the elect and righteous ones" with a heavenly measuring cord suggests that it is also the rightful place of an extensive lineage to follow Enoch, so long as the members of that lineage remain "the faithful ones who cling to the Lord of Spirits.• This idea of an entire Israelite line with a rightful place in the highest rank of celestial& is probably the basis of
Enoch's
observation
vision by
in
Enoch
43:1-4. which
seems
The
vision
ends
to
allude
to
in his
an own
extraordinary status as one allowed to realize that rank fully during his earthly life.
Yet, extraordinarily realized as
Enoch's angelic nature is among living human beings,
the
vision and the observation taken together indicate that such intrinsic nature itself is not extraordinary in the Israelite line.
The vision reads: And I saw other lightnings and the stars of heaven. And I saw how He called them each by their respective names, 239 and they obeyed Him. And I saw the impartial scales for the purpose of balancing their lights at their widest areas. And their natures are as follows: Their revolutions produce lightning, and in their number they are as many as the angels. They keep their faithfulness each one according to his name. And I asked the angel who was going with me and who had shown me the secret things, What are these? And he said to me, The Lord of Spirits has shown you the prototype of each one of them: These are the names of the holy ones who dwell upon the earth and believe in the name of the Lord of Spirits for ever and ever. (lEnoch 43:1-4)
239
Probably an interpretation of the con•olation in I•a.40:26.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
205
Then,
concluding this pericope of celestial visions,
Enoch observes, "And I saw another thing regarding lightning: how some stars arise and become lightning and cannot dwell among the rest.• That final observation seems to describe Enoch's own situation precisely.
He is not intrinsically different from
the rest of the faithful line, who are also correlated to spinning, flashing celestial alter-egos, but he has been made to realize his nature as such and thus does not remain upon the earth among the rest but finds his way to a rightful place in the heavens. The stellar imagery of the vision in 43:1-4 is not an allegory but an apocalyptic, angelic ontology of elect human nature.
The Animal Apocalypse of lEnoch 83-90, on the other
hand, is entirely metaphorical, but it too points toward the concept of an elect line within Israel that is angelic in nature.
Among all the animals in whose guise the cast of the
biblical story appears in this apocalypse, there is a lineage of
•snow-white•
animals
(bovids
first,
then
sheep)
that
centers upon figures whom we find angelified elsewhere, and at times this snow-white line seems to stand for all the faithful of Israel.
It is especially notable that this animal-vision
ends with the appearance of a messianic figure--presumably the Son of Man of the
Simi~itudes--whose
arrival is described as
follows: Then I saw that a snow-white cow was born, with huge horns; all the beasts of the field and the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
2oa birds of the sky feared him and made petition to him all the time. I went on seeing until all their kindred were transformed and became snow-white cows; and the first among thea became a thing, and that thing became a great beast with huge black horns on its head. The Lord of the sheep rejoiced over it and over all the cows. I myself became satiated in their midst. Then I woke up and saw everything. (1Enoch 90:37-39) It is quite clear that Enoch himself does not become the messianic fiqure in this vision.
Rather, he delights in the
arrival of this fiqure among all the others of his line who are transformed into "snow-white cows." least all its faithful,
All of Israel--at
and perhaps all in the world who
become faithful to the messianic ruler--are transformed into snow-white cows, which is also the description of the first Adam, and of Noah, and of Abraham, who in turn bears a line of snow-white sheep, obviously intended (in 89:10-13) as Isaac, Jacob, Jacob's twelve sons, and their progeny. As to Enoch's own elevation, the animal-apocalypse does include an account of the event, but once more there is no indication that Enoch is made identical with the messianic fiqure of the story's end.
Enoch account of his being taken
up into heaven is embedded at the appropriate genealogical position in the animal-apocalypse, following a vision of all the cattle corrupted in the aftermath of a star's falling from heaven, upon which a band of big, dark cows appear who mount "the heifers" and give rise to a race of elephants, camels,
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
207
and donkeys 240 --quite obviously an account of the infusion of evil into mankind by the fallen anqels.
Enoch then qoes on to
say: Aqain X saw them (i.e the cattle corrupted by the fallen star and the dark cows] commencinq to qore and devour one another; so the earth beqan to cry aloud. And X lifted my eyes unto heaven and saw a vision: And behold, there came forth from heaven one in the form of a snow-white person--one came out of that place and three others with him. Those ones which had come out last seized me by my hand and took me from the qenerations of the earth, lifted me up into a hiqh place, and showed me a hiqh tower above the earth, and all the hills were firm. one of them said to me, "Stay here until you see everythinq that will happen to these elephants, camels, and donkeys, as well as to the stars and to the bovids--all of them. (lEnoch 87:1-4) Enoch becomes a heavenly spectator to the punishment of the fallen anqels, to the flood, and to the entire story of Israel up to the arrival of the messianic, qreat-horned, white bovid. Notably,
the flood does not eliminate corruption from the
earth, since Noah and his three cow-sons,
after the flood,
beqet "snakes, hyenas, wild boars, foxes, squirrels, swine, hawks, eaqles, kites, striped crows, and ravens," amonq whom is also born a solitary snow-white cow--i.e Abraham.
Roah Special mention should be made of the appearance of Noah, and also of Moses, in the animal-apocalypse.
Althouqh born "a
bovid," Noah becomes "a person" in order to build his "boat" when one of the snow-white people who emerqe from heaven in 240
Th••• are all non-•acrificial and illec:lible animal•, it •hould be noted.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
208
the account of Enoch's elevation above (apparently the first one, who does not participate in Enoch's journey) proceeds to Noah to him and teaches him "a secret" argue
that
Noah,
transformation
and
into a
Moses--who
(89:1).
undergoes
one might a
similar
human being at the raising of the
tabernacle--present the only clear angelifications of the animal-apocalypse, since they takes on the human form of the four figures who emerge from heaven.
On the other hand, the
Israelite lineage of snow-white cows and sheep (culminating in a great messianic bovine figure) is ontologically set apart by the animal apocalypse from the corrupting dark bovids and their
progeny
of
wild
beasts. 241
That
is
to
say,
the
Israelite line is ontoloqically different from the rest of humanity. Noah
is
also
remarkably
distinguished
characteristics toward the end of 1Enoch.
with
angelic
As is arguably the
case in the animal apocalypse, the account of Noah in chapter 106 presents at least as outstanding and dramatic narrative of angelomorphism as does the surrounding story of Enoch himself. Indeed, correlating this account with Noah's transformation from bovid to human in the animal-apocalypse, we can say that, where 1Enoch alone is concerned, Noah,
even more than his
illustrious grandfather, represents the possibility of a human
241 We •hould al•o note the appearance of • •hepherd•, • later in the animalapocalyp•e (89:59), correlating, apparently, to the king• and to the Ra•monean leader•. It i• not clear that the imagery of the ani.mal-apocalyp•e i• •trictly con•i•tent throughout.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
209
beinq existinq as a wondrous anqel durinq his time on the earth.
This story of Noah itself contains an affirmation that
Enoch's place is "aaonq the anqels," even at a Enoch's sons can visit their father--that
is,
time when durinq his
earthly life; but is also seems possible that Enoch is already in the heavenly world when Methuselah searches for him at the "ends of the earth" in order to confer with him about Noah (106:8).
The remarkable narrative of Noah's birth in 1Enoch
106 reads, in its entirety, as follows: And after some days my son, Methuselah, took a wife for his son, Lamech, and she became preqnant by him and bore him a son. And his body was white as snow and red as a rose; the hair of his head as white as wool, and his coiffure242 beautiful; and as for his eyes, when he opened them the whole house qlowed like the sun--the whole house qlowed even more exceedinqly. And when he arose from the hands of the midwife, he opened his mouth and spoke to the Lord with riqhteousness. And his father, Lamech, was afraid of him and fled and went to Methuselah his father, and he said to him, "I have beqotten a stranqe son: He is not like an ordinary human beinq, but he looks like the children of the anqels of heaven to me, his form is different, and he is not like us. His eyes are like the rays of the sun, and his face qlorious. It does not seem to me that he is of me, but of anqels, and I fear that a wondrous phenomenon may take place upon the earth in his days. So I am beseechinq you now, beqqinq you in order that you may qo to his qrandfather Enoch, our father, and learn from him the truth, for his dwellinq place is amonq the anqels. When Methuselah heard the words of his son, he came to me, at the ends of the earth, for he had heard that I was there. He cried aloud and I heard his voice and came to him and I said to him, "Behold, my son, I aa here, why have you come 242
The Bthiopic word i• dend-a, which corre•pond• to what i• now colloqgially called an •afro• in Bngli•h, according to E. X•aac, OTP, vol. 1, p. 86, note g.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
210
here?" Then he answered and said, "On account of a qreat distress have I come to you, on account of a qrievous vision have I come near here. Now, my father, hear me: For unto my son Lamech a son has been born, one whose image and form are not like unto the characteristics of human beings; and his color is whiter than snow and redder than a rose, the hair of his head is whiter than white wool, and his eyes glare like the rays of the sun; and when he opened his eyes the whole house lighted up. And when he rose up in the hands of the midwife, he opened his mouth and blessed the Lord of heaven. Then his father Lamech became afraid and fled, and did not believe that the child was of him, but of the image of the angels of heaven. And behold, I have come to you in order that you make me know the real truth." Then I, Enoch, answered, saying to him, "The Lord will surely make new things upon the earth; and I have already seen this matter in a vision and made it known to you. For in the generation of Jared, my father, they transgressed the word of the Lord, that is, the Law of heaven. And behold, they commit sin and transgress the commandment, they have united themselves with women and commit sin together with them; and they have married wives from among them, and have begotten children by them. There shall be a qreat destruction upon the earth ••• (1Enoch 106:1-15) Enoch goes on to foretell the deluge, instructing Methuselah,
and he concludes by
"Go and make it known to your son
Lamech that this son who has been born is his son in truth-and not in falsehood."
Lamech's distress and fear at Noah's
angelic alterity should probably be understood in terms of the account of the fallen
angels who took earthly wives and
brought iniquity into the world, Enoch.
which is retold here by
Lamech seems to fear that Noah may be the product of
such a union and not his own son. Correspondingly,
one might think to arque that this
entire story does more to distinguish between the angels and
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
211
humankind,
includinq the proqenitors of Israel in qeneral,
since Noah's appearance is so unexpected and shockinq to his own father.
Yet Lamech is assured that Noah is his own son,
which should almost certainly be conceived as somethinq of a revelation concerning Lamech' s own nature and legacy. clarification reqardinq Noah serves
to
say that
Enoch's Noah
is
angelic by dint of descent, even through his unknowing and astonished responsible.
parent;
no
other-worldly
angelic
parent
is
What is more, Noah's arrival on the scene is set
by Enoch in opposition to the grievous consequence among humankind of the union of the fallen angles with earthly women.
Once more the sugqestion is of an earthly conflict
between closely matched angelic forces:
the progeny of the
fallen angels against the lineage of the diminished Adam. Noah is conspicuously and manifestly angelic, which is astonishing to his own father, but Noah is so not because he is from outside Lamech's line, as Lamech may fear, but because he is Lamech's son.
The implication of the narrative seems to
be that in order to combat the influence of the corrupting fallen angels--that is, the evil of the world round about-something of the intended angelic nature of the first Adam had to be recovered and restored to evidence within the elect human line.
Noah is extraordinary, true; but again what is
extraordinary in the anqel-man is the realization of his innate angelic potential and not his
possession of that
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
212
potential to beqin with, which is revealed to be, "in truth," his patrimony. Abrabaa
We have already seen at the outset of this chapter how Abraham in Jubilees is charqed to circumcise his offsprinq in order to make them conform to the nature of
the anqels.
Fletcher-Louis writes that "after Enoch (and] Noah the next OT character to attract anqelomorphic attention is Jacob/Israel; but Abraham as well, as Israel's chief patriarch, can be seen in several texts to retain the inheritance of anqelic identity that is destined to distinquish his offsprinq. Amonq the Pseudepiqrapha is an Apocalypse of Abraham, which R. Rubinkiewicz dates to between 70 AD and the middle of the 2nd century CE, and whose oriqinal lanquaqe he posits to have been Hebrew, makinq the land of Israel the work's most likely place of composition. 243
In this work, Abraham is
visited by the Anqel of God--here named Iaoel--who calms Abraham's fright, sayinq, "Stand up, Abraham, friend of God who has loved you, let not human tremblinq enfold you" (10: 5). Abraham is awed, to be sure, at the wondrous appearance of Iaoel,
but soon after he testifies that durinq the ensuinq
forty day fast
in preparation for his sacrifice of split
animals, "my food was to see the anqel who was with me, and his discourse with me was my drink"
243
(12:1-2).
O'rP, vol. 1, p. 683.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
If not an
213
outriqht anqelification of Abraham, this motif is at least an indication of a close affinity with the Anqel of God, who protects and consecrates him, and who announces to him that "a venerable honor has been prepared for you by the Eternal one" (10:15).
Even more suqqestively, Xaoel rebukes the menacinq
Azazel by invokinq Abraham's riqhtful celestial place: "Shame on you, Azazel, for Abraham's portion is in heaven, and yours is on earth, enamored
of
for you have selected here and have become the dwellinq place
of
your
blemish"
(13 :8).
Moreover, Xaoel informs Azazel that Abraham cannot be harmed because "the qarment which in heaven was formerly yours has been set aside for him, and the corruption which was on him has qone over to you" suqqests
that
the
( 13: 14) •
opposition
This remarkable reversal
between Abraham's
line
and
Azazel's itself supplies the remedy to Adam's demotion from outriqht anqelic status. Azazel
is
drawn
ever
Xn jealousy toward Abraham's line,
downward
into
the
realm
of
Adam's
banishment, whilst Abraham, throuqh his reachinq toward God and obedience to God's commands, takes his foe's forfeited place--or, eventually, will do so--to recover a station amonq the celestials. Xaaac (aDd Abrabaa aqaiD)
We should take note of several passaqes in the Testament
of Isaac, a text now extant in Coptic, Ethiopic, and Arabic manuscripts and including clearly Coptic Christian elements, but thouqht to be based upon a Jewish work of the second
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
214
century
c. E. 244
Although the angelification of Isaac in this
text is subsequent to the patriarch's death, we should note the importance of Abrahamic descent to the convergence of the patriarch's line and the angels. In the first place, when Isaac first sees the angel who will take him up to heaven, he mistakes and says, "I am truly amazed concerning you; are you not Abraham, my father?" to which the angel replies, "I am not your father Abraham, but I am the one who ministers to your father Abraham." (2:10-11) Isaac's
question
establishes
some
phenomenal
continuity
between this angel and Abraham as perceived by his son--so, presumably, as Abraham was during his former, earthly life. The response given to Isaac establishes the actual superiority of Abraham, at least after his death, to the angel. Upon being led up to heaven, Isaac does encounter his father, who receives him "with all the goodly ones," (6:1-4) and with whom he recites the threefold "Holy," of Isaiah 6, but with the variation: "Heaven and earth are full of your sanctified glory!"
(6:5).
To this service of Abraham and
Isaac, God responds, Excellent is your coming, 0 Abraham, faithful one; excellent is your lineage, and excellent is the presence here of this blessed lineage. (Testament of Isaac 6:7) The text goes on to describe Isaac as being "like the silver which is burned, smelted, purified, and refined in the fire,"
244
Cf.
w.
P. Stine•pring,
O~P,
vol. 1, p. 904.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
215
and continues, "likewise everyone who shall come forth from Isaac, the father of fathers. " ( 8: 3) probably a
The ref ininq of rsaac is
reference to his bindinq, 245 and the next verse
elaborates: "On the day when Abraham, the father of fathers, offered
him
as
a
sacrifice
to
God,
the
perfume
of
the
sacrifice ascended to the veil of the curtain of the one who controls everythinq" (8:4).
Whether or not this passaqe can
be read as an elevation of rsaac, the statement that Abraham's offerinq filled the heavens and the earth "with the sweet fraqrance of his way of life before the Lord" (8:2), indicates a cosmically important return to the heedinq God's commands, upon which the anqelification of Abraham's line depends.
Jaaob-Iarael Jacob,
eponymous patriarch of Israel,
is certainly an
anqelified character in a number of pseudepiqraphic sources. Perhaps the most dramatic and explicit of these is the rather mysterious Prayer of Joseph, described in Oriqen's Commentary
on John as "an apocrypha presently in use amonq the Hebrews," and so authored well prior to 231 C.E. 246
The so-called
"Fraqment A" of this text--quoted in Oriqen's commentary in
245 on the other hand, we have •-n the motif of refining with connotation• of anqelification in the Qumran texta, notably lQ&•, XIII 16, where Iaaac and hia bindi.nq are not the 11\lbject. 246 So J. z. Sali.th. OTP, vol. 2, p. 700, who auqqeata that '"the varioua paral.lela to both helleniatic and Aramaic material• would •uqqeat a first-century date.•
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
211
support of an arqument that John was an anqel who came to earth to attest to Jesus' naturea47 --opens as follows: I, Jacob, who am speakinq to you, am also Israel, an anqel and a rulinq spirit. Abraham and Isaac were created before any work. But I Jacob, whom men call Jacob but whose name is Israel, am he whom God called Israel, which means, a man seeinq Goda48 , because I am the firstborn of every livinq thinq to whom God qives life. (Prayer of Joseph fraqment A v.l)
z.
J.
Smith suqqests that the reference to Israel as the
firstborn of all livinq thinqs is probably "a literalistic understandinq of Ex. 4:22: 'Israel is my first-born son, '"a49 and
the
passaqe certainly serves
to
elevate Israel,
nation, to a status of primacy in creation. to
recount
Jacob's
journey
from
Padan
the
The text qoes on Aram
(or
"Syrian
Mesopotamia" in the LXX-like parlance of the text), durinq which he encounters "Oriel, the anqel of God" who explains that "I, Jacob, had descended to earth and I had tabernacled amonq men and that I had been called by the name of Jacob" (v.4).
It is Oriel, in this retellinq, who enqaqes Jacob in
the famous wrestlinq match,
out of a
jealousy toward the
patriarch that reminds of the jealousy of Azazel (or Belial, etc.)
toward
a 47 Origen,
a•a
Adam
(v.5) .aso
Althouqh
co. . .neary on John 2:31; J.Z. Smith,
~M ~M, W,M
in
OTP,
the
canonical,
vol. 2, p. 699.
i• the etymology, cf. F1etcher-Loui•, 1997, pp. 160-161.
a 49 OTP, vo1.2, p. 718, note q.
aso The jea1ou•y of •the angel of God• toward Jacob i•, of cour•a, it•e1f an indication of the patriarch~• .uperiority in •ome regard.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
217
biblical version of the story (and in other versions 251 ) the patriarch acquires the name Israel from his angelic sparringpartner at the end of the bout, in this text Jacob himself proclaims his own name to be Israel--a climatic move in a struggle having all to do with names, and the knowledge of names, which appear to be intimately tied to angelic status: [Oriel] envied me and fought with me and wrestled with me, saying that his name and the name that is before every angel was to be above mine. I told him his name and the what rank he held among the sons of God: "Are you not Oriel, the eighth after me, and I, Israel, the archangel of the power of the Lord and the chief captain among the sons of God? Am I not Israel, the first minister before the face of God?" And I called upon my God by the inextinguishable name. (Prayer of Joseph, fragment A vv.4-9) First
of
all,
establishing
of
it
is
his
remarkable
own
that
superiority
Jacob's
over
Oriel
confident in
this
struggle seems to depend upon his first having been reminded of his own name and nature by Oriel in verse 4.
Origin
recognizes this narrative turn when he writes that Jacob's angelic status is "something which he recognizes while doing service in the body, Oriel. " 252
being reminded of it by the angel,
This perplexity, which Smith deems "one of the
more puzzling motifs"
in the text, 253 is amplified by the
fact that, once brought to consciousness of his true identity, 251 !'or the early Palestinian 'rargwDic retellinq, Gen.32:25-31. 252
Thia account ia termed •rragment 2, p. 714.) 253
c•
aee Codex Neofiti,
of the Prayer of Joseph (OTP, vol.
Smith, OTP, vol. 2, P• 709.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
218
Jacob-Israel immediately moves to put the informinq anqel, who himself claims a hiqher status, in a subordinate place, naminq Oriel's exact rank and station while assertinq the superiority of his own.
While the extremely concise presentation in this
particular tellinq may distill the narrative motif almost to the point of beinq unintelliqible, what we find here is a paradiqmatic presentation of a certain conception of anqelic Israel that proves common to much pseudepiqraphic literature: Israel's
true,
anqelic
nature
is
typically
latent
and
unactualized, hidden in earthly life (thus an anqel, when it first
appears
wonder).
to an
Israelite,
is
an object of
awe
and
Yet when impelled or quided by an encounter with
some fiqure of the upper realm, Israel (that is, any chosen Israelite)
may realize in himself a
supreme reflection of
divinity, which all anqels must revere.
Fascination at the
wondrous alterity of anqels potentiates recoqnition of supreme anqelic identity or alter-eqo--a recoqnition which, in terms of self-conception, must be called transformative. the
literary
device--and
the
reliqious
This is
phenomenon--that
accounts for much of the paradox apparent in the concept of anqelic
Israel.
interchanqes
with
Awareness
of
coqnizance
likeness, of representinq God.
corporeality and mortality of
existinq
in
God's
own
This comprehension of contrary
natures within the livinq Israelite is an essential theme in much pre-rabbinic Jewish writinq. Experientially, it seems to
be the qoal of such literature as the Prayer of Joseph.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
211
The status regained by Israel in the Prayer of Joseph is primordial (vv.2-3), inherent (vv.l, 4, 8), and second only to God's own (v.S).
Jacob's claim to the title of "firstborn of
every living thing" also suggests that his status is at least a recapitulation of Adam's original, angelic nature.
As well,
if "firstborn" status attaches to the entire people of Israel-which is the sense of Ex.4:22--then Jacob's claim to angelic station may attach to the entire people as well.
Taken to the
maximum, the suggestion is: to the extent that any individual personifies Israel,
that person shares in the station of
"chief captain among the sons of God," "first minister before the face of God," and "archangel of the power of the Lord," as claimed by the eponymous ancestor.
This formulation may seem
extreme, but on the other hand it does much to explain the appeal of what we can term "agelifying literature. " 254 Such a realization of angelic status seems to be the object of the Greek Prayer of Jacob.
This text takes its name
from an instruction included at the prayer's end in the single surviving papyrus: "Say the prayer of Jacob seven times to the North and East" (line 20), but the petitions and invocations of the prayer itself are framed simply as the words of "one 254
Alan Segal baa written of Jewish mysticism in general, emerging from ita roots in Late Antiquity, •aaaically, the central iaaue of Jewish mysticism waa the relationship between human beings and an enormous angelic human figure manifesting God. The figure is generally called 'God's Glory' or hia 'Kabod.' The relationship was one of absorption• (1995, pp. 95-122; eap. p. 98). That ia to aay, the transformation or •abaorbtion• of a literary hero, ao to apeak, into a aupr- angelic figure should not be thought of aa merely legendary and descriptive of one exceptional peraon in particular. Rather, the motif serves aa a paradigm for religious effort and experience. Segal addresses the Prayer of Jo•eph in this same study (p. 102).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
220
who has the prayer from the race of Israel" (line 14).
The
opening line calls to God as "Father of all the Patriarchs," suggesting that the formula is not strictly a pseudepigraphon ascribed to Jacob.
The prayer ends in the following petition:
Fill my heart with good things, Lord; As an earthly angel, as having become immortal, as having received the gift which is from you, amen amen. Prayer of Jacob lines 18-19 Charlesworth
writes
that
"parallels
with
second-century
documents indicate that the prayer may be as early as the second century
(C. E. ] , " 255 and J. Z.
first-century authorship.
Smith has suggested a
On the basis of provenance and
comparison with other sources,
Charlesworth also indicates
Egypt as the locale of the prayer's composition, and, pointing to
several unusual usages and transliterations
of
Hebrew
names, reminiscent of various magical papyri, he concludes, "If
the
author was
a
Jewish magician,
understand the Jewish traditions. " 256
he did
not
fully
Yet if this text is a
non-Jewish attempt to access and employ secrets of "the race of Israel," then all the more it indicates that the claim of an affinity between Israel and the angels was a widespread and characteristic feature and attraction of Judaism in the early centuries C.E.
255
O'rP, vol.2, p. 715.
256
O'rP, vol.2, P• 716.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
221
Goodenough has called the Prayer of Jacob, a "prayer for transfiguration, " 257
and
Charlesworth
observes,
"It
is
possible that the author claims to be like Jacob--who is 'an angel of God' according to the Prayer of Joseph. " 258 more
toward
the
side
of
Charlesworth,
we
can
Tending say
that
"transformation" does not suffice to describe the object of the Prayer of Jacob, as much as does the notion of realizing an angelic identity and access that rightfully inheres in being
of
"the
race
of
Israel. " 259
Whether
of
Jewish
authorship or not, the Prayer of Jacob represents a belief that the line of Israel has knowledge of rites and invocations through which angelic identity within earthly life can be realized. 260 It may well be in this same vein that the fifth book of the Sibylline Oracles--originating from an at least somewhat syncretistic261 strand of EcJYptian Judaism, and the Jewish Revolt of 132
between 70
c. E.
c. E. 262 --refers to "the divine
257 E. R. Goodenough, Jevi•h Symbol• in ehe Greco-Roman Period, (New York, 1953) vol. 2, p. 204. 258
O'J!P, vol. 2, P• 716.
259
Charle•worth remark•, •Jacob i• portrayed neither a• one who ha• been glorified nor a• one who ha• lo•t hi• cele•tial form; rather he i• I•rael, an angel who i• primordial and who de•cended to the earth, receiving the name of Jacob.• (1908, p. 140) 26
° Cf.
Charle•worth, 1980, p. 141.
261
The author claim• to be the •familiar friend of I•i•.• (line 53).
262
Thi• i• the conclu•ion of J.J. COllin•, O'J!P, vol. 2, pp. 390-391.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
222
and beaven.ly race of the blessed Jews who live around the city of God at the center of the earth" (lines 240-251).
As well,
Fletcher-Louis, in connection with these oracular lines has noted: "That Philo (Virt177) thinks of those who fulfill the Mosaic
law
as
tbeoi
andres
may
presume
a
similar
tradition. ":z63 Joaaph (an4 Aaaaath, an4 Levi) Fletcher-Louis has written thoroughly and convincingly of the angelomorphic and quasi-divine attributes associated with Joseph and, upon her conversion, with his wife, Asenath, in the pseudepigraphic Joseph and Asenath.
c. Burchahrd has
written that this text is "first attested toward the end of the fourth century [C. E.]," but also observes that "A book glorifying the mother of the proselytes ought to have been written before Greek-speaking Judaism ceased to make
its
impact on the ancient world ••• " and suggests that "we are probably safe to say that the book was written between 100 B.C. and Hadrian's edict against circumcision, which has to do with the
second Jewish war of
132-135
[C.E.]." 264
With
indebtedness to Fletcher-Louis' more complete and abundantly annotated commentary on the text,:z65 this chapter must also include some essential observations and quotations.
:z63
Pletcher-Loui•, 1997, p. 171.
:z64
OXP, vol. 2, p. 187 •
:z65
Pp. 155-171.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
223
As Fletcher-Louis observes, Joseph makes a glorious, even apollonian entrance in his chariot, in 5:4, upon which Asenath laments: But I, foolish and daring, have despised him and spoken wicked words about him, and did not know that Joseph is a son of God. For who among men on earth will qenerate such beauty, and what womb of a woman will qive birth to such liqht? What a wretched and foolish girl I am, because I have spoken wicked words about him to my father. And now, where shall I go and hide from his face in order that Joseph the son of God not see me because I have spoken wicked things about him? And where shall I flee and hide, because every hidinq place he sees, because of the qreat light that is inside him? (Joseph and Asenath 6:3-6) Fletcher-Louis has suggested that the twelve precious stones and
associated
rays
that
adorn
Joseph's
crown
in
this
appearance indicate an affinity with the figure of the Hiqh Priest--and we have seen that the High Priest's crown and twelve-stone breastplate do contribute to what is described as an other-worldly appearance in the Letter of Aristeas. In 14:9, the angel who appears to facilitate Asenath's conversion is described as •a man in every respect similar to Joseph, except that his face was like liqhtninq, and his eyes like sunshine, and the hairs of his head like the flame of fire of a burning torch ••• and sparks shot forth from his hands and his feet.• apart
from
actual
angels,
marvelous appearance, Fletcher-Louis
This passaqe may seem to set Joseph
seems
but
in
view
of
Joseph's
own
and of Asenath's wonderment at him, justified
in
concluding
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
that
the
224
difference between Joseph and the angel is "a contrast of degree rather than kind."
His conclusion is supported also by
Asenath's perception of Jacob and by the appearance of Asenath herself Asenath's
to
her view
family, of
subsequent Jacob
to
includes
her the
conversion. following
characteristics: ••• and his eyes were flashing and darting flashes of lightning, and his sinews and his shoulders and his arms were as those of an angel,, and his thighs and his calves and his feet like those of a giant. And Jacob was a man who had wrestled with God. And Asenath saw him and was amazed and prostrated before him face down to the ground. (Joseph and Asenath 22:7-8) Asenath's family sees her in a similar way: And they saw Asenath like the appearance of light, and her beauty was like heavenly beauty. And they saw her sitting with Joseph and dressed in a wedding garment, and they were amazed at her beauty and rejoiced and gave glory to God who gives life to the dead. And after this they ate and drank266 and celebrated. (Joseph and Asenath 20:6-8) Asenath's perception of herself is also described in terms similar to the description of the Joseph-like angel of 14:9 as she dresses to join her beloved: And Asenath leaned over to wash her face and saw her face in the water. And it was like the sun and her eyes were like a rising morning star and her cheeks like the fields of the Most High ••• (Joseph and Asenath 18:8)
266
That A•enath'• fam.ily •ate and drank• .in her radiant pre•ence may even
be .intended to evoke the •cane of the ••venty elder• on S.ina.i, eat.ing and drinking .in v.i.w of God'• own pr•••nce and of the radiant foundation of God'•
throne, ••pec.ially •.inca the official wedd.ing-fea•t doe• not take place unt.il the end of chapter 21.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
225
With reqard to Asenath's conversion to Jewish-anqelic Burchard sums up the conception of Jewish identity
status,
and the affinity between Jews and anqels in Joseph and Asenatb as follows: So Jews live in close relationship with God, and with anqels, whose food they share; but they remain apart from non-Jews, with whom they may coexist but not minqle ••• Relationship with God implies that Jews enjoy all the privileqes that come with divine childhood, leadinq some sort of anqelic existence ••• These thinqs are embodied in an exemplary, if not exclusive, fashion by the Patriarchs qenerally, with particular emphasis, besides Asenath, on Joseph, and Levi. 267 In fact, Asenath' s
initiation
contribution Joseph,
Levi fiqures prominently in the process of
seems
on his own,
as be
a
Jewess,
essential
appears
and to
Levi's
her
particular
anqelification.
insufficient as
a
quide and
mediator in the followinq seqment of the narrative: And Levi was on Asenath's riqht side, and Joseph on her left. And Asenath qrasped Levi's hand. And Asenath loved Levi exceedinqly beyond all of Joseph's brethren, because he was one who attached himself to the Lord, and he was a prudent man and a prophet of the Most Hiqh and sharp-siqhted with his eyes, and he used to see letters written in heaven by the finqer of God and he knew the unspeakable mysteries of the Most Hiqh God and revealed them to Asenath in secret, because he himself, Levi, would love Asenath very much, and see her place of rest in the hiqhest, and her walls like adamantine eternal walls, and her foundations founded upon a rock of the seventh heaven. (Joseph and Asenatb 23:13)
Once
more,
wonderment
267
in Joseph at
anqelic
and
Asenatb,
alterity
can
we
see
serve
that as
O~P, vol. 2, p. 191.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
a
initial literary
22,
stepping
stone
to
angelic
identity--and
experiential stepping stone as well.
perhaps
an
This particular story is
remarkable in its assertion that the angelic patrimony of rsrael
might
be
assumed
by
an
outsider,
but
in
this
peculiarity the book still exemplifies the belief that the line of rsrael is possessed of an inheritance that allows human beings to realize and live angelic identity in the course of earthly life.
Levi's perception of Asenath's place
"in the highest" and her foundations "in the seventh heaven," even before her conversion is complete, suggests that what Asenath achieves in this book is not so much a fundamental, ontoloqical transformation as it is a reclaiming.
rf that is
so then the concept is that angelic nature is originally given to all human beings but is seldom or never realized outside of rsrael,
which,
alone
among
nations,
retains
the
secret
knowledge of this identity and its fulfillment.
The special emphasis upon Levi's angelic prerogatives, which we have already encountered in Jacob's blessing of his son
in
Jubilees
30:11-15,
brings
us
once
more
to
the
prominence of the Levitical line, and of priestly service and imagery,
in the angelic conception of rsrael.
After Levi
himself, whose blessing in Jubilees amounts to an angelic commissioning, Moses next exemplifies angelification in the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
227
pseudepigrapha
outside
of
Qumran. 268
Of
course,
Moses'
angelomorphism and sometime transformation is not associated predominantly with the Temple-service but rather with his role as the mediator of divine instruction.
Nonetheless,
it is
well to remember that Moses can be taken as an emblematic hero for subsequent descendants of the Levitical line, who are also to be,
according to Levi's blessing in Jubilees,
"judges,
rulers, and leaders for all the seed of the sons of Jacob." Fletcher Louis' work of 1997 provides a comprehensive and innovative synopsis of traditions of Moses' angelification, beginning with Philo's deification of Moses--"He gives him the title tbeos, and associates him closely with the Logos, the preeminent
intermediary
Fletcher Louis'
being
between
section on Moses
God
and
Man. " 269
begins with an argument
against the widely held opinion "that Philo's exalted view of Moses is possible because 'he had drunk deeply at the well of
268 At Qumran, aa we will •ee, relevant to our theme.
there are a Qahat- and an Amram-text
269
Pletcher-Louia, 1997, p. 173. Alan Segal'• 1995 •tudy al•o notea, •Philo apeaka of Moaea aa being made into a divinity (ei• eheon) in aeveral place• (e.g. Sacrifice• 1-10; «o••• 1.155-58),• and not•• the idea •that Moaea attained to a divine nature through contact with the logo•.• (p. 103) Segal al•o note• that Philo doea not confine thia motif to Mo•e• alone: •tn the Sacrifice• of cain and Abel 8-10, Philo refer• to Deut. 5:31 aa proof that certain people are diatinguiahed by God to be atationed •beaide h~aelf.• (p. 103)
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
228
Hellenism. '" 270
Against
this
position,
Fletcher-Louis
writes, it seems that, on the contrary, where nellenistic Jewish authors such a Philo deify Moses, they are not only rooted in the Biblical text (e.g. Exod.7:1), but are also reusing and inculturating a fundamentally Jewish tradition which bad conceived of Moses in angelomorphic terms since at least the second century [B.C. E.] • 271 In "firm support" of this contention, Fletcher-Louis cites Sirach
and the animal-apocalypse of lEnocb.
With regard to
Sirach: The Greek of Siracb 45:2-3 says God 'made (Moses) as glorious as the holy ones ••• Since the Geniza text has elohim, this was certainly meant to describe an angelomorphic transformation. 272 As to the animal-apocalypse, Fletcher Louis notes, as we have done, that the transformation of Noah from bovine into human form at the building of the ark is paralleled by Moses' own transformation from sheep to human being at the time of the building of the tabernacle (lEnoch 89:36). Even more dramatically, Fletcher-Louis notes, in Ezekiel the Tragedian's Exagoge, throne-tbeopbany
what
tradition and
he
terms
"evidence of the
Merkabah mysticism"
in an
27 ° Fletcher-Loui•, 1997, p. 173. The quotation i• from the conclu•ion of Barry Blackburn•• 1991 •tudy, p.68, and Fletcher-Loui• note•, •Before [Blackburn)... carl Holladay (1977) had argued that no •uch Belleni•tic deification of Mo•e• took place in Jewi•h author•, except perhap• with important qualification• in the ca•e of Philo.
271
Fletcher-Loui•, 1997, p. 174.
272
Fletcher-Loui•, 1997, p .175.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
221
account
of
Moses'
assuminq
what
seems
to
be
seat. 273
The passaqe in question is the followinq:
God's
own
on Sinai's peak r saw what seemed a throne so qreat in size it touched the clouds of heaven. Upon it sat a man of noble mein becrowned, and with a scepter in one hand while with the other he did beckon me. I made approach and stood before the throne. He handed o'er the scepter and he bade me mount the throne, and qave to me the crown; then he himself withdrew from off the throne. I qazed upon the whole earth round about; thinqs under it, and hiqh above the skies. Then at my feet a multitude of stars fell down, and I their number reckoned up. They passed by me like armed ranks of men. Then I in terror wakened from the dream.
(Exagoge 68-82) Admittedly, the framinq of the narrative as a "dream," and Jethro's
subsequent
interpretation
of
this
dream
as
foretellinq Moses' earthly rule over men, detract from the suqqestion of ontoloqical converqence between Moses and God's own qlory.
Even so, Fletcher-Louis may well be correct in
suqqestinq that the theoloqical motif of this passaqe "by later standards would be reqarded as a Two Powers heresy."n 4 Alleqorical dream thouqh it may be, the vision does set a remarkably conqruent precedent for the actual transformation of Enoch into Metatron in the Merkabah tradition, as retold in the
much
later
JEnoch,
and
also
for
classical
rabbinic
273 Segal al•o focu•e• upon this •ource in hi• 1995 •tudy, where he write•, •The •urviving text of Ezekiel the Tragedian al•o hint• at a transformation of an earthly hero into a divine fiqure when he relate• that the venerable man (pbos gennaios) handed Ko•e• hi• •ceptre and auaDOned him to •it upon the throne, placing a diadem on hi• head. Thereafter the •tar• bow to him and parade for his in•pection.• (p. 102)
n 4 Fletcher-Louis, p. 180.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
230
accounts of Moses' affinity with the angels, which we shall examine closely in this study. 275 Fletcher-Louis
nuntius,"
given
to
also
cites
Moses
in
the
the
appellation,
"great
of Hoses,
Testament
a
Palestinian text dated by R.H. Charles to between 4 B.C.E. and 70 C.E. dead,"
(because in it, on the one hand "Herod is already and,
on
standing. ") 276 manuscript, constructions language. 277
the The
but
other text
with
that
hand,
"the
survives
Temple
in
a
transliterations
indicate
on this basis,
Greek
is
still
single
Latin
and as
syntactical
the
original
Fletcher-Louis argues against
previous interpretations as follows: The majority of English translations translate the nuntius of vl7 as messenger, obviously thereby denying any divine or 'angelic' identity to Moses. But there is ample reason to think that the latter is precisely how Moses is understood. Whilst the semantic range of the word nuntius might allow us to exclude an angelic identity, it is recognized that angelos would have been in the Greek, underlying the Latin text. It therefore seems safe ns With reference to those rabbinic sources, c. R. A. Morray-Jones, in 'Transformational Myaticiem in the Apocalyptic-Merkabah Tradition' (1992, p. 13), summarizes: •[Wayne) Meeks [in •Moses as God and Kinq,• Religion• in Antiquity: Eaaaya in lfe1110ry of Ervin RUI•dell, Neuaner ed. (Leiden: 1968)) has arqued very convincinqly that the rabbinic sources dealinq with Moses' heavenly ascent at Sinai preserve traces of an earlier tradition that he was enthroned and received the divine Name and the qarment and crown of the divine Glory, thouqh this has everywhere been partially suppressed. Thus, in midraahim such as Peaikta Rabati. 20, Moses takes hold of the Throne rather than beinq seated upon it and, rather than clothinq him with the divine qarment or 'robe of Glory', God merely spreads a corner of it over him. Nonetheless, the tradition persisted that Moses ascended to heaven after hie death. These midraahim frequently associate Moses with Metatron, who ae4-• as hie quide and protector, and state that hie flesh was turned to fire ••• • n
6
n
7
Charles, h•uaption, pp. lv-lviii, BWIIID&rized by J. Priest in OTP, vol. 1, p. 918. Priest, OTP. vol. 1, p.918.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
231
to say that in the Greek text Moses is called ho megas angelos [i.e. the Great Angel]. This titular usage of angelos, which assumes God as the sender, tells against a purely secular and functional sense. 278 Fletcher Louis also notes that J. Tromp has commented: "The association of Moses with the Holy Spirit in 11:16 is so strong
that
one
could
passage in question,
speak
of
near
identity. " 279
The
which certainly does seem almost to
conflate Moses with the divine, is with reference to Moses' impending death and reads, in the voice of Joshua: Moreover, when the kings of the Amorites hear of your death, believing that there is no longer with us that sacred spirit, worthy of the Lord, manifold and incomprehensible, master of leaders, faithful in all things, the divine prophet for the whole earth, the perfect teacher in the world, now believing that they can storm us, they will say, 'Let us go up against them.' (Testament of Hoses 11:16) rt should also be noted that the text goes on to tell that Moses, in response to Joshua's distress, "grasped his hand and raised him into the seat before him" (12:2), reassuring him with reminders of God's promise. text was sometimes
aware of like
or
a
Xf the authorship of this
tradition of Moses'
identical
to
God's
own seat being own--which
seems
possible--then this enthronement of Joshua, so to speak would be meant subtly to suggest an angelic deputizing.
Certainly
such a transmission of quasi-divine identity results if this
na Fletcher-Louia, 1997, p. 181. 279
Tromp, J., riJe .t.au.ption oL lfoaea: A Critical Edition vith Co,..ntary, SVTP 10, Leiden, Brill, 1993; Fletcher-Louia, 1997, p.181.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
232
tellinq is taken in combination with the biblical account of Joshua's beinq infused with spirit throuqh Moses' layinq on of hands (Deut.34:9), as the authors of the Testament of Hoses must have known it would be. 280 Fletcher-Louis
concludes,
partly
on
the
basis
of
parallels to its Latin terms in descriptions of deities and spirits,
that Joshua's description of Moses
represents
a
belief "that [Moses] is an incarnation of the Holy Spirit's presence."
This belief
in
turn,
Fletcher-Louis suqqests
"qives content" to Moses claim of pre-existence,
in 1:14--
"[God] did devise and desiqn me, who was prepared from the beqinninq of the world, to be the mediator of his covenant." Fletcher Louis also identifies five loci in Josephus' writinqs in which "there is allusion or reference to Moses' divinity. " 281
First, Pharaoh's dauqhter, on presentinq the
foundling Moses to her father says, "I have brouqht up a child who is of divine form (morphe theios)" (Ant 2:232).
Second,
in Ant 3:180, Josephus calls Moses a "theios aner. " 282
The
280
In •A Throne in the Heavens• (1995), J.J. Collins notes, •The idea that righteous human beings will have thrones in heaven as an eachatalogical reward becomes current from the first century c.z.• As evidence, he cites 1 Enoch 108:12: •[God) will bring out into shining light those who love my holy name, and I will set each one on the throne of his honor, • and also Rev.3:21, which promises the one who conquers •to sit on my throne with me, • and in Rev. 20:4 the visionary sees •thrones and those seated on them were given authority to judge.• (p. 50). 281
Fletcher-Louis, 1997, pp. 182-183.
C&rl R. Holladay, in his study, rheioa Aner in He~~eniaeic-Jud&i. .: A Crieique of ehe lfiauae of ehia caeegory in Nev reaeamene Chriaeology, SBLDS 40, 282
1977, remarks that, •the expression eheioa aner never occurs in either the Greek Old Testament or in the Hew Testament, but derives instead from the alien world of Helleni.m.• (p. 6). Be goes on to write that •within the Hellenistic world
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
233
context of this appellation is interesting, and, as FletcherLouis observes,
may well be "related to traditions of an
angelomorphic high priesthood," and certainly points to a cosmological understanding of the Temple: ••• if anyone do but consider the fabric of the tabernacle, and take a view of the garments of the high priest, and of those vessels of which we make use in our sacred ministration, he will find that our lawgiver was a divine man ••• for if anyone do without prejudice look upon these things, he will find they were everyone made in way of imitation and representation of the universe. (Antiquities 3:180) Moses' being able to model the sanctuary after the universe seems to imply that his status as a "divine man" is more than merely a prophetic stature and entails as well the kind of cosmic knowledge that a denizen of the heavenly realm might possess. the theioa aner waa a wideapread and popularly known figure who poaaeaaed a recognizable aet of traita, the moat prominent and recurrent of which were hia divinity (or at leaat hia uniquely conceived affiliation with the divine), itinerancy, and miracle-working; other diatinguiahing marka might alao include propheaying, oracular and ecatatic utterance&, wiadom, and rhetorical ability." (p. 15) Be alao opinea: "That within Jewiah life and thought, eapecially aa reflected in the Old Teatament, the notion of a "divine man" waa a contradiction in terma and therefore the expreaaion theioa aner ia an inappropriate deaignation for auch Old Teatament figure& aa prieata, propheta, judgea, kinga, and other "men of God." (p.16) However, he notea, "That within Jewiah thought, owing to the impact of Belleniam, a perceptible conceptual transformation begin& to occur in the Belleniatic era aa Jewa, particularly in the Diaapora, in their effort& to propagate the Jewiah faith (either by "mi.aaionary preaching" or "apologetic") begin to reinterpret and remodel their ancient Biblical heroea, moat notably Moaea, to conform to the image of the Belleniatic theioa aner, ao that by the firat century A.D. it waa not uncommon for Jewa to conceive and preaent their heroea to non-Jewa a• •divine men• in thia Belleniatic aenae.• (pp. 16-17) On the other hand, Holladay notea: •Aa to the queation of whether in BelleniaticJudaiam it became eaaier for Jewa to conceive of a divine man becauae the line of demarcation between man and God had become blurred, we have •-n evidence that auggeata that Hellenization among Jewa, rather than bridging the gap, only widened it,• (p.235) and he writea, "There aeema to be no direct correlation ••• between the extent of Hellenization and a willingneaa or propenaity to deify human beinga.• (pp. 235-236). Thia laat remark correaponda with Fletcher-Louie' contention (noted above) that Philo'a divinizing of Moaea ia not a conaequence of Belleniatic inclinationa.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
234
The third locus in Josephus identified by Fletcher-Louis is
Against
in
Apion,
a
statement
that
the
Egyptians
acknowledge him to have been "a wonderful and divine person (andra thaumastos •••• kai theion)" (Ap 1:279). passage,
in
the
Antiquities,
In the fourth
Fletcher-Louis
observes,
"Josephus hints at the tradition paralleled by Philo and the tanaim, in which Moses eats heavenly food on Sinai. " 283
The
fifth reference in Josephus that Fletcher-Louis identifies, again in the Antiquities (3:320), says that Moses' mediation of the Law "caused this man to be ranked higher than his own nature."
Fletcher-Louis coDlDlents,
particularly
interesting
given
the
"Josephus'
lanquage is
comparison
with
his
lanquage when commenting upon Herod Agrippa I's arrogation to divinity (Ant 19:345) ••• and his record that Herod the Great had 'a higher opinion of [the Essenes] than was consistent with their mortal nature (Ant 15:372) ." 284 Louis
concludes,
"although
he
doesn't
"Thus," Fletcherrefer
to
angels,
Josephus' portrayal of Moses is described in angelomorphic terms. " 285
283
F1etcher-Loui•, 1997, p. 183.
284
F1etcher-Loui•, 1997, p.183.
285
F1etcher-Loui•, 1997, p.183.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
235
Iaaiab In Joseph and Asenath, as we have seen, Levi perceives that Asenath's "foundations" are built "upon a rock in the seventh heaven. "
This motif suqqests that Asenath, even
before her conversion, heavenly alter-eqo,
has a
latent anqelic identity,
or
of which she is unaware until she is
brouqht to consciousness of it by Joseph and Levi.
In that
sense, Asenath's conversion is not so much an ontoloqical transformation; rather it is the realization of an identity that is Asenath's by riqht, by dint of her humanity. A similar motif, of a reserved place, or place-holder, for
a
human
beinq
in the seventh heaven occurs
Martyrdom and Ascension of Isaiah.
in
the
The theme occurs in the
eiqhth chapter, part of a seqment of the book (chapters 6-11) deemed to be a Christian composite--culminatinq, as it does, in an encounter with the christ--circulated separately as the Vision of Isaiah.
Of this section, M.A. Knibb observes, "The
fact that Jerome refers to 11:34, and that Epiphanius qives a quotation of 9:35f., suqqests that this part of the Ascension was in existence, at the latest, by the end of the third century (C.E.]. century. n2s6
But it is probably much older than the third
It will be clear, however,
that despite its
O~P. vol.2, pp. 149-150. Ball (1994) identi.fi.ea the Bthi.opic ~c•n•ion I•aiah aa •a Chrati.an documant froa the early aecond century,• (p. 463) but he writea, •few, if any, component• of the Vi.ai.on of Iaai.ah ore demon•trably nonJewi.ah. 286
o~
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
231
Christian objective, the portion of chapters 7-9 that we must examine here shares much with pseudepiqrapha from Jubilees and 1Enoch on.
The theme of this segment is hardly a novelty.
rt
is rather, at the very least, a protraction of earlier ideas, and its inclusion in this text is certainly a testament to continued interest and belief in the rightful place of human beings among the angels throughout the first three centuries
C. E. rsaiah,
in this segment, seems to describe a personal
transformation that corresponds to the stages of his guided, journey through the successively higher heavens: And he took me up into the third heaven, and in the same way r saw those who were on the right and on the left, and there also there was a throne in the middle and one who sat on it ••• And r said to the angel who was with me, for the glory of my face was being transformed as r went up from heaven to heaven, Nothing of the vanity of [my] world is named here. (Ascension of Isaiah 7:24-26) rsaiah's progressive transformation is such that, by his entry into "the air of the sixth heaven," he is ready to hear a truth about his own status from his angelic guide: And again, he took me up into the air of the sixth heaven, and r saw a splendor such as r had not seen in the five heavens as r went up; the angels possessed great glory, and the praise there was holy and wonderful. And r said to the angel who led me, "What is this that r see, my Lord?" And be said to me, "X am not your Lord, but your companion." (Ascension of Isaiah 8:1-5) Once more we see that a human initiate's sense of his angelic guide's alterity is supplanted by knowledge of an affinity, or
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
237
identity shared between himself and the anqel.
Althouqh
Isaiah at first experiences his ascent as a transformation, the ascent seems rather to be an experience that allows the prophet to realize that, ab origine, there is not a heaven in which
he
is
not
at
home.
Isaiah's
belonqinq
in
each
successive heaven, then, is not primarily a consequence of the chanqe of aspect that he experiences in himself at each staqe; more importantly, it is the realization of an already riqhtful place, as Isaiah learns upon enterinq the seventh heaven: And he led me into the seventh heaven, and moreover I heard a voice sayinq, "How far is be who dwells amonq aliens to qo up?" And I was afraid and was tremblinq. Behold! From there another voice which was sent out has come, and it says, The holy Isaiah is permitted to come up here, for his robe is here.
(Ascension
o~
Isaiah 9:1-3)
Isaiah, as an earthly man, may "dwell amonq aliens," but the central revelation of his ascent is that he is not himself considered alien in any of the heavens. on the other band, the robe reserved for Isaiah in the seventh heaven is not one that he can assume in full while livinq his earthly life.
Nor is his learninq of that robe's
existence a common experience amonq humankind: But I say to you, Isaiah, that no man who bas to return into a body of that world has come up or seen, or understood what you have seen and what you are to see, for you are destined in the lot of the Lord and in the lot of the tree, to come here, and from there is the power of the sixth heaven and of the air •••• And he said to me, "Hear this also from your companion: when from the body by the will of God you have come up here, then you will receive the robe which you will see, and also other numbered
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
238
robes placed there you will see, and then you will equal. to the anqels who are in the seventh heaven. (Ascension of Isaiah 8:1-15)
be
so Isaiah's experience is a prolepsis, but it is the foretaste of
the
fulfillment
of
an
identity
already
determined before the prophet's awareness of
qranted it,
and
and the
"other numbered robes" of this passage suggest that Isaiah is not alone in having an angelic qarment reserved for him in the highest heaven. That the soul comes from heaven and from God is also hardly an unfamiliar notion in connection with Israelite and Jewish religion.
Nor is the idea that the soul might resume
a heavenly life after death at all unknown; and the idea of Israel living an angel-like existence beyond the end of days is also a
well-recoqnized phenomenon. 287
This chapter has
focused upon passaqes that seem to indicate an actual anqelic identity inherent in at least certain human beinqs even in their earthly lives.
This means that the present discussion
287
Clearly echoing Daniel, lEnoch 58:3, for example, proclaims: '"The righteou• one• •hall be in the light of the •un and the elect one• in the light of eternal life which ha• no end, and the day• of the life of the holy one• cannot be numbered.'" 2Enoch 65:11 (in the '"A'" text) al•o preserve• thi• motif a• well.: '"Bow happy are the righteou• who will ••cape the Lord*• great judgement, for their face• will. •hine forth like the •un.• The parallel pa••age in the '"J'" text i• even more explicit about the angel-like existence of the time-to-come: •aut they will. have great light, a great indestructible light, and paradi•e, great and incorruptible. Por everything corruptible wil.l pa•• away, and the incorruptible will come into being, and wil.l be the •helter of the eternal. re•idenc••·· Even the vi•ion of enlightenment and angelification in the time to come in lBnoch 48:1--'"All of the thir•ty one• drink (of the water) and become fil.led with wi•dom; then their dwelling place• become with the holy, righteou•, and elect one••--•ugge•tive a• it i• of learning in thi• life a• a path to angel.ic exi•tence, doe• not meet the criterion of thi• •tudy. lBnoch 62:13-16 ha• •the righteou• and elect• clothed with •garment• of glory• in the time to come, and according to 104:4, their joy will be a• that of the angel• of heaven.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
231
has excluded many passages, similar to the promise that Isaiah hears in his Ascension, to the effect that human beings will, after death or in an age to come, find themselves existing as angels.
Such motifs do not, in and of themselves, demonstrate
the belief in an angelic Israel in the sense that we are exploring in this study. post-mortem angelic life,
That is, the theme of a future or even where it is conceived as a
recapitulation of the soul's origin,
does not on its own
bespeak a view of Israel as a people apart, distinquished by an inherent and actual angelic identity. Even
the
notion
that we have
just
observed
in
the
Ascension of Isaiah, that certain living human beings might
have personal angelic robes, numbered and assigned in, as it were, the cloakroom of the seventh heaven, may fall somewhat short of expressing a belief in angelic identity in the course of human life, inasmuch as those robes cannot be worn, and usually cannot even be perceived during embodied life, as the angel tells Isaiah. Isaiah,
However, that same angel's confession to
"I am not your Lord but your companion"
(even if
calculated to prepare Isaiah for an encounter with his Lord in the person of the christ), does more closely approach the theme of this study inasmuch as it reveals to Isaiah a truth about his
own nature that may be hidden
by
his
earthly
existence, but nonetheless remains actual to some degree.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
240 !'be
Ange~ic
Israe~
Hope of
We have seen that many of the writings that attest to the religious thought of pre-rabbinic Judaism can be interpreted in terms of a narrative theme in which the line of Israel retains innately something of the wondrous nature of the first human being and strives toward ever more complete realization of its rightful angelic identity.
By this effort, and by the
requisite knowledge of humankind's angelic patrimony, Israel is distinguished from the nations that surround it, whose contrary beliefs and actions are often presented in terms of the influence of a
subversive,
fallen faction of angels,
jealous of the status of Adam.
The same motif can serve
equally, as we have seen, to distinguish a self-styled elect within Israel from a perceived corruption of the nation at large. God's
The true Israel enjoys the status of firstborn in household
of
creation,
entitled
to
the
honor
and
preroqatives of the favored son. According characters
to
who
this are
understanding, especially
the
angelified
particular in
the
pseudepigraphal literature should not be read merely as lesser precursors and precedents for the figure of a christ who bridges the heavenly and earthly identities and realms.
The
wondrous accounts of various patriarchs and prophets may have been preserved, in part, because they are amenable to such a reading,
but
the
stories
themselves,
as
we
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
have
seen,
241
oriqinate well before Christianity and seem to emerqe from a vision
of
Israel's
anqelic
identity
that
requires
particular intermediary for its realization. Jacob,
and
other
fiqures
the
certainly
discovery
and
Adam,
serve
as
realization
no
Levi,
exemplary
paradigms
for
of
anqelic
identity.
The accounts of such characters certainly invite
the identification of their often eponymous descendants (sons of Adam, sons of Levi, children of Israel). anqelic
identity of Israel
depends upon
The corporate
patrimony and a
continuous line to these ancestors and leaders. of
this
is
qualitatively different
from
the
However, all concept
heavenly identity achieved throuqh adherence to a salvific
son
of
God,
as
emerqes
in
of
sinqle,
Christianity.
The
difference seems to rest in a conception of Israel (or of humanity) as already, inherently anqelic.
Aqain and aqain, in
the sources surveyed in this chapter, we see that what is required in the realizinq of anqelic nature is the jolt of confrontation with an identity that is primordially intrinsic and
already
qiven.
When
placed
amonq
the
anqels,
the
Israelite readily discovers a reserved and riqhtful place. In the Fourth Book of Ezra, a Jewish text, dated to about 100
c. E.
I
288
the prophet invokes the firstborn status of
Israel, the nation, in the followinq complaint: As for the other nations which have descended from Adam, you have said that they are nothinq, and that they are like spittle, and you have compared their 288
OTP, vol. 1, p. 20.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
242
abundance to a drop from a bucket. And now, 0 Lord, behold these nations, which are reputed as nothing, domineer over us and devour us. But we your people, whom you have called your first-born, only begotten, zealous for you, and most dear, have been given into their hands. If the world has indeed been created for us, why do we not possess our world as an inheritance? How long will this be so? (4Ezra 6:55-59) Ezra's angelic quide responds with reference to Adam and the consequences of Adam's transqression, but also, ultimately, with an indication that Adam's original lot is to be attained anew.
The response begins with a parable: There is a sea set in a wide expanse so that it is broad and vast, but it has an entrance set in a narrow place. If anyone, then, wishes to reach the sea, to look at it or to navigate it, how can he come to the broad part unless he pass through the narrow part •••
After a second, equivalent parable, the angelic emissary goes on, apparently speaking in God's own voice, to explain: So also is Israel's portion. For when I made the world for their sake, and when Adam transgressed my statutes, what had been made was judged. And so the entrances of this world were made narrow and sorrowful and toilsome; they are few and evil, 289 full of dangers and involved in great hardships. But the entrances of the future world are broad and safe, and really yield the fruit of immortality. Therefore unless the living pass through the difficult and vain experiences, they can never receive those things that have been reserved for them. These passages represent an effort to come to terms with the disparity between a belief in elect lineage and nature, on the one hand, and the experience of disadvantage and destruction, The very word• u•ed by Jacob to de•cribe the day• of h~• earthly l~fe to Pharaoh in Gen. 289
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
243
on the other.
The response of 4Ezra is typical: the present
world is the crucible of troubles and temptations in which Xsrael may be refined by makinq choices of obedience and discipline that countermand the transqression of Adam. 4Ezra is also typical in placing the rewards for these choices in a future world--another way of reconcilinq elect identity and worldly downtroddenness.
Yet the promise of a
future world alone was evidently insufficient on its own to inspire and to console
in the
destruction of Jerusalem. this
chapter speak to
centuries surroundinq the
The accounts that we have seen in
Xsrael with a
vision of
intrinsic
identity, in the here and now, that miqht sustain and inspire until the inception of that next world, and hasten its cominq.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
244
Chapter Three
ANGELIC ISRAEL: THE RABBINIC SOURCES AND TRADITIONS
,JN
(~9
D,~~n)
~,nJi
~N,W,
l~N
Nl~
N11Jl Dl,N N"i DnN D,~~N ,n,nN
Another interpretation: "He is terrible and awesome"-- this refers to Israel, as it is written, "I said, you are elohim" (Ps.82:6). Vayikra Rabah 18:2
In'traduction It should now be clear that self-identification with the angels was a major feature of much Jewish religious thought at the end of the era of the second Jerusalem Temple.
The
library of Qumran has enabled us to see how a concept of angelic Israel became fundamental in the self-conception and the raison d'etre of one particular Jewish community.
The
many representations of affinity and kinship between Israel and the angels in the pseudepigraphic literature enable us to say
that
the
inhabitants
of
Qumran
were
not
alone
in
conceiving of the distinctiveness and the destiny of Israel in angelic terms. The
theme
literature.
of
angelic
Identification
Israel with
persists the
angels
in
rabbinic
figures
in
rabbinic accounts of Adam and of the original nature of
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
245
humanity, in narratives of Israel's proqenitors and ancestral heroes, in imaqininqs of revelation and its consequences, in idealizations valorizations
of of
the
Temple
rabbinic
and
life,
its
priesthood,
in conceptualizations
worship, and in visions of the world to come. be discovered
in of
The theme can
in almost all of the texts of
classical
rabbinic literature that contain qreat quantities of aqadah; and one need only look at the yotzer and kedushah-liturqies of rabbinic prayer to see that fascination with celestial beinqs and with the anqelic service in the heavens remained a source of inspiration and an orqanizinq principle in Jewish prayer. When
one
finds
a
distinct
theme
manifest
in
the
protoloqy, the teleoloqy, the cosmology, and the liturgy of a reliqion,
and
also
manifest
in
that
reliqion's
characterizations of its participants, then one is tempted to say that the theme must be fundamental and essential to the reliqion.
One miqht normally be justified in sayinq so; but
classical
rabbinic
literature rabbinism's consistent,
(if
literature
there
success
be is
unified,
voices--free
such
a
not
normal
reliqious
A function
texts do
not present a
its
and
sustained
to
a
thinq).
that
anthropological argument. multiple
is
theoloqical
of
and
By eschewinq unanimity in favor of ranqe
within
quite
rudimentary
doctrinal parameters--classical rabbinic reliqion spreads its tent wide, admittinq a variety of outlooks and interests and
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
241
allowing
these
to
flourish.a 90
The
one
God
created
the
world, elected Israel from among the nations, and revealed to Israel the all-important Torah from which all truth derives; and it is exceptionally hard, and probably undesirable, to pin "the rabbis," in their textually assembled multitudes, to more specific doctrines and dogmas. The rise
of rabbinic
leadership
in the wake of
the
Temple's destruction is commonly regarded as marking the end of a period characterized by separate Jewish sects, and as marking
the
dawn
of
an
era
of
Jewish
normativity.
Normativity, however, is hardly the first word that comes to mind when one surveys the landscape of rabbinic thought.
The
texts of Qumran, on the whole, evidence a much more coherent and single-minded theology and world-view than does midrashic literature;a91 and the same was probably true of other prerabbinic Jewish sects whose libraries are not available to us. Early rabbinism tolerates and includes multiple ideologies. As Shaye Cohen has observed: "The dominant ethic here is not exclusivity but elasticity.
The goal was not the triumph over
other sects but the elimination of the need for sectarianism itself. " 29 a
Next
to
Qumran's
zealous
particularism,
the
tanaitic assertion that all of Israel have a share in the world to come rings radically inclusive. ~° Cf. Shay• J. D. COhen, 291
•The Significance of Yavneh.•
With due re•pect for the variation• amonq ~an-text•!
a92 Shay• J. D. cohen, •The Significance of Yavneh.•
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
247
In
view of the quite varied spiritual and thematic
interests evidenced in classical rabbinic literature, we are bound, when we consider particular rabbinic concepts--of God, mankind, the cosmos, and their interplay--to speak of opinions
within rabbinic literature rather than opinions of rabbinic literature corporately.
To express it in this vein,
essential argument of this chapter is as follows: framework
of
classical
rabbinic
agadah,
the
Within the
proponents
of
a
concept of angelic Israel carried their theme forward and argued for its importance.
2'1le Rallge of Sources
The sources presented in this chapter are culled from "classical rabbinic literature."
The objective is to discern
the thought and beliefs of those sages who shaped the main line, so to speak, of rabbinic religion. and Amoraim,
These are the Tanaim
whose voices we hear in the Mishnah and the
Talmudim as well as in midrashic compilations.
To be sure,
one cannot study the thought of those sages without, at one and the same time, studying the work of the various redactors who anthologized and shaped the classical rabbinic legacy. One
must
remember
that
the
Talmudim
and
the
midrashic
anthologies are all composite works, assembled by editorial agents distinct from the sages whose dicta are their buildingblocks.
These editors, or redactors, demonstrably also made
contributions of their own to these works, sometimes adding
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
248
quite substantially, sometimes emending or slightly adapting the traditions to which they were heirs. 293 the
dates
of
the
compilations
of
the
What is more,
various
midrashic
anthologies that purport to transmit the views of the tanaitic and amoraic sages range widely, from the days of these sages themselves to much later centuries; and some of these works were assembled and reworked gradually through great spans of time. In view of such active redactional work in the midrashic literature, and such widely ranging dates of redaction, one can well question the merit of assembling agadic traditions from various sources thematically, as this chapter will do. Many scholars now eschew such a method in favor of what Jacob Neusner
has
literature.
termed
a
"documentary
approach"
to
rabbinic
That approach treats each work in turn as a
literary and
religious world unto
itself,
studied in isolation from other sources. 294 underlying Neusner's rabbinic text,
approach are:
which must
be
The arguments
that when we study
a
we can encounter it only as its redactors
wished it to be read; that, therefore,
it is actually the
293
The •eparatene•• of the redactional endeavor from the productivity of the named Sage• cited in talmudic and other rabbinic text• i• the topic of ongoing and pion. .ring •cholar•hip by Profe••or David Wei•• Ralivni, to whoa I owe my training in the critical analy•i• of •uch text• in term• of their formation. For the late•t development• in thi• area cf. the introduction to the volume on Bava Met•ia of lfelcoroe u..aoroe (Source• and Tradition•), Debir, Jeru•alem, forthcoming. 294
Jacob Neu•ner, •Why Schechter, Moore, and Urbach are Irrelevant to Scholar•hip Today, • in seudiea in ehe Behnography oL Judai.,., Scholar'• Pre••• Atlanta, 1989, pp. 173-194.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
241
world of thought of those redactors that we inevitably study; and that, consequently, we must not take the attributions of dicta in rabbinic texts at face value and believe that we are studying the
thought of the
sages who are named
in the
particular text. On the other hand, there is every reason to think that attributions of dicta in the classical midrashim are, for the most part, made in good faith. the
presumption
fancifully,
that
but
the
That is, we should start with
attributions
represent
the
are
not
invented
bona
redactors'
fide
transmission of parts of a legacy from previous generations. we should make a contrary case only where reasons to do so present themselves,
albeit we should also be cautious and
modest in making claims for the accuracy of attributions.
We
must acknowledge that the redactor's inheritance may well have accrued not only shades and nuances in its transmission, but also
settings
amid
other
sources
and
associative
links
accentuating particular themes, all of which may well reflect later sensibilities. uncomplicated
We are thus a far cry away from claiming
preservation
of
traditions
through
the
generations; yet, takinq care to be alert to the complications of transmission, we can still discern early thought in later texts. This chapter will concentrate as much as possible upon the
earliest
principally
agadic
Bereshit
sources Rabah,
that
evidence
Vayikra
Rabah,
our
themes--
and
talmudic
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
250
aqadot.
However,
where
themes
of
anqelic
Israel
are
represented significantly in later compilations--the Midrash on Psalms and Bemidbar Rabah, for example--this chapter will follow the themes into those sources as well.
Anachronism is
not the qoal; and if we consistently recall the provenances of the various texts here, then the picture that emerges is a diachronic one that reveals remarkable continuity of rabbinic thouqht on the subject of Israel's affinity with the anqels.
Another note before turninq to the substance of this chapter:
From the earliest days of the scientific study of
rabbinic literature in Western academe,
there has been a
tendency to reqard themes and opinions that do not persist within current Jewish orthodoxy as not seriously intended by the early rabbis, or as peripheral curios. -to
take
the paradigmatic example of
Solomon Schechtersuch an
approach--
purported to discern between the "wheat" and the "chaff" in rabbinic orthodoxy
aqadah, of
determinations. 295
unapoloqetically his
own
We
must
allowing
experience avoid
such
to
the
Jewish
inform prejudices
his and
295 solomon Schechter, some Aspect• of Rabbinic Theology, Adam and Charla• Black, London, 1909. Schechter (pp. vii.i-ix) wrote, "I made little uee of euch matter ae may be de•cribed a• mere legend or fancy, falling within the province of folk-lore and apocalyp•• rather than belonging to the domain of theology. The•• repreaent the chaff, an inevitable growth in the field of religion. • Schechter believed that •the unity of the Synagogue wae and i• •till incorporate, • and that thi• ju•tifiec:l occaeional appeal• to •living te•timony• a• a witne•• to ancient rabbini.c idea•. For Schechter • • admi•aion of hie own Jewiah experience a• a yard-•tick, and hi• •eJutptical attitude• toward de•cription• of cla••ical rabbinic thought that did not jibe with hi• own experience of the religion, •ee p.xviii.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
251
approach the rabbinic sources with a view to their antecedent traditions, chapters.
which we have encountered in the previous two
At this point in our study, it should be clear that
the theme of angelic Israel was earnestly meant and fervently believed in earlier forms of Judaism.
This chapter will
demonstrate that the theme remained important and compelling for many rabbinic sages as well.
Syllbo~is• and
Actuality in
C~liSsica.l
lfidrasll
Bereshit Rabah 68: 12 presents the following midrashic interpretation of Jacob's dream of a ladder of angels: ~~
,0,10
~wwn ~,1D
~J~1
,111ng ,, l,NW Cl,IT n,,
rr~rn (~ n1nw) 1IT,1W n1Jl1~~ l,N ,C,,lil C,J~~ l,N
~niN
1,,1D ~~J 'il illill
,W~~~
,IT~Tn~
,D
N19~
1~
,Jn
rr~rn ~~ .~~1N ~~1n ,w~~~ ,~n,nw~ D,ln 1WN1l ,,, ,C,~,N ,~N,n illill ,c,nw,
0,111,1 C,,lD CilW ,1~ 1,111,1 ~~l '~ nN ,n,N1 (U C1nD) ,l,,D
Bar Kapara taught: There is no dream without an interpretation. "And lo, a ladder"--that is the ramp [of the Temple's altar]; "set up on the earth"--that is the altar, as in "An altar of earth you shall make for me" (Ex.20:21); "and the top of it reached to the heavens"--that refers to the sacrifices; "and lo, angels of God"--those are the high priests; "ascended and descended upon it"--in that they ascend and descend the ramp; "and lo, the Lord stood over him"--[as it is said] "I saw the Lord standing over the altar" (Amos. 9: 1) • 296 Clearly priests are identified with angels in this midrash, and the Temple-service is identified with Jacob's dream-vision
296 Thi• midra•h i• paralleled in the Midra•h on P•alm•, 78:6 where it illu•trate• the &rC)WIIent that Gocl gave Jacob a premonition of the T8iDple.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
252
of
heaven
chapter,
and
however,
identifications speakinq
earth
only
in of
we
interpenetratinq.
Throuqbout
this
must
nature
such
question
classical clever
the
rabbinic
symbolic
sources.
correlations,
of
Are
of
we
the
correspondence of separate realities in the imaqes of a dream? can we say only that the service of the Temple was understood by the early rabbis as referrinq symbolically to the heavenly service of the celestial& in the intimate presence of God?
Or
did anqels and priests, temple and heavens, coincide in some rabbinic minds to the point of a more actual kind of identity? To illustrate, by example, the opposite end of what we miqht
call
a
spectrum,
in miclrashic
literature,
ranqinq
between metaphor and actuality, consider, by contrast, another aqadah--this one in Bemidbar Rabah 16:1--in which the kinship of priests and anqels appears quite real and consequential. This source elaborates on the Israelite spies' visit to the house of Rahab, in Jericho.
The two spies sent by Joshua are
typically identified in aqadah as Pinchas and Caleb, and as Rahab moves to hide the two men from the soldiers of Jericho, this midrash places the followinq demure in the mouth of Pinchas: 'NJW C,~K"1n"1 1"1wnJ O,Ji1~i11 li1~ ,JN OTTJ9 i1"1 1nN li1,gn 1w~~, i111n1 nu1 11nw, li1~ ,ngw ,~ (l ,~N"1n) 1 J ,N Wj2~n i1N1 J Wj2ln 1N"1ni1 1 N 1i1 n1K~~ 'i1 1M"1n , ~ 1,1~ ,J,Kl lil~ ,JN CTTJ9 i1"1 1nN 1~,9"1 ••• i1N1J ll,Nl li1,J9"1 ln1D ,JNl ,1lTT l"1~"1 ,J,ntJi1 l,ntJi1"1 i1nWD lJ1 ,nlK l,M11
Pincbas said to her: I am a priest, and the priests are likened to the angels as it is said, "for the lips of the priest shall quard knowledge, and they
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
253
shall seek the law at his mouth, for he is an angel of the Lord of hosts• (Mal.2:7); and an angel, if he so wishes, can be seen, and, if he so wishes, can be invisible ••• 297 Pinchas therefore said to Rahab: I am a priest, and I do not need to hide. Hide Caleb, and I will stand right before them and they will not see me. And so she did. The language that Pinchas uses to identify himself with the angels is the language of parable
(O,~N7n7
17wnJ
O,J~~~),
and
yet the effect of the correlation in the midrashic narrative is
anything
but
allegorical.
Pinchas
actually
becomes
invisible.
7wn in an account of
This usage of the parlance of
ontological convergence seems to illustrate what Beate Ego has termed
(with
regard
to
metaphor
in
pre-rabbinic
Jewish
literature) Urbild-Abbild-Denken--a convergence of signifier and signified (Einheit von Bild und Sache) • 298
That is to
say,
ontological
there
is
consequence,
a
in
dimension midrashic
correlations of agadah. figuratively,
or
of
actuality,
wordplay
and
of in
the
semantic
If a thing is found to be literarily,
symbolically
compelling--as
is
the
correspondence of Jacob's angels to the priesthood in Bereshit Rabah 68:12--it is not far from being considered actually so-as in the account of Pinchas is Bemidbar Rabah 16:1. following words,
from Jon Levinson's discussion
The
(in terms
almost identical to Ego's) of the convergence of the heavens 297
The intervening teat at thi• point i• an interpoaed proof that prophet• too are like angel•, and we will deal with that pa••age in a ••parate •egment on prophet•, below. 298
Ego, 1989.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
254
and the Temple in the sixth chapter of the book of Isaiah, apply equally well to the phenomenon we see in our midrash concerninq Pinchas and the anqels: "The difference between the earthly antitype [Abbild] and the heavenly archetype [Urbild] disappear:
iconoqraphy becomes the reality it symbolizes"
(Levinson 1985 54). The midrash about Pinchas and Caleb in Bemidbar Rabah 16:1 is occasioned by a peculiar scriptural turn of phrase-the word
1J9~n1,
which reads as if sinqular--"she hid him"--
althouqh the biblical narrative concerns both of the two spies.
Considered from this linquistic anqle, the purpose of
the midrash is to explain away an apparent inconsistency or irreqularity of scriptural wordinq.
Pinchas is conveniently
allowed anqelic invisibility to remove him from the purview of a verb, as much as from the qaze of Jericho's soldiers.
Does
that diminish the ontoloqical claim the midrash seems to make about the priesthood?
Not at all, for the midrash would have
absented Pinchas in some other way, or simply have iqnored the passaqe altoqether, had the thouqht of Pinchas' beinq anqellike not been aqreeable and appealinq in and of itself.
Odd
scriptural phrases often suqqest wondrous possibilities, and the
authors
of
aqadah
are
audacious
embracers
of
such
opportunities to enrich the biblical leqacy; but their work is not haphazard.
The associations they make depend upon the
beliefs they hold and the arquments they wish to advance.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
255
The images and ideas that agadic interpretations develop should not be reduced to mere wordplay, nor even to virtuoso turns of exegetical daring for their own sake. midrash,
seem
to
consequential.
have
regarded
Fiqure
and
their
fact
The framers of
work
as
far
more
converge
in
midrashic
literature in such a way as to create a landscape of actuality whose
features
are
often
determined
by
cleverness of sportive scriptural readings.
the
compelling
The ontological
enterprise of agadah seems to rest upon the conviction that the landscape revealed through the application of the art of midrash to the scriptures is not merely an imaginary and homiletically useful fantasy,
but is the most actual and
deeply true reality of the world. turn
to
further
agadic
sources
With this in mind, let us on
the
theme
Israel.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
of
angelic
251
2'be
Allge~ic
Identity o~ tile First
OW~
11n,o
M~n
11WN1~
1~
~il~,
CiN nN
'1
11WN1~
o"~~o
su-n CiN
Beings
~T
N1~W oUW~
Nl~
,,~
N11ll Cl,M
1~ UWlo, ,~1 l~lJ C~lUo ~J
"Terrible and awesome is he"--This refers to the first man. R. Yehudah bar Simon in the name of R. Yehoshua b. Levi: When God created the first man he filled all the world. 499 Vayikra Rabah 18: 1
In
the
observed creature.
a
previous theme Also,
of
chapter, man's
on
beinq
in that chapter,
the an
pseudepiqrapha, oriqinally
we
anqelic
we saw evidence of
a
pervasive and essential theme, in those same sources, in which the covenant between God and the Israelite line enables the elect amonq Adam's descendants to retain or reqain somethinq of the oriqinal anqelic nature of the first human beinq.
We
shall now see that a concept of Adam as oriqinally anqelic pervades classical rabbinic literature as well, and that this concept of Adam is connected with a conception of humankind as sharinq in the nature of the anqels. First of all, we should note the commonplace in classical midrashic literature that the soul of man300 has its oriqin
499
The rejoining text adda the additional interpretation that the firat huaaan being fi.lled the entire apace, or cavi.ty, of the univerae cn~lD ~~ ,~~n), according to Paa~ 139 ·~J9J ,~D nwn1•. 300
I uae the word •man• adviaedly here; I ahall come to the problem of woman and angelic identity in the rabbinic aourcea in due courae (and, I aay •problem• adviaedly aa well, in view of tho•• aourcea).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
257
on high and is thus in nature distinct from the body, which has its origin below. 301 the
human
soul
is
The supernal, even cosmic nature of
made
especially
poignant
in
a
brief
tradition attributed to R. Shimon b. Lakish in Bereshit Rabah 8:1 (Albeck): DIM7W liTl1 lT n9IT1n D,~7N IT11l W,~7 1~ llDnW '1 1nN DIM ~:lT DN '~ IT11 l,7ll ~ITJl 1nN nNI 1,~ 11WM1~ 17 D,1nlN 1M7 DMl n1w~ ,~N7n7 nn1~ ~nM )7 D,1nlM 1n1i1 ~l~T
R. Shimon b. Lakish (said] "And the spirit of the Lord hovered [on the face of the waters]" (Gen.1:2)--That is, the soul of the first man, as you say, "And the spirit of the Lord shall rest upon him" (Isa.11:2). If a man is meritorious, he is told, You· preceded the ministering angels; and if not, he is told, The gnat preceded you. 302 According to a well-known talmudic presentation of the issue, it is not only the supernal soul of the first man that is breathed into an earthly body by God; the conception of each subsequent human being recapitulates the animation of Adam, except that the corporeal mass to be animated comes from the parents rather than the earth:
Vayikra Rabah 4:8 contain• a long diacour•e on the a~ilarity of the •oul to God, mo•tly by way of analogy between the •oul in the body and God in the world, but al•o with regard to the •oul '• uniquene••, invi•ibility, longevity, freedom from phy•ical need•, and purity. 301
302
In the Vilna edition, the spirit of the Lord hovering over the face of the water• i• •aid to be the •pirit of the Me••iah 17n 7w 1rr1, rr,wnn. That ver•ion, a• a. Chanokh Zundel note• in hi• commentary Etz Yo•ef, i• clo•er to the contextual •en•e of the prooftext from I•a.ll, which •peak• of the ••hoot of the •tock of Je••e;• but the •urrounding pa••age• in Bere•hit Rabah 8:1 are entirely to do with the fir•t human being, a• i• the aaidra•hic rejoinder to the quoted verse, •o that an original reading of •fir•t aaan, • a• cho••n by Albeck, rather than •aae••iah•, i• mo•t likely.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
258
[Xn a man] the white is from the male, out of which brain and bones and sinews are formed; and the red is from the female, out of which the skin and the flesh and the blood are made; and the spirit and the life and the soul are from the Holy One, blessed be He. Thus all three have a share in him. yKilayim 8:4 (31c) This Yerushalmi source portrays a tripartite formation of each human
being.
Earthly
parents
being
absent
from
Adam's
conception, the prototypical midrashic account of the first man's genesis, and of his nature, is dual: 1n
~,,~,,
o,Jlnnn~
1n
~,,~,
n,,,~,
,nw
,~,,,
o,J,,'nm
"And He formed (,~,,, -- with two letters 'yud')" [indicates] two formations--a formation [in the nature] of those below and a formation [in the nature] of those on high[ ••• ] Bereshit Rabah 14:3 The midrash just quoted is based on the verb featured
in Genesis'
,~,
second creation account.
(form),
A similar
midrash, in Bereshit Rabah 12: 8, where it is anonymous, and in Vayikra Rabah 9:9, in the name of R. Shimon b. Chalafta (a Tana of the time of the Mishnah's compilation), builds on the verb featured in the first creation
account--N,~
(create).
The passaqe is framed as a homily in praise of peace, and represents Adam's creation as a reconciliation of the heavens and the earth. n,Jlnnn'2
The midrash begins, nN
n,J1,'2U~
l,J. C1'2W
~wu
~"~i7~
lnJ.W:JW 01'2W '21il
ln'21U--"Great is peace, for
when the Holy One Blessed be He created His world, He made peace between the realm on high and that below."
The account
goes on to enumerate the creations of each of the six days,
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
251
alternately identifying the creations of each day as heavenly or earthly (the heavenly firmament on the second day, gathering of the waters on the third day, and so on).
the This
progression leads to a problem on the sixth day: lU 1n1M M11~ ,JN OM 1UM DiM n1M1~~ M~ ,WW~ OM nrrM nM,1~ D,Jlnrrnn lU 0,~1 D,ll,~Un ,,n ~u o, ~, o, Jlnnnn , 1n o, Jlnrrnn tn 1n1M i"nn D,J1nnnn 1n1 D,l,,~un 1n 1M1~ nwu nn nrrM nN,,~ D,Jlnrrnn 1n1 nniMn 1n 19U DiMn nM o,n~M •n ,~,,, o,J,,~un 1n o,,rr nnwl ,,9M~ rrg,,
D,ll,~Dn M11~ ,JM o, Jl, ~un
on the sixth day, when He came to create man, he said: If I create him from the realm on high, the ones on high will be more numerous than those below. If I create him from the realm below, thos• below will be more numerous than those on high. What did He do? He created him from the realm on High and from that below. Thus it is said, "And God fashioned the man, dust from the earth"--from the realm below--"and blew in his nostrils the breath of life"--from the realm above (Gen.2:7). Man,
in this conception,
is a creature caught between the
heavenly and the earthly realms.
By nature he partakes of
both. In the midrashim above, the human soul is set apart as a heavenly being. of R.
Levi.,
Similarly, in Vayikra Rabah 4:2, in the name
a man and his soul are likened to a townsman
married to a royal daughter: ll,M ou DiN n~un~n
~ug,w
M,nw
nn
nn~
~3
13
1n~1rr
D,3~n
,i,
M,nw
n~
M~,,
D~lD
~3
,liUn
,g~
nn~
n~,3NUW
1n~1rr
,i,
9"UM M~,,
ll,M 1W9l--"He might feed her
all the dainties of the world and yet never fully discharge his obligation (to sustain her]. royal daughter.
Why not?
Because she is a
So too, as much (good] as a man does with his
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
210
soul be never fulfills his obliqation.
Why?
Because she [the
soul] is from above." The notion of a heavenly soul instilled in an earthly body does not on its own indicate a concept of anqelic Israel. Other sources havinq to do with man's nature,
while still
presentinq him as pulled between to opposite poles of oriqinal identity, are sliqhtly more holistic, so to speak, in their conception of man's partial, or potential anqelic character. Bereshit Rabah 14:3,
for example,
repeated midrash on Gen.1:27 Rabah itself,
in
a: 11)
continues with an oft-
(reduplicated within Bereshit
enumeratinq four anqelic and four
animal aspects in Adam: ll~11 ~~, 1J Ml,Jn ,~1 cwJ ~,nrrJ 1~ nw1~, ,~1 ,ron'1n ~D~1M1 ~'1llll'1n n1,1~ DJ1M ,~ N1~ ,1nM M"1 D,'1'1l '1,Ull1 ,~n~J~ ~~11 ~19 ,~n~~~ ~n1W1 '1~1M 1J1n ,n1w~ ,~M'1n~ 1n1u ,~'1un'1n ,~n~~J nn1 ,~n~~~ ,~N'1n~ ~M111 ,n1W~ ,JM'1ll~ nD1 1~ W, ,n1W~ ,~M'1ll~ ow~
n1w~
R. Yehoshua b. Nehemiah in the name of R. Chaninah b. Yitzhak and the Rabbis in the name of R. Eliezer say: He created in (Man] four 'creations' [in the nature of] those on hiqh and four [in the nature] of those below. He eats and drinks like a beast, reproduces like a beast, defecates like a beast, and dies like a beast; (yet,] (in the nature] of those on hiqh, he stands like the ministerinq anqels, speaks like the ministerinq anqels, there is understandinq in him as in the minister inq anqels, and he sees like the ministerinq anqels. After a brief, interpolated, anonymous remark, distinquishinq hWDan from animal seeinq,
the text in Bereshit
Rabah 14: 3
continues as follows: n11li~1
D'1~J
1M1Jl D,l1,•nm MITM '1 CWJ ,Mi9n '1 ,D,J11 0,19 O,J1nnni11 1,J11 1,19 1l,M1 n1n1J1 o'1~~ 1n1M N11J ,l,1i1 i1"~~i1 1nM ,n1n1~1 o'1~~ 1M1~l
M'11
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
2&1
,,
,O,Jlnnn~ 1n ~~,, ~,9 ,O,Jl,7D~ 1n 1n lnlM ,JN M,l~ OM~·~~~ ,nM ,,nM MITM M7M ,,rr lJ,Ml nn Ml~ c,Jlnrrn~ 1n ,nn lJ,Ml ,rr n1n, Nun, oM c,Jlnrrn~ 1n1 c,J,,7n~ 1n 1n1M M,,~ ,JM ~,n, Mt:Jn, M7 OMl ow~
,Mi9n
,~,
Ml~ O,Jl,7D~ ,,~
R. Tifdai in the name of R. Acha said: The ones on high [the angels] were created in the [divine] image and likeness, and do not reproduce, and the ones below [the animals] reproduce and were not created in the [divine] image and likeness. Said the Holy one Blessed be He: I shall now create him (man] in the [divine] image and likeness, (in the nature] of those on high, and let him reproduce, [in the nature] of those below. R. Tifdai in the name of R. Acha said: Said the Holy one Blessed be He: If I create him [in the nature] of those on high he shall live and not die; if [in the nature] of those below he shall die and not live. Rather, I shall create him [in the nature] of those on high and of those below; if he sins he will die, and if not he shall live. This continuation of themidrash, especially the second of its segments attributed to R. Tifdai, further develops the very angel-like identity of the first man. he was intended,
from the beginning,
Despite the fact that to reproduce as the
animals do, had he not transgressed, he might have enjoyed the eternal life of the angels in addition to his other angelic attributes. against sin,
Certainly this midrashic segment is a homily but
it
is also a
divinely intended nature of man.
statement concerning the In brief: man is intended to
be an angel of the earth--a standing, speakinq, understanding, seeing creature of the divine will, enjoyinq the possibility of eternity, although he is shaped from the elements below; however, should he fail in his adherence to the divine will, he will revert to the earthly aspect of his nature.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
2'2
The same contingent angelic identity of man is expressed in the Sifrei on Deuteronomy (piska 306), although in more starkly dualistic terms--and there the contingt=nt angelic identity is also more clearly generalized beyond the first Adam: DW9J C 1 nWi1 1n 1M1~Jw n1, 1~ 7:J 1n1 M , ,n,c '1 i, il 09111 CW9J p1Mi1 1n 1M1~JW n1 1 1~ 7J1 C 1 nWil 1n 09111 p1Mi1 1n 19111 D1 nwil 1n 1W9JW ilT CIMn p1n p1Mil 1n M1il 1 1il D 1 0W~W 1 1 ~M 11~1 ilWD1 il11n CIM ilWD OM l:J 1 97 D1 il7M ,n1nM 1 JM (1 ~g D1 7iln) 1nMJW il7Dn 7w n1,1~:1 1 1 ~M 11~1 ilWD M71 il11n ilWD M7 D:J7:J 11 1 7D 1 J~1 CnM 1JM (T ~g C 1 7iln) 1nMJW ilon 7w n1,1~:J M1il 1 1il c,nw~w .11n1nn DIM:J
R. Simai [elsewhere called 'the most holy'] said: All created beings that were created from the earth, their soul and body are from the earth, except man, whose soul is from heaven and his body from the earth. Therefore, if be observed the Torah and did the will of his Father in heaven, he is like the beings [of heaven] above, for Scripture states, 'I said: Ye are godlike beings, and all of you sons of the Most High' (Ps.82:6). But if he did not observe the Torah nor do the will of his Father in heaven, he is like the creatures of [earth] below, as it is said, 'Nevertheless you shall die like men.' Not all of Adam's descendants, according to this midrasb, but those possessed of God's Torah, are able to be like the angels above, for they best employ their souls which are from the angelic realm above. I
emphasize the
"like"
in the
Sifrei-passage above,
because we must constantly reconsider the possibility of mere analogy,
simile,
or imitation when examining the rabbinic
likenings of man to the angels.
Reduction of the theme of
angelic Israel to a matter of imitation and analogy seems to be one of the ways in which nascent rabbinism absorbed and
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
213
tamed the potentially radicalizing notion of Israel's being an angelic elect and creatures of the heavens.
At the same time,
it is clear that the " ••• J" that we translate to "as" or "like" can express antic identity--a possibility considered by the early rabbinic exegetes themselves, with regard to the biblical text and in connection with our theme, especially in connection with Gen. 3:22.
There God observes that the first
man has become "like one of us," and Bereshit Rabah 21, which treats that verse, opens as follows: :PnJ
1 111 1Jnn "TnNJ i1,i1 tliNi1 lil O,i17M 'i1 1nM,1 inN 1nM,1 1~in W1i~ inM UnWN1 (n 7M,Ji) O"TN i1T ,,n,J97 o7,~u 011,n [ ••• ] '1l1 1~"Tni1 ,J1n797 n1wi1 ,JM7nn o,J97 1n~,nn i1n,i1w 11WM1il 1
W1i~
"Then God said, Behold, the man is become as one of us ••• " It is written, "Then I heard a holy one speakinq; and another holy one said to that certain one (lepalmoni) who spoke ••• " (Dan.8:13). [ ••• ] Akilas interpreted it: [He spoke to] the one who was farther inward (lepenimi), which was Adam, whose partition was inward of that of the ministering angels. This midrash embraces and expands upon the apocalyptic vision of Daniel 7 and 8, adding Adam to that vision's retinue of heavenly ministers, and adding him in a cardinal position, more proximal to God than the angels.
This midrash attaches
celestial significance to the ancestral Adam; it speaks to the ultimate importance of the human beinq among all of God's servants; and perhaps it holds out the possibility of heavenly reward to Adam's worthy descendants. that,
Yet one might arque
by itself, this midrash from Bereshit Rabah 21 says
little about affinity between living human beinqs and the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
angels.
The souls of the departed and the as-yet-unborn are
frequently to be found hovering around the divine throne in apocalyptic literature, as we have seen.
one might suggest
that the heavenly abode of the unborn and departed souls indicates a distance and a gulf between the livinq and the angels that shall
~an
discuss
only be traversed at birth and death. further
in a
different seqment,
(As we
a
midrash
attributed toR. Aba in Deuteronomy Rabah 12 promises that the partition of the riqhteous in the world to come will be more inward
than
that
of
the
ministerinq
angels--an
exact
recapitulation of Adam's celestial status, but one which seems to remove normal human life, in the present world, from the equation.) On the other hand, we do not have to look far afield from Bereshit Rabah 21:1 to find rabbinic claims that the newly created Adam enjoyed angelic status during his earthly life. A series of interpretations in Bereshit Rabah 21:5 explores the possibilities of the divine remark that the man "is become as one of us" to the loftiest extreme.
Let us examine the
midrashim in Bereshit Rabah 21:5 piece by piece.
The seqment
begins: n1w~
1111
,~M~nn
D,,~
inM~
1Jnn
inM~
1Jnn irrM~ ~,~ 111 0,~11 ,JW
~,~
CiM~
1~
0199
,~1
w11
0199 1,,, D"1 ~"M DiM~ 1~ c,,~n ~nM ~n ~"M 1,J9~ D1~n~ 17 1nJW ~"M n1nM 111 1~ 11,~1 n1n~
R. Papos interpreted: "Lo the man is become as one of us" (Gen,3:22)--as one of the ministering angels.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
215
R. Akiba said to him: Enough, Papos! He said to him: What then do you make of "Lo the man is become as one of us•? He said to him: [It means] that the divine placed before him two paths--the path of life and the path of death, and he chose the other path. R. Akiba's cautionary rebuke suggests an effort to quell the equation of Adam with the angels; but, as we shall see, R. Akiba's silencing interjection is entirely undermined by the even more audacious interpretations that follow after,
so
that, literarily, the inclusion and placement of R. Akiba's stern hushing only gives the entire question and sequence of interpretations a fascinating air of danger and esotericism. R. Akiba's own alternate interpretation, which is much less literal
than the
reading of R.
Papos,
might be stronger
evidence for a countertradition seeking to subdue speculation on the angelic Adam.
In any event, the interpretations next
in line (both based on the scriptural words 1Jnn iiTNJ "as one of us") undercut R. Akiba's apparent caution: c,,~i)
Wl~~
,nNJW
iiTN W1 N
c~lD
~w
~J~l
(1
~
1
~1
1i 1 IT 1 J ,nN 11n,o 1~ ~il~, ,~, iiTN '~ 1J 1 ~~N '~ ~N,W 1 DnW {1 ~N 1 Ji) ,nNJW ~N,,~lJ ,,nN lJ~,
~,J,n ~ 1 Wl~~i
N~n~
l
1
l~J
,C 1 i~~
R. Yehudah bar Simon said: As the Unique One of the Universe, as it is said, "Hear o Israel, the Lord our God, the Lord is One. " The Rabbis say: As [the angel] Gabriel, as it is said, "And one man in the midst of them, clothed in linen" (Ezek.9:2)--like a snail, whose garment is part and parcel of its body. R. Yehuda bar Simon's contention is that Adam shares in an affinity of nature with God Himself.
The opinion attributed
to the Rabbis suqqests that what miqht seem merely an outward
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
angelic aspect in man is actually a
true likeness to the We have
highest angels that is essential to man's being.
already seen in earlier sources, and we will continue to see in this chapter, the importance of the robe or garment as a sign of angelic identity.
The analogy to the snail in the
passage above--whose 'garment' is integral to its self--seems to express the notion that man's ability to seem angelic is more
than
a
masquerade
or
imitation;
it
is
rather
an
expression of his integral identity, his actual nature. Finally, with regard to Bereshit Rabah 21:5, we should take note of the last opinions in the sequence:
cuo cuo
,~,~NJ 1nN NJ,Jrr ,~, cw~ ~,J,~ ,~, n1n cno c1uo~ ,,N, ~,~ N~ ~T ~N n1n ~,~w 1nr ~J 1nNT l,Jrr ,~, cw~ ~,J,~ ,~,T ~,nuT N,~ D11 ~10 nUT~ lnU~~ lJnn ~~OJW ll,Jl TITNJ ~,~ CTN N~
~T
~n
R. Berachiah in the name of R. Chanina said: Like Elijah. Just as this one [Elijah] did not taste death, so too the other [Adam] was fit not to taste death. This accords with the view of R. Berachiah in the name of R. Chanin, who said: so long as there was [only] Adam, he was as the One; and when his rib was taken from him, it was "to know good and evil." All of the comments in the sequence in Bereshit Rabah 21:5, with the exception of R. Akiba's have a common force:
All of
these interpretations tend toward the view that man enjoys--or enjoyed--an actual kinship and ontological affinity with the inhabitants of the heavens. We should note that, in the last midrash from Bereshit Rabah 21:5 quoted above, the existence of woman is seen as compromising
the
angelic
identity of man--originally
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
and
217
continually.
By contrast,
some aqadot that we shall see
ascribe anqelic identity to both members of the oriqinal human pair.
Still, the tradition above resonates with a frequently
repeated
midrash
(whose
earliest
version
is
probably
in
Pesikta Rabati) in which the three commandments principally associated with women--chalah,
nidah,
and the liqhtinq of
sabbath and festival liqhts--are interpreted as punishments for woman's corruption of the first man, who was intended to be the blood, the liqht, and the pure meal-offerinq of the world.
Women, who diapered our midrashists when they were
infants, who fed them, and who, as wives, cohabited with them sexually, were perhaps in the best position to know just how far short of the anqelic ideal their menfolk fell.
At least
we can suppose that this was an apprehension on the part of some midrashists,
and we can see that the female was not
forqiven by them for it. A qreat many midrashim concerninq the first human in the Garden of Eden demonstrate quite clearly that early rabbinism included in its thouqht the concept of the oriqinal Adam's beinq an anqelic creature.
I have already mentioned susan
Niditch's writinq on the •cosmic Adam"--the fiqure of the first human beinq stretchinq from the earth to the heavens or from one end of the cosmos to the other, which appears in
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
218
several midrashim. 303
Niditch notes that Alexander Altman
and Louis Ginzberq believed this motif to be influenced by gnosticism. 304
she
"Yet,"
writes,
"when
one
looks
carefully ••• the gnostic connection quickly fades. " 305 Having considering gnostic parallels, she observes: "[The Rabbis'] Adam
owes
nothing
to
that
of
the
gnostics
and,
more
importantly ••• descriptions of him have great relevance for understanding the Rabbinic world-view itself, quite apart from any anti-gnostic polemic. " 306
Niditch concludes:
It would seem therefore most fruitful to study the world-spanner within its own Rabbinic context. In fact, it belongs to a larger symbol system which reflects the Rabbis' sense of themselves, their conflicts, and their problems. The image of the world-spanner contributes to, and creates, a certain view of the world's order and helps those for whom it was meaningful to deal with the "ambiguities puzzles and paradoxes" 307 of existence. Indeed, to know the first man is to learn about the nature of all men. " 308
303
Niditch (1983). The midrashim in question include Bereshit Rabah 21:3 in the name of R. Yehoshua b. R. Chanina and R. Yehudah b. R. Shimon in R. Eleazar• s name, where prooftaxta are given to show that Adam extended from Baat to Weat and from North to South, and "filled the hollow spaces of the world." These midrashim alao include Vayikra Rabbah 14:1, 18:1. 304
Niditch, pp. 137-138.
305
Niditch, p. 138.
306
Niditch, pp. 138-139.
307 Here Niditch is quoting Geertz, in "Religion as a CUltural Syatem", The Ineerpreeaeion of Culeur•• (New York: 1974) p. 108. 308
Niditch, p. 139.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
211
Niditch' s interpretation of the rabbinic interest in a cosmosspanning-Adam is, to a large extent, a fiC)Urative reading.
In
her interpretation the cosmos-spanning Adam is "a symbolic bridge between oppositions of this world and the world to come, "
a
"temporal and ethical mediator of certain human
possibilities. " 309 Man can span two worlds; he can link the present and the future, the other-worldly and the thisworldly. He is thus the Levi-straussian intermediary who partakes of each side of a dichotomy, thereby rendering bearable the tension between them. " 310 I would not deny that Nidditch's formulation expresses thoughts that are fundamental to classical rabbinism--perhaps even deep and driving reasons for the absorption of the image of the cosmos-spanning Adam into various midrashim.
Still I
think we must be wary of too much abstraction, or at least be careful
to
acknowledge
that
abstraction
satisfied all the tradents of our texts. have thought--like their
forbears
would
not
have
Many of them seem to
of the apocalyptic and
Qumran-works--in terms of real possibilities of experience and in terms
of
anticipated changes
and outcomes
in worldly
events.
309
Hiditch, p. 142.
310
Hiddich, p. 140. lfidditch al•o ob•erv•• that, in the rabbinic conception, •thi• po•itive and de•irable form of mediation i• dependent upon what (man] doe• about the very paradox of hi• nature; that i•, hi• potential to choo•e the good and the bad• (p. 140).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
270
The tradition in Bereshit Rabah 8:1 (and quite a
few
parallel sources 311 ) that God set up the first human being as a
lifeless, giant golem,
heavens,
and
stretching from the earth to the
then breathed
into him
the soul,
certainly
appeals to symbolic interpretation; but stretching the first man up to the heavens also provides a way, in concrete terms, around the disinclination of some early rabbis to say that God ever
descended
into
the
earthly
world. 312
Even
this
exegetical move, however, would be untenable were there not comfort with the notion of mankind's being, species of angel. 313
originally,
a
Such comfort comes across quite clearly
in a rather blunt and straightforward exegetical statement about Adam's first offspring in Bereshit Rabah 24:6: n11~1n D,J1WM1~
1,M1
n11~1n
l,~M
DIM
n11~1n
n1~~M
190 1~
~T
~n1
This is the book of the generations of Adam" (Gen.S:l)-These are the toledot (the ones geraerated in the usual fashion) , while the first ones were not toledot. What were they? Divinities (elobot, celestial beings)!
311 The tradition ia repeated thrice in Bereshit Rabah, as well as in bChaqiqah, bSanhedrin, and Midraah on Psalms. 312
aeveral
We will obaerve thia reluctance to say that God descended in concerning Sinai)
midraah~
313
We ahould alao note a further tradition about Adam as a gole18 that appear• right after a repetition of the cosmoa-apanning motif in Geneaia Rabbah 24: 2. In thia midraah Adam ia granted aupernatural knowledge of future eventa. There ia a notable aimilarity between thia account of the future revealed to Adam and aimilar account• of God • • revelation of the future to lloaea in the context of midraah~ that feature lloaea• heavenly journey and manifestation of angelic attributea, aa we ahall • - · In view of what we have already aeen in apocalyptic literature, we may alao obaerve that ace••• to knowledge of the future can be a aign of admiaaion to the company of angela.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
271
The angels themselves shared the impression of Adam as a divine
being,
according to a
tradition
attributed to R.
Hoshaia in Bereshit Rabah 8:10: ,~M~n 1D~ 11WN1o DiM o"~~o M1~W oDW~ N,DWlo ,~1 1nN ,,~w D1~19N1 1~n~ ~wn Wli~ ,,Jg~ 1n1~ 1w~~, n1w~ N~l 1J,n1i 1~n~ 1n1~ 1,w~~n ~J,ino ,J~ ,,~, 1,~,,~~
p1TT
1N,~1~1
19TTi
1~no
~WD
~n
l~T,N
1,Di1,
,,~
o"~~~ N1~W ~DW~ 1~ D1J19,N Ml~W ~J~ 1Di,1 1,~11~~ l,Jg~ 1n1~ 1W~~1 n1W~ ,JM~n 1~ 1D~ 11WN1~ DiM nN ~~~ 1Di, 1 ~ni1n 1 ,~D ~,g~ ~·~ Wli~~ ~WD ~n Wli~ CiM~ 1n OJ~ l~iTT {~ ~,DW,) ~,n~i Ml~ Mi~ DiM Ml~W Ml~
~WTTJ
~n~
,J
19M~
~nWJ
1WM
Said R. Hoshaia: When the Holy One Blessed be He created the first man, the ministering angels mistook and wished to say before him, "Holy!" An analogy may be drawn to a king and a governor who sat in a chariot {1,J11~~) and the people of the land wished to say before the king, "Domino! [the sovereign! ] " but did not know which one he was. So too, when the Holy One Blessed be He created the first man, the ministering angels mistook and wished to say before him, "Holy!" What did the Holy One Blessed be He do? He cast a deep sleep upon him, and then all knew that he was a man. Thus it is written, "Cease ye from man, in whose nostrils is breath, for as what is he accounted?" {Isa.2:22). The closing doubly.
prooftext of this
midrash
seems to
function
on the one hand, it corrects the error of the angels
and reminds of the fragility of earthly man--as what, after all, is he to be reckoned?
On the other hand, in view of the
angels' mistake, the prooftext also reads as though it said, "Do not disparage man, for, after all, as what great being may he, divinely soul-endowed, be reckoned!" The angels might well be forgiven their overestimation of Adam in view of a tradition attributed to Yirmiyah b. Ilai in
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
272
Vayikra Rabah 11:1.
His coJDJDentary on Wisdom's invitation in
the ninth chapter of Proverbs runs as follows: DiN i1T N1j2n iPn111ll iln~W [ ••• ] ,Nll~N 1J. il,n,, '1 nli1~N 1n1N N1i21 i1"J.i2i1 lO,Oi1W n1i2 ,n11n ,91 ~u ,i11nl n,i1~N~ nn,,il, i"i1i1
R. Yirmiyah b. Ilai interpreted ( ••• ] "She hath sent forth... she calleth her servants" (Prov.9:11)--This alludes to Adam and Eve. "On the winq of the heiqhts of the city" (Prov.9:11)--this means that the Holy One, blessed be He, enabled them to fly and desiqnated them divinities, as it is written, "And you shall be as God" (Gen.3:5) In its context, in Vayikra Rabah, this midrash functions as a preamble to a tradition in the name of Bar Kaparah (in 11:3) that
attributes
exactly the
same
ability
exactly the same words, to Israel at Sinai.
and
status,
in
We will deal with
Israel's reqaininq of anqelic status at Sinai at lenqth in a separate section.
At this point, it is important to note that
the application to Israel at Sinai of the very same words and Wisdom-prooftexts just applied to Adam helps make the point that human anqelic identity is conceived as continqent upon access and adherence to the divine will. At Sinai, the sin of the Golden calf brinqs an end to Israel's realization of anqelic identity, as we shall see.
In
the qarden, of course, the snake is to blame, but the turns of phrase and the prooftexts in the continuation of Vayikra Rabah 11:1 aqain almost exactly parallel the scene at Sinai in 11:3.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
273
lnDi
~w
1rr,J~
1~ ~1nM ~~ 314
1~
110, ,ng ,n ~T~ rr~w~ ~~ 1rrM wrrJ ~w lnDi lrrM 1~~~, ~·~~~ ~nM 19D ,~ (l /n,WMl~/ DW)
~l~
1~ ~,~w~ .~1wn 19D ~Ml
1orr
After all this exaltation, "Whoever is simple, let him turn in here" (Prov.9:4)--They forsook the will of God and went after the will of the snake. 315 For this reason, "She said to him: "One who lacks understanding," (midrashic reading of Prov.9:16), "You are dust and to dust you will return" (Gen.J:19). The
rejoining
exposition
in
11:1
suggests
that
the
mortality decreed for Adam need not be the fate of all his progeny
(at least not of his elect descendants,
Israel) •
Elsewhere in Vayikra Rabah a midrash attributed to R. Yehudah suggests
that
Adam's
original,
angel-like
status
is
perennially available to be realized fully by the rare mortal who can prove worthy of it: llWMl~ DiM N~rr M~ l~NW 1~~ ~nM 1~ 11nM D~lD~ D~1D~
1~ 1nN, DN lnlM ~il~, '1 D,~l ,rr ~,~ pD~ lnlMn ~~Ml
DiN
D,~l
,rr
Nl~
N~rr
M~W
l~,~N
~,~
R. Yehuda says: If a man tells you that the first man, had he not sinned and eaten from that tree, would have lived and endured forever, you answer him that there has already been the case of Elijah, who did not sin, and he lives and endures forever. Vayikra Rabah 27:4 This
midrash
seems
immortality and his
to
suggest
elevation
that to
Elijah
the
achieves
heavens
not
his
by an
extraordinary divine dispensation, but rather by virtue of an
314 ~M,W,
11n1nn
The para1lel in 11:3, •et at Sinai, read•
l,~~M
~~M
(~~ n1~)
n~M3
13M
(~9 n,~~)
~lD~
1~
l,nMl ~·~~~ ~W ~,nK 1J ~,~w~.
lnD~
,~mn)
liT,l~
~T~ rr~~ ~3 lnM
~l~
us In 11:3, after the golden calf.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
,,0,
,09 ,n (0
274
oriqinal, immortal human nature that he is able to realize or retain by remaininq free from sin. Two more midrashim that make their first appearances in Bereshit Rabah are particularly fascinated with the anqelic or divine stature of Adam. words
of
Gen. 3:22 in
a
are
manner
turned that
lost
In Bereshit Rabah 21:2 the
once more aqqrandizes
(possibly Adam's
by R.
oriqinal
stature: DIM~
1~
C,~~M
'~
1nM,1
1,~D
ll1~n
.1Jnn IITJ
~,nn~
~1~
1IT~WW
11,J
,1Jnn IITMJ
~,~
Once (God] had sent him out (of the Garden] He beqan to bewail him--"And the Lord said, Lo the man was as one of us." Adam's lost stature is also the subject of a Bereshit Rabah
11:2,
attributed
to
R.
Ami
in
midrash in the
Vilna
edition, but in other versions to R. Asi and R. Yosi: CDC ~n , 1nll 111 J.J 1~ M~ 11WM1~ CIM ,nM '1 1nM1 , 1n1J n1n~J.J ~wnJ 1 ,~, ~J. ,~,J. CIM1 (en c,~~n) 1Jnn ~u,J nJ.w ,M~1n1 ,1nu 111J.J 1~ ,,nM 1JJ.11 liD lln 11101
,,,T
R. Ami said: the glory of the first man did not stay the night with him. How do we know? "But man does not abide (lit. 'overnight'] in honor, he is like the beasts that perish" (Ps.49:13). But the Rabbis say: His glory did overnight with him, and at the close of the Sabbath his radiance was taken from him and (God] drove him out of the Garden of Eden. 317
316
It i• unclear whether or not the midra•h in que•tion i• the continuation of an expo•ition attributed to R. &una. 7 l1 In •ame locu• R. Shimon b. Yehudah mention• the luminarie• were •poilt (n1,1Mnn ,,~,~l) on the eve of the fir•t •abbath becau•e of the fir•t man•• tran•gre••ion, and were ami.tten ( 1i2,) at the clo•e of the Sabbath.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
275 (i1~~)
Glory
and radiance (1,T), often used in connection with
God and God's sbelchinab, suqqest that the status Adam loses in this passaqe is divine, or at least anqelic.
It is also worth
notinq especially that the Sabbath mitigates aqainst Adam's loss of qlory and radiance in this midrash.
Elsewhere we
shall see a rabbinic opinion that the Sabbath can bestow upon its observers an anqel-like aura. Lookinq toward themes to be explored below, we should also note that Adam is also considered to have been deprived of radiance in the frequently repeated aqadic theme of the seven thinqs that were taken from the first man after his transqression.
The
version
in
Bereshit
Rabah
12:6
is
attributed to R. Yudan in the name of R. Avin and lists the six thinqs n111Nn1,
as:
l'PNi1
n1191
['1Ni1
n1191
1nn1i71
1,
,n,
1, T
"his lustre, his life, his stature, the fruits of the
earth, the fruits of the tree, and the luminaries. nlls
The
fruits mentioned in this tradition seem mundane (man havinq been condemned to toil for his sustenance), but life, lustre, and stature seem more preternatural, and dominion over the luminaries certainly bespeaks celestial status.
Bemidbar
Rabah
will
13: 12
asserts
that
these
same
six
thinqs
be
returned by the Messiah--another indication that the exalted
ns The tradition appear• i.n &are•hit Rabah 12: 6; Bemidbar Rabah 13:12; Ruth Rabab 8:3; Ya1kut Bere•hit 17, Shofet~ 59, and Ruth 609.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
status
Israel
awaiting
in
the
is
world-to-come
a
recapitulation of Adam's angelic status in the garden. 319 Finally, in this segment on Adam, we should examine one more midrashic source havinq to do with the creation of the first man, included in Bereshit Rabah 2:2.
This aqadah is
based upon the second verse of Genesis, and takes the tohu vavohu
of
the
primordial
"confused and confounded."
earth
to
mean
something
In this midrash,
like
a perplexity
experienced by the earth upon seeinq the disparity between humankind and the anqels on hiqh seems almost to indict God for
an
injustice,
for
denyinq
humankind
its
riqhtful
privileqes and place amonq the celestials: 1-,n-, -,wn 1nN lil::lN '1 11n,o 1:1 ilili, '11 lil::lN '1 inN -,D nnN ,n,O::ll nnN ,llD::l Oil,JW O,i::lD '::l ,-, ilJ~W -,JlNl Dl, il,il,W 1Tl inN -,Dl ll,n,on llT,l il,il,W 1Tl llT,l ilT nnN ,n,O::l ll,lW 1nN Nill::ll Nilln lnlN ,-, ::lW, Nilln p1Ni1 il::lW, lJ -,JlN ,l,N Dl, ,l,N ON ,lNl ll,ncn nnN n::l::l 1N1::lJ D,llnnnill O,ll,-,Dil i11nN Nill::ll O,Dl, Ol,N ON O,llnnnil ill,JWil l,Tn l,llT,l O,ll,-,Dil ,-, ill~w 1-,n-, 1nN 11n,o 1:1 ililil, 1 NilnnN o,_,JlN oJ,N TlTn N-,w 1Tl nnN -,u nnN ,n,c::ll ,llD::l lil,nw n1n9w '::l Nilln iln9W ilnlN il-, il::lW, l,i11,C 1Tl nnN -,Dl l,C-,9n ilN~l, ill,N lT nnN ,n,O::ll nnN ,llD::l ll,lW i11nN Nill::ll Nilln p1Nil il::lW, 1J l,i11,0 1Tll ,_,lll 1,l:J-,9n ilTTl nnN n::l::l 1N1::lJ D,llnnnill O,ll,-,Dil i11nN Nill::ll lilln iln,il p1Ni11 lJ,g-, o,nn D,Jlnnnill o,,n o,J,,.,Di1 lil::ll
R. Abahu and R. Yehuda b. Simon parables]: R. Abahu said: The matter to a king who purchased two slaves, same impoverished situation and decreed that the one should be
(each offered may be likened both from the station. He fed from the
319
In connection with the world-to-come, it is intriguing to note the tradition of God's granting Adam a number of splendid canopies (mgm) in the Garden of Bden--thirt-n according to Vayikra Rabah 20:2, ten according to Pirkei Derabbi Bli.ezer ll. Multiple canopies are also promi.sed to the righteous in the world to come.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
277
treasury, and he decreed that the other toil for his food. The latter sat confused and confounded, and said, Both of us are of the same station, but this one is fed from the treasury while I must toil for my food. So too the earth sat confused and confounded, and said, The ones on high and the ones below were created all at once, (yet] the ones on high are sustained by the radiance of the sbekhinah while the-ones below, if they do not toil do not eat. R. Yehudah b. Simon said [the matter can be likened] to a king who purchased two maidservants, both from the same impoverished situation and station. He decreed that one not move from the palace, and he decreed harsh labor for the other. The latter sat confused and confounded, and said, Both of us are of the same station, but this one does not move from the palace, while harsh work has been decreed for me. So too the earth sat confused and confounded and said, The ones on high and the ones below were created all at once, yet the ones on high live while the ones below die. Therefore, "the earth sat confused and confounded (tobu vavobu)." The
indicting
narratives impartial
bewilderment
expressed
in
is displaced onto the earth, Yet
bystander.
the
these
agadic
as an apparently
midrashim
seem
rather ...to
represent the pathos of an angelic species condemned to live an earthly existence.
The inequitably treated slave and
maidservant rail against the injustice of their fates.
So
too, the midrashists behind this agadah seem to decry their own
lots.
exaltation;
These
sages
are
blessed
with
a
taste
for
they feel affinity with their counterparts on
high; yet, incomprehensibly, as though a cosmic error had been made, they find themselves condemned to the ignominy of life upon the earth.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
278
Ada.' s Heirs: !'be
~~Dn~
1n1,i
Allge~ic
Patriarchs oL
N~nw C~1D~ n1~N
1W~~
Israe~
l~,N
OITJ9
,~1
1nN
l,~,J,
,,~
R. Pinchas said: Had the patriarchs desired their abode to be in heaven, they could have had their wish. Midrash on Psalms 16:2
In Bemidbar Rabah 18:21 we find the following midrash: ~nNWJ ~JW T"n~ ~~D, ~JW 9"~ ~rr~, p1N~ c,nw l~~n 1J1 c,Jw ,nw1 ~JW
~JW ~·u~ C~1JN ,n, ·~ N~nJ 1~~1J
n1Nn
The days of Abraham amounted to one hundred and seventy-five years, those of Isaac to a hundred and eighty years, and those of Jacob to a hundred and forty-seven years. If you add them all together, the total is five hundred and two. This is also the distance between heaven and earth. Just as the giant Adam spans the heavens and the earth in midrashim
we
have
seen,
so
too
the
lives
of
Israel's
patriarchs constitute a conceptual bridge between the world on high and the world below.
This particular,
sounding agadah is quite abstract. focus
primarily
widespread
upon
concept
midrashic
of
Israel's
rather late-
In this segment we shall sources
that
progenitors
indicate as
a
actually
expressing, in their natures and their lives, heavenly as well as earthly realities. we
have
just
seen
that
classical
rabbinic
midrash
preserves the notion of an Adam who is first created as an earthly anqel, so to speak.
He is a beinq made from elements
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
271
below,
but,
nonetheless in the likeness of God, and he is
possessed of marvelous attributes, so as to be akin, and by some accounts even superior, to the celestials.
We have seen
Adam depicted as a radiant, gigantic, awesome being, capable of flight, and knowledge of the future, and impressive to even to the heavenly angels themselves. accounts,
as we have seen,
The classical rabbinic
see Adam diminished
original, angelic status after his transgression. investigation
of
pseudepiqraphic
texts
and
from his Still, our
of
Qumran's
literature should lead us to expect that a rabbinic concept of 'angelic
rsrael'
would
involve a
theme
of Adam's
having
bequeathed something of his innate, angelic identity, at least in potential, to his descendants--or, at least, to the elect line of Israel.
Indeed, just as we might expect, a number of
midrashim portray the patriarchs of Israel--especially Abraham (the
line's
first
progenitor)
and
Jacob
(the
eponymous
ancestor)--as partaking in various aspects of Adam's angelic stature and abilities. Similarities notwithstanding, we should note, first of all,
one
remarkable discrepancy
between
the pre-rabbinic
themes that we have seen and the rabbinic framing of Adam's angelic
legacy.
In Qumran's
literature
and
in
various
pseudepiqraphic texts, we saw a common narrative pattern in which the elect of Israel, as an earthly, angelic line, were pitted
against
an
opposed
faction
originating
with
the
rebellious fallen angels, who cohabited with human women and
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
280
introduced pernicious sciences and tendencies into earth1y affairs.
We must note that, by contrast, classical rabbinic
literature consistently and quite resolutely eschews the theme of
heavenly angels cohabiting with earthly women.
This
avoidance requires the explicit biblical account in the sixth chapter of Genesis to be exegetically deflated.
The earliest
evidence of this countertradition, so to speak, can be found in Genesis Rabah 26:5, where we read the following sequence of midrashim: , J :1
1 i1 '7
N1 i1
, Nrr 1 ,
1 :1
1 1lJDW
'1 0, i1 '7 Ni1
, J J.
1N1 , 1 N,J,,i N,i1'7N ,J:l 11i1'7 N1j11 1ND '7J'7 '7'7i1D ,Nrr1, 1:1 11lJDW '1 D,'711li1 1D i1J,NW i1~19 '7J ,Nrr, 1:1 11lJDW ,:11 ,Jn NJ,Jn ,:11 0,~'7Ni1 ,J:l 1n1N N11j1 i1D'71 ••• ~~19 i1J,N 1ll~ N'7:l o,n, 1:11i1W 1,1nN 11i1,11n W,i1'7 1:1 11nnw ,:111 '7lJ 11DlJ'7 ,iJ 1DN ,01, ,:11 OW:l NJn ,:11 1,110, N'7:11 '7W1 li1'7W 1'7o,w ,,J 1,1nN 1J:l1 n1J1:1wrri1 '7n1 n191i1ni1 Oi1,1rrN O,N:li1 n1111
"That the sons of God saw [the daughters of men ••• ]" {Gen.6:2). R. Shimon b. Yochai called them 'the sons of judges.' [Furthermore,] R. Shimon b. Yochai cursed all who called them the sons of God. R. Shimon b. Yochai said, if transgression does not proceed from the leaders, it is not real transgression •••• Now why are they called 'the sons of God?' R. Chanina and Reish Lakish said: because they lived a long time without trouble or suffering. R. Huna said in the name of R. Yosi's: This was so that men might understand [astronomical] cycles and calculations. The Rabbis said: This was so that they might receive their own punishment and that of the generations after them.
Vis a vis the biblical narrative of the D,i1'7N ,J:l in Gen 6:2, the reinterpretation given in the names of R. Chanina and Reish Lakish is unconvincingly mundane.
One is tempted to say
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
281
that the views
attributed to R.
Huna
and to the Rabbis
(presumably the rabbis of R. Huna's day) preserve shades of the
pre-rabbinic
respectively,
the
traditions theme
of
punishment due a whole line.
inasmuch astronomy
as and
they the
involve, notion
of
On the other hand, the position
attributed to R. Shimon b. Yochai quite clearly bespeaks early rabbinic opposition to the inherited narrative of corrupting, fallen angels. 320 Even in the absence of an opposed faction of
fallen
angels, however, classical rabbinic literature does preserve and develop a theme of Israel's ancestors as something like an angelic
line.
Moreover,
there are striking similarities
between the images and ideas of this rabbinic theme and those of the pre-rabbinic sources that we have seen, in which the proqenitors of Israel are angelified.
Let us now consider, in
turn, the ancestors of Israel as they appear in the relevant rabbinic sources.
Before turninq to Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob, we should note a tradition concerning Shem that reminds quite remarkably of imaqes we have encountered in the pseudepiqrapha.
The
tradition, in Bereshit Rabah 26, reads as follows: Ml~
ng,
Ml~WJ
M~~,
i~lll
ng, nMl ,j1,i~
on
~,~W
nM ow nM o,J~ ~w~w rrJ W11i ~nM ~~rm~ M'2M
320
i~,,,
'21il~
R. Shimeon b. Yochai • • interpretation al•o evidence• an important conflation of e~o~ with legal experta--that i•, with rabbi•.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
282 nN~-,
i,nn
1n1nn~
Cil1::1NW1 , ,-,D lnW il"::li2il iTP ,Wl , -,liln Wii2nil n,::1 ill::llWl il-,lil illli13::l wnww ,llnn
"Noah gave birth to three sons: Shem, Ham, and Japbeth" -- Surely Japeth was the eldest! But you may learn [from the order] that [Shem] was a righteous man; and that he was born circumcised; and that the Holy One, blessed be He, united His name particularly with him; and that Abraham was destined to arise from him; that he served in the high priesthood; and that the Temple was built in his territory. This agadah of Shem points toward several concepts that we will see developed in the sources of this chapter, and it harks back to pseudepic;rraphic themes as well. there
is
wonder
associated
with
Shem's
First of all,
birth,
and
his
congenitally circumcised state (like Adam) seems to indicate the entrance of a perfect or especially pure being into the world.
God "unites His name with Shem," and we shall see that
a theme of union between God's name and the names of the patriarchs
is
angelification.
elsewhere
connected
with
statements
of
Finally, the distinctiveness of Shem, in this
midrash, culminates with mention of the priesthood and the Temple, both of which figure prominently in the angelification of Israel
in rabbinic sources that we shall see.
Thus,
although this source in Bereshit Rabah does not explicitly angelify Shem, its similarity to pseudepic;rraphic accounts of the
wondrous
births
of
angelified
patriarchs,
and
its
indications of particulars that we shall see involved in the greater theme of angelic Israel, are remarkable enough that the passage cannot be ignored.
In view of what is to follow,
we might say that this source indicates that the angelic
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
283
legacy of Adam does not disappear entirely in the interval between the first man and Abraham, at least in this particular rabbinic retelling.
Tbe ADqelia Abrabaa In connection with Abraham, the idea of angelic humanity re-emerges in the rabbinic literature in force (although only with Jacob-Israel will it become fully fledged) •
A midrash in
Bemidbar Rabah 2:12 seems to speak directly to the seeminq hiatus in human- angelic identity between Adam and Abraham: Cil:l i,i1 N-,1 11i 0,1tml linll 0-,lllil nN il":li1i1 N1:1Ui:J il":li1i1 i19~ 11i c,1tmJ 1nN ill i1,i~ ciln inll N.,, n.,u1n W,W 1nNn il":l~i1 1nN1 ••• -,::1::1 p1N:l 11nJ il,ilW Cil1:1N nN 1nw Wi,~1 WNi1 lW:lJ-, 1n1N 1J,-,WilW ll,J ilnD-, nJ 1::1 ,-, i1J:l ,nN-, il":l~i1 l:l1,j7 i,n lJl,CJ:l inDl i1":li1il -,W n1,1:li1 nN C,JJn il,ill C,:lWl C,1:11D lT il,i11 ~iJ19il nN 1nJ1 C-,lD:l il":l~il -,W lil:lJ D,ilill ilJ,JWil ,9JJ nnn C,JN-,nJ il":li1il 0~ -,ll lnW
When the Holy one, blessed be He created the world, twenty generations came and went and no good was found in them, neither did a single righteous man rise up among them. Beyond the twenty generations, the Holy One, blessed be He, espied Abraham, deposited in the land of Babylon ••• The Holy One, blessed be He, thought, 'Can one be certain that he will have the power to endure?" When he was cast into the fiery furnace and sanctified the name of the Holy One, blessed be He, and thus stood his test, the Holy One, blessed be He, immediately brought him to the land of Israel where (Abraham] built an inn for himself, gave food to wayfarers, and brought God's creatures under the wings of the Shelchinab, making known the glory of the Holy One, blessed be He, throughout the world, and causing his own name to bear a resemblance to the name of the Holy one, blessed be He, like the angels. At the end of this passage, the renewal of human piety that Abraham represents is expressed in terms of a convergence of
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
284
the patriarch's reference
to
name with the name of God--presumably a
the
addition
of
tetraqamaton, to the name Abram. name becomes
anqel-like
midrashic conclusion.
is
the
letter
he,
the
The assertion that Abraham's
not an
obvious
or
(When anqelic names 1
rabbinic literature, resemble God's name, inclusion of the suffix el.)
from
inevitable
in classical
it is usually by
Thus this passaqe seems to
represent an especially deliberate desire to find commonality between Abraham and the anqels.
More to the point,
the
messaqe of the passaqe seems to be that by rediscoverinq the latent
riqhteousness
realizes
the
celestials.
possible
potential
in humanity 1
affinity
between
Abraham
mankind
alone
and
the
Like the anqels 1 Abraham sanctifies God's name
and makes God's qlory manifest and thereby comes to merit anqelic nomenclature.
The suqqestion of martyrdom in the
passaqe is also important to note; and certainly martyrdom is one rabbinic route to holiness.
On the other hand, Abraham's
anqelification appears less as a reward for passinq throuqh the fire than as a natural consequence of his more mundane acts of riqhteousness after that test.
The passaqe is less
remarkable for its reference to Abraham's miraculous trial by fire than for his discovery of anqelic potential in quotidian piety--a rather surprisinq suqqestion 1 that one miqht achieve anqelic
identity
throuqh
riqhteous
devotion
affairs.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
to
earthly
285
There
is
another midrashic
tradition
concerninq the
addition of a divine letter he to Abraham's name, which we find scattered throuqh the seqment of Bereshit Rabah devoted to the story of Abraham's miqration to Israel.
The tradition
seems at first to emphasize the supernatural and supernal in describinq the exalted identity that the patriarch achieves; but
it
ultimately
devotion.
In
proves
3 9: 11,
also
the he
to
be
about
his
added to Abraham's
earthly name
is
revealed to be none other than the letter with which God created the world, and in 43:7 it is explained that Abraham can be said to be in possession of heaven and 1'1Nl--(Gen.14:19) 321
because
God
has
earth--~Jl~
decided
to
c,nw
reqard
Abraham as a partner in the creation of the universe, inasmuch as Abraham has made God's name known to His creatures. 322 Similarly, in the continuation of 39: 11, God is interpreted as sayinq to Abraham in Gen.12:2, "Hitherto I had to bless my world;
henceforth
the
blessinqs
are
entrusted
to
you:
whomsoever it pleases you to bless, bless." These midrashic passages enqender a sense of Abraham's beinq made a co-regent of God or, at least, a principal divine deputy or viceroy.
On the other hand, the emphasis throuqhout
321
Contextually, in Gen .14: 19, the phrase must be understood as describing God--1'1Nl o,nw ~Jl~ ll,~D ~N--but here the verse is read, 1'1Nl o,nw ~ll~ ••• D1~N 111~, "Blessed is Abraham ••• creator of heaven and earth." 322 It i• worth noting here the frequently repeated midraahic tradition aaaigning the creation of the angela to daya other than the firat day of creation apecifically ao that it would not be aaid that God had a partner in creation.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
these same portions of Bereshit Rabah is on Abraham's earthly piety.
In 43:7, for example, we read:
1 , ilutr.l 1 D, ~Wil nN 1 D, 1 ~ 1Dil nN ., ~j1n i1, i1 j1T'r.P 1 "N iln ,., D,1n1N li11 1~1l lil' 1n1M il,il l,n1W1 D,.,~1N 1.,Uin 1l.,~NW D.,1D .,M 111l 11nN Dil., 1n1M M1i11 1nNJ ,n,N n1~i1l ,n,,,l., ,~,J ,nw il,il M., ,JM il"~i1il '"M .,w 1nM,,~~ ,nn ~n1w ilnM ,.,,M~ l,.,n ,JM il.,nn ,n,,,~~ ?1N1 D,nW ill1j1 i"ilil D.,1D Said R. Isaac: Abraham used to entertain wayfarers, and after they had eaten he would say to them, 'Say a blessing.' 'What shall we say?' they asked. 'Blessed be the God of the Universe of whose bounty we have eaten,' he replied. Then the Holy One, blessed be He, said to him, 'My name was not known among my creatures, and you have made it known among them. I will regard you as though you were associated with Me in the creation of the world. Hence it is written, "who (sc. Abraham] created heaven and earth." What we see in such passages is a rabbinic effort to retain the
powerful
theme
of
angelic
or
divine
humanity
while
separating it from strivings toward celestial and supernatural experience.
These
passages
ingeniously manage
to
exalt
Abraham supremely while keeping him firmly planted upon the earth and involved in the quotidian details of God's law. parlance of
ange~ic
identity is used to express
of piety in earthly, human life.
The
va~orization
Counterintuitively, in such
midrashim, the proper abode for an angelic human being is on the earth, and it is through earthly activity that the human being can realize angelic identity. subtle
polemic
here
There may well be a
against extravagant strivings
toward
angelic experiences in the heavens.
By contrast, other early midrashim about Abraham focus more fully upon the supernatural in exploring the patriarch's
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
287
affinity with the anqels.
For example, Abraham's circumcision
in Gen.17 is interpreted in Bereshit Rabah 48:9 as a passport allowinq Abraham access to anqelic company: l,WJD C,M~ C,~1D CiM ,l~ ,,~ ~n~n N~W iD ~"~R~ ~"M M1,1 l,l,D MW,l i"~~ l,~D C,~ll ,~W M,~ng ,l~l ,JM C,JM~n~ M1,1 ~l,JW~ M1,1 ,,~D C,~~l D,WJM ~W~W ~l~l
Said the Holy One, blessed be He, to [Abraham], 'Before you were circumcised, uncircumcised mortals visited you. Now I and My retinue will appear to you.' Thus it is written, "And he lifted up his eyes and looked" (Gen.18:2)--he saw the Shekhinah, he saw the anqels. Similarly, in Bereshit Rabah 50:2 the disparate references to Abraham's visitors as anqels
(D,JM~n)
and as men (D,WJN) is
explained as follows: "To Abraham, whose strenqth was qreat, they looked like men; but to Lot they appeared as anqels." That
is,
to Abraham,
the
visitors appeared
less
awesome
because he perceived them to be beinqs like himself. In a similar vein, a midrash in the name of R. Isaac in Bereshit
Rabah
45:7
addresses
the perplexity
of
Haqar's
apparently takinq the appearance of heavenly anqels in stride, without astonishment, while, by contrast, the midrash notes, in the narrative of Judqes 13, Manoah fears for his and his wife's lives upon recoqnizinq an anqelic beinq. ~w
1n,~
,J~
C~~
~n,~
n1M1i
n1J,~~
~~,11
~,g,~
~n,~l
(M~
1,~
,,wn)
0,91~
~~,
D~1~M
1"M
ll,~M
R. Isaac quoted: "She sees the ways of her household." (Prov.31)--Abraham's household were tsofim, so [Haqar] was accustomed to seeinq [anqels]. The word
0,91~
in this aqadah--literally, "watchers"--rinqs a
bell, and one wonders whether the term is a hold-over from
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
288
pre-rabbinic angelic narratives (1 Enoch and its "Book of the Watchers" in particular) where the term denotes a particular group of heavenly angels.
If that is the connotation of
"watchers" here, then we should wonder whether the sense of the passage is that the members of Abraham's household were themselves angelic.
Alternately,
the meaning may be that
celestial angels were frequent visitors--and in that sense, n,~
,l~--with
Abraham's
earthly
household.
It
is
also
possible that the term is not used here to mean angelic "watchers," as in 1 Enoch at all, and that the meaning here is rather that, because Abraham and his household were seers, angels were more manifest in their midst than elsewhere, visible among them, even to handmaids such as Hagar.
In any
case, this somewhat mysterious passage broadens the concept of Abraham's camp as a point of contact between the angelic and the human realm.
A propos Abraham's being a seer, we should note that a theme
of
angel-like
experience
is
patriarch's knowledge of the future.
connected
with
the
In Bereshit Rabah 44:12
and 48: 6, God's promise to Abraham of progeny numbering as the stars is associated with a heavenly journey of sorts. 44:12, the account is given as follows: ,J1
,,~
M~M
~~1~ 1n1M M~1,1 ~1nJ~ 1nMW 1M,~1~ C~1D~ ,n1~1rr1 ?1M ~wn M~ in M"in~ M,nw ,~~1w ~,~
1nM
,n,~,~
~on~
,~1
OW~
ng,Jn
~~nn~n
l,lJOi
~~Dn~
M~N
DW1~,
1n1N l,N
~o~~
"And he brought (Gen.15:5).
him
~~n~
,~1
~~1~
1n1M
M~1,1
llrr,, ,, cw~ ~i1~, NJ o~~ ~,~ 1nNi
~n,nw~
out,
outside
?1ITD ,,rrN ,~,
N1~
(~~1~)"
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
In
281
R. Yehoshua of Siknin in the name of R. Levi: Does it mean that He took him outside of the world when it says, "and he brought him out, outside?" Rather, He showed him the streets of heaven 323 , as you read, "While He had not yet made the earth and the outer spaces (n1~1n)" (Prov.8:26). Said R. Yehuda b. Simon in the name of R. Yochanan: He raised him up above the dome of the sky. This is why He said to him, "Look now (U~~) upon the heavens." Looking (expressed with u~~] can mean only looking down from above. In Bereshit Rabah 48:6, the narrative is similar, although the text exposited is Isaiah 33: ~-,ll~
,~1
llTTl,
DW~
l,lTT
,~1
CW~
llll,O
,~1
1~
~n,nw~ MJ u~~ .,"M Ml~l Ml~ ll,~,~ n9,3n ~-,lln., ,~,llW,) ~en., ~.,lln.,n M.,M u~~ 1n1-, 1,,w
(l".,
,,n,n 1,9,~
,"1 1n1M ll,M
1n,J 1nrr., 11~3 ,Jlll ,.,M 1~1wn c,ll_,o n11~n 1-,ll (/l"., ~,llW,/) ,D,ll Ullll Nl TT~, D,lllMJ .M1llll ,ll-,N~ '~ ,,-,M M1,1 1,l,ll ~l,TTTn
R. Yehudah b. R. Simon in the name of R. Chanin, in the name of R. Yochanan (said]: [God] raised [Abraham] above the dome of the sky, as He said to him, "Look (U~~) now toward the heavens" (Gen.lS:S). It is appropriate to say, "look now" (U~~) only in speaking of looking down from above. "(He shall dwell on high;] His place of defense shall be the fortress of rocks" (Isa.33:16)--that (refers to] clouds of glory. "His bread shall be given, his water shall be sure" (ibid) (corresponds to] "Let a little water be taken" (Gen.18:4). "Your eyes shall see the king in his beauty" (Isa.33:17) [corresponds to] "And the Lord appeared to him at the terebinths of Mamre" (Gen.l8:1). In
this
midrashic
passage,
the
clauses
of
Isa.33
are
interpreted so as to transform the narrative of Abraham into something
of
a
classic
apocalypse.
The
patriarch
is
translated to the heavenly realm, and his interactions with
323
Rotably, we •hall • - in a later •egment that the idiom ~l"'TXD ,i2i11W (the •tr-ta, or marketplace•, of heaven) i• u•ed to de•cribe firat-hand rabb~c experience of the heaven• a• well.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
290
the visiting angels and with God are made to seem intertwined with this celestial journey. 124 So far we have seen a theme of angelic and quasi-divine nomenclature used to describe Abraham's earthly piety; we have seen
a
theme
of
Abraham's
keeping
company
with
angels,
especially connected to his circumcision; and we have seen a theme of celestial experience wherein Abraham looks down upon the sky and learns the future.
Still, although Bereshit Rabah
50:2 suggests that Abraham recognized angels as beings like himself, we have yet to see a midrashic source in which the angels return this recognition. Perhaps, in view of the midrashic traditions concerning Adam and the angels that we examined in the previous seqment, we may go so far as to say that angelic recognition of a human being as a peer (or angelic mistaking of a human being for a divinity) can be something of a litmus test for the suggestion of actual kinship between human and celestial beings.
So,
before taking leave of Abraham, it is essential that we note the following account in Bereshit Rabah 48:14, whose basis is a
reconciliation of Gen. 18: 1,
in which Abraham espies his
three visitors "standing over him," and Gen 18:8,
in which
Abraham "stood over them. "
124 I •hould al•o note a third parallel, in a..idbar Rabbah 2:12, in which Abrabaa'• heavenly journey (de•cribed in the •ame term. of God'• removing the patriarch to a point above the vault of the •ky) i• ca•t a• a divine refutation of Abrahaa •• previou• a8troloqy, by which he had predicted that he would remain childle••·
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
211 1~~~1
C~,~D
,~ll
C,~~l
c~,~u
n~n1n
,
M1~1
1nM nM M~~ ,C~,~D in1D M1~1 M"1W iD M~M 1,"1D C,:l~l 1nM 1nn,M ,c~,~u inlD M1~1 c~,i, M~,w 11,~ nn,,n ~M,1:ll nn,,n ~M~,n in1D
0~,i,
M~,
"And he stood by (or over) them" (Gen.18:8). Here, you say "he stood over them," but earlier it says "standing over [Abraham] (Gen.18:1). [Understand from this that] until they had discharged their mission, they stood over him; once they had discharged their mission, he stood over them--his fear was cast upon them, Michael trembled, Gabriel trembled. Here we find a recognition of Abraham by the principal, named angels as
a
similar and even superior being.
Abraham's
superiority is no mere abstract matter; the angels Michael and Gabriel
quake
poignantly generalized
in
his
delivered beyond
presence. message
Abraham
in
At
the
of
this
a
manner
same
time,
passage that
the
can
be
encourages
earthly, human devotion and piety among his descendants, as follows: It is a midrashic commonplace that angels are creatures of the divine will, but, as such, they are often limited, in the rabbinic conception, to one particular command in each of their
earthly
missions. 325
It
is
also
understood
that
Abraham, in Gen.18, is engaged in the divine commandment of entertaining quests.
By combining these two ideas, Bereshit
Rabah 48:14 transforms angelic rank into a continuum or scale, measuring occupation with God's will.
On this scale,
325
a
Abraham'• angelic vi•itor• are the paradiCJID of thi• concept--one came to heal Abraham (Raphael) , one to foretell the birth of I•aac (Michael), and one to overthrow SodOIIl (Cavriel)--one angel wa• required for each •eparate expre••ion of the divine will.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
292
commanded human being (here, Abraham) can locate himself so highly that be might be awesome even to the permanent angels of God's retinue, at least when those angels are idle between missions.
We should note, once more, that Abraham's pious
actions are decidedly earthly ones, albeit they place him in rank above the anqels.
We have yet to see many essential
midrashim on our theme, but I would venture to say that this one represents an ultimate rabbinizing of the concept of angelic Israel. The Angelic Iaaac In the line of Israel's patriarchs made angel-like in classical rabbinic literature, Isaac bas the fewest relevant traditions
associated
with
him.
Isaac
is
neither
the
progenitor of the line (as Abraham) nor the eponymous ancestor (as Jacob) and seems, consequently, to get the short shrift of the middle child: he is the patriarch least expanded upon in midrasbic literature.
On the other band, it is important to
note that the midrashic traditions concerning Isaac, although less expansive than the traditions concerning his father and his son, do include angelifying themes. In Bereshit Rabah 60:15, Rebecca's first encounter with Isaac is interpreted as an encounter with the patriarch and his quardian angel: ~~W~ 1~1~~ ~T~~ W,N~ ,n i~D~ ~N 1nNTI1 1nN TINT on~ 11io lTIN TIN1 ,1~N N,,n '1 OW~ o,~,~ N1o 'nN 1,l~1 ,(U, T~ n,WN1~) N~ ~T~o n1n1~~ ~D~ oT 1,~N ~T~o ,1]10~,91
'1
1lTIN1~~
~J~
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
293
"And she said to the servant, Who is that man (ba~azeb) who walks in the field to meet us?" (Gen. 24: 65) • R. Berakhiah in the name of R. Chiyya his father: She saw that he was handsome, as you read, "Here comes that dreamer (~T~~)" [viz. Joseph, known for his handsomeness] (Gen.J7:19). The Rabbis say: It [refers to] his [angelic] attendant--balazeb meaning elav zeh ("this one is for him," or "this is his celestial one"). In the midrash on Psalms, compiled much later, the narrative of this same encounter is expanded considerably with the inclusion of additional elements that glorify the patriarch himself and, moreover, extend the possibility of a similar glory to his latest descendants. 326
For the sake of seeing
how the added elements hang together, it is best to quote the entire segment, from the Midrash on Psalms 90:18, at length: ~T 1nM M11 n '1 CUl~ ~ 1 ::J1J. '1 1 1 ~D9 1 1 1~D ~M ~M1 1 M~ 1 1 1nMJUl ~~~11 ~~, ~T C~ 1 JJ. ~D 111~1 ~1W1 C~1~M ~nM1Ul l1 1 J1 1TD 1 ~M CD ~MJ. ~~J.1 ~n,~1 ~1WJ. n1w~ ~~, ~nM1 ~~~1 1n1M c,~~M 1M~nJ 1n1n11 ~J1 T1~~ 1nJ 111~ ~T~~ 1 1 1J.D ~M ~M1 1 1nMJW 1n~D
n,~,~J. ~u1un1 W1J.~ 1n1,~ 111~ 1 Mn ~T~~ W 1 M~ ,n 1TD,~M~ ~1nM
1n1M
n1::JTJ.1 1 1 J.M n1JT~ ~n~ 1::J \ 1 M1 C~,J~ ~D 111~1 1 1 ~D9 11~1 11~ 1nMJW 1~W 11~~ ~n11~ 111~ n 1 ~U M~M 111~ ~n11 n~Jn ,,Mn '1 cUlJ. 1nM1 n 1 M1 ~,~rn '1 1nM1 nwJ.~ n1J~ 1 M1 n1J~,M~ c,n11 C 1 ~WD1 C 1 lWD~ ~n11 c,1 c,~ ~M1n::J 1nMJW n1ni~ nw~1 nw~~ ~l1J1 ~l1J~ D 1 ~11 D 1 ~1~ M1~ J.,lC ~l1J~ ~M1n 1J OWl~ 01 1 ~ lJD~ ~,~, 1WM nw~~ 1 1 C::Jnn ~M1W 1 W tnT~ ~,~Tn '1 1nM '~ 11~J n1n1 ~M1n 1J M~M 1 1 W~1~ 1~ n~Jn MnUl 1 1 11~0 1,~, M~ n,~,~~ 1~ 1 ~D ~J 1 JW 11~ 1~ 1 M::J n,~,~J. 1 ,~::Jnon ~M1W 1 1 ,~, 1 1~ ~-~~~~ 1n1M M~M 1nMJ M~ Cn1M 1n1M Cn 1 M11 1nMJW c~,J~
~u
111~1
"Let Your work appear unto Your servants ••• " (Ps.90:16) R. Berakhia said in the name of R. Chiya: That refers to Abraham and Sarah; "and your splendor (hadarkba) upon their children," (Ps.90:16)--that is Isaac and Rebekah, as it is said, 'And Isaac went out to meditate in the field.' (Gen.24:63) Just then Rebecca was coming 326
Cf. alao Sifrei Shelach piaka 115.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
214
with Eliezer, and when she saw (Isaac], and saw him most splendidly attired, adorned and wrapped in the fringes, and his appearance like the angel of the Lord, she said to Eliezer: who is that particular man (haish halazeh)? What is the meaning of 'that particular one (halazeh)'? [It means] the one who is resplendent like That One. And how can it be so to such an extent? By virtue of his father and by virtue of himself, as it is said 'Let Your work appear unto Your servants and Your splendor upon their children.' Now there is no 'splendor' but a splendid fringed shawl (talit hadur) , which is like unto Your own splendor, as it is said, 'Majesty (hod) and splendor have You donned' (Ps.104: 1), and, as R. Chezekiah said, and there are those who say it in the name of R. Meir: 'Tekhelet [upon the fringes] is similar to the sea, and the sea to the qrasses, and the grasses to the trees, and the trees to the firmament, and the firmament to the brilliance (noga), and the brilliance to the rainbow, and the rainbow to the Likeness, as it is said, 'as the appearance of the bow that is in the cloud on a day of rain, thus was the appearance of the brilliance round about; that was the appearance of the likeness of the Lord' (Ezekiel 1:28). Said R. Chezekiah: When Israel contemplates the fringes, they ought not imagine that they are wearing (mere] tekhelet, but rather they ought to contemplate the fringes as though the very splendor of the Shekhinah were upon them, as it is said, 'And you shall see it [in the masculine]' (Num.15:39). It does not say, '[see] them' [i.e. the fringes], but '(see] Him,' in reference to the Holy One, blessed be He--that is [the meaning of] 'and Your splendor upon Your children.' The glorifying interpretation of the fringes that appears at the end of this midrash is a frequently repeated passage that occurs
in a
large number of anthologies;
and
in earlier
collections it is not linked, as here, with the narrative of Isaac. to
R.
That is to say, the portions of our midrash attributed Chezekiah
(and
to
Rabbi
Meir)
were
originally
independent of the segment attributed to R. Berakhiah in the name of R.
Chiya.
The midrash elaborating upon Rebecca's
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
295
first sight of Isaac,
taken on its own,
asserts that the
patriarch, in and of himself, was a God-like apparition to his bride.
A later redactorship understands this God-like glory
of Isaac in terms of the blue fringes. 3 l 7 On the one hand, the suggestion that the angelic aspect inheres not in the patriarch himself but in his garment might be construed as a genealogy.
move away
angelic
on the other hand, Isaac is a rightful wearer of
this distinctive mantle, Bereshit
from the notion of
Rabah
identity).
21: 5,
so to speak
whose
garment
(like the snail, is
essential
to
in its
The interpretation of Isaac's heavenly glory in
terms of his ritual garment suggests that the same angelic glory that overwhelmed Rebecca might be equally accessible to any Jew who dons a fringed shawl.
The Angelic Jacob-Xarael With the patriarch Jacob the theme of angelic Israel becomes fully fledged in the classical rabbinic literature. We have seen that the original Adam is understood in many midrashim as an angelic being; and we have seen that his heirs,
the
recapitulate capacities.
early aspects
patriarchs of
Adam's
of
the
Israelite
celestial
splendor
line, and
We have also seen some indications that the glory
327
The link between the glorification of I•aac and the lllidra•h the blue fringe• i• e•pecially under•tandable in view of the tradition we have . . .n in Bere•hit R&bah 21:5 in which Adam'• being •a• one of u• • i• ~terpreted by analogy to the •nail who•• di•tinctive gar..ene i• part and parcel of it• body. concern~g
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
211
associated with these early ancestors might be generalizable to include their descendants, at least in principle.
With
Jacob-Israel the message of angelic Israel becomes loud and clear: Israel, as a nation, enjoys an actual and realizable kinship with the heavenly host. A midrash in Bereshit Rabah 78 seems to make the point that the angelic nature of Israel, the people, is not firmly established until the arrival of Israel, the patriarch. that midrash,
In
spun on Genesis 33, Jacob's reunion with his
brother Esau comes in the wake of an encounter between Esau's host an angelic fore-guard that goes before the camp of JacobIsrael: ~~,~~ 1n1N ~J ,nWl9 ,,~, n111~n n111~n1
1WN ~T~ ~Jnn~ ~J 1~ ,n 1nN,1 n1nJ n1nJ n1w~ ,JN~n 1WDJ lWUi 1,~N~ 1,Ul19 "And he said, What do you mean by all this camp that I met?" (Gen.33:8) All that night the ministering angles grouped into groups and banded into bands and kept on confronting Esau's troops.
In the continuation of this midrash, when Esau' s soldiers say, "We from Esau" they are still attacked by the heavenly host, and likewise when they say, "We are from Isaac's son," and "Abraham's grandson," but when they say, "we are from Jacob's brother," the response of the angels changes dramatically: 11~~w
1,1nN
11~
1JN
~~u,,
,,nNi 1n ,,nN 11~1 11,J 11J,N 1,,, 1n 11~~
As soon as they said, We are from Jacob's brother, [The angels] said: Let them alone, they are of ours. The idiom 1,,, 1n is more directly translatable into the German, or Yiddish, "von unsere."
That is to say, the midrash
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
297
suggests
a
familial
compatriots.
or tribal
recognition,
a
meeting of
At the very least, Jacob's name emerges here as
a password that gains his brother's band acceptance among the angelic host.
What is-more, we can note that identification
with Jacob alone suffices to elicit recognition from the angels,
whereas
identification
with
Abraham
(father
of
Ishmael) and with Isaac (father of Esau) proves insufficient. More
remarkable still than the
affinity between the
servants of Jacob's brother and the angels in Bereshit Rabah 78
is Jacob's immoderate self-aggrandizement in a
midrash
found both in Bereshit Rabah 79:8 and 80: 4, which expands upon events in the wake of Jacob's nocturnal struggle and change of name: ,~7M
,JMl
7M 17
N1~,,
C,J,,7,D~
rr~rn
~17M
ow~~,,
~nM
17 1nN
nng (J
w,~7
l7
1~
11nnw ,, 7M1W,
n,WM1~)
o,Jlnnn~
~17M
R. Shimon b. Lakish 328 opened his discourse: "And he erected there an altar, and called it (or, rather "him"] 'God, the God of Israel' (Gen.33:20)-(Jacob] declared to Him, 'You are the divinity in the heavenly realm, and I am the divinity in the earthly realm.' In both occurrences of this midrash, a tradition attributed to R. Huna in the name of R. Shimon b. Lakish follows, in which God rebukes Jacob, saying, "Even the synagogue superintendent cannot assume authority on his own, but you take authority to yourself!"
Consequently, this tradition continues, Jacob's
daughter Dinah was dishonored.
Despite the reprisal,
328
the
The attribution i• not found ill the Vilna edition but in Theoclor Albeck'• edition, where the pa••age occur• in 80.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
298
midrashic account of Jacob's self-conception is remarkable; and we should note that the tradition of God's reproving Jacob for
this
self-agqrandizement
is separated
from the first
narrative element by a different attribution.
(The difference
of attribution suggests that the account of Jacob's god-like self-esteem may initially have been a tradition unto itself without mention of divine censure.)
Also, it is worth noting
that, even in R. Huna's rejoinder in the name of R. Shimon b. Lakish, God does not exactly contradict Jacob, although God does
demonstrate that Jacob
cannot
protect
even his
own
household if God wills otherwise. 329 If God is jealous of His unique divinity in the final seqment of Bereshit Rabah 79:8 (and 80:4), He is more generous in ascribing a supernal identity, or alter-eqo, to Jacob in a number of midrashim having to do with the divine throne. mysterious statement themselves
the
~~~,n~
divine
1~
1~
chariot"
nl~N~--"The
(Bereshit
The
patriarchs are Rabah
69:3
is
probably its earliest occurrence)--is particularly famous for its elaborations in later Jewish mysticism, particularly in the Zohar; but the theme is developed to some extent even within the classical connection with Jacob.
rabbinic sources,
and especially
in
In Bereshit Rabah 68:12, for example,
we find the following tradition:
The pattern of thi• midra•h, then, i• •omewhat •~ilar to that of the later «erkavah-narrative in which Metatron •eat• h~•elf upon the divine throne and mu•t afterward• be la•hed to demon•trate hi• •ubordination to God. 329
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
299
'l ~W ND1J1n 1nN W,~~ W,1 nN 1nM ,1~ '1 DW~ l,lJDi
~N1~ D,~l1
DW~
~l1
DW1~,
M1~
,l1n~W
,~1
,~1
,1~
,w,~w
R. [God] R. said:
Salmoni in the name of Reish Lakish said: showed (Jacob] a chair with three legs. Yehoshua of Siknin in the name of R. Levi (God] said: You [Jacob] are the third leg!
The sense of this statement seems metaphorical--Jacob is an essential
support
in
the
sovereignty over the world.
structure
expressing
God's
More actual than metaphorical in
flavor is the notion that Jacob's image is somehow figured upon,
or under, God's throne.
Even within Bereshit
Rabah
68:12, there is an indication that the connection of Jacob with the divine throne is meant literally and graphically as well as metaphorically.
The segment of 68:12 in which God
reveals to Jacob that he is the third leg of the chair appears as an elaboration on Jacob's dream of a ladder of angels.
The
illllllediately previous interpretation of the dream addresses itself to a difference of opinion between R. Chiya the Elder and R. Yanai, one of whom opines that the angels ascended and descended upon the ladder, while the other reads the angels' ascent and descent,
1~
D,,.,,,1
D 1 ~1D,
up and down upon Jacob himself." "qoinq up and down on Jacob"
in Gen.28:12, as "going
This reading of the angels
(as thouqh he were a bridge
between the heavens and earth) is itself reworked in meaning aqain in a midrash in Bereshit
Rabah 68: 12,
in which the
anqels see Jacob much as they once saw Adam in Eden, as a divine being, but are astonished to find him asleep.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Here,
300
the •going up and down upon Jacob" becomes an angelic goading and prodding, extolling and disparaging: 1nNi 1Nn1 1~ D,T9N D,~1D ~~DD~ ~~l~n l~W l,ll~,MW Nl~ nN ,1N9nN 1~ 1WN 1n1N D,N~1n1 ~en~ D,i11,1 1~W l,ll~,N D,N111 ~~Dn~ c,N~1n1 ,~~,o~~ c,~,u li1 ~w,, ~,~w 1~n~ ~wn ,1w, lW, 1n1N D,N~1n1 i1119~ l,N~1,1 li 1n1N 1~
D,i,11n1 D,~Dn ~~~D,~ D,i11,1 (Cn ~,DW,) 1nNlW ,1~ D,Ul1W
~N1W,
D,~1D
1~ D,T9~
As to those who say •ascending and descending" upon Jacob himself, •ascending and descending• means extolling and disparaging him--sporting on him, jumping on him, scoffing at him--as it is said, "Israel in whom I shall glorify Myself"--You are the one whose image is engraved on high! They would ascend and see his image, and descend below and see him sleeping. A parable may be told of a king would sit in judgement: When one goes up to the palace one finds him judging, but when one goes out to the outskirts one finds him asleep. In this midrash, Israel is alternately built up and knocked down,
so to
speak,
by the angels who
are
both awed and
unimpressed by the sleeping figure of the image of God.
While
the anqelic goading seems intended to remind Israel of his exalted identity, the angels seem to quote their verse in an astonishment of disappointment, as though saying,
•can you
really be 'Israel in whom I [God] shall glorify Myself?'"
The
homiletic message of this midrash is powerful: Israel, as the image of God, is asleep and inactive in the world, needing to be urged into action and fulfillment of almost
limitless
potential. What is more, this midrash suggests that God seems to be inactive in the world because Israel is asleep. it is homiletically driven,
For all that
this passage also reflects an
important dualism included in the rabbinic ontology of Jewish
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
301
identity.
The duality is not strictly one of soul and body
(although the body might be blamed for sleep). dualism of
this
midrash
is
one
of
Rather, the
fulfillment
fulfillment of divine mission and potential.
and
non-
Israel, when
awake to the fullness of his identity, might realize himself as an awesome extension of divinity into the world below--at least, he might be tantamount in aspect to the vision of God's throne, through which God expresses His glory and sovereignty. On the other hand, when not awake to this identity, Israel is earthbound, dull, and disappointing. midrash below
We might argue that this
(like the midrash of Abraham alternately standing
and
above
the
angels)
expresses
a
characteristic,
rabbinic notion: that Israel, when awake to the divine call, rightfully belongs among the creatures on high and may even be greater than any angel.
Although he can also fall to base and
earthly status, Israel does not lose this inherent potential, even when asleep. Another instance quasi-divine self-esteem on the part of Israel is implied in Bereshit Rabah 96:5, in connection with Jacob's desire that he not be buried in Egypt: M1W
ll
1
~M ~~U 1 W~~ ~n
••• 0
1
~~1~
l9n M"i ,D 1 1~n~ 1 l~1~n Ml 1M nil~U 1n1M lWU 1 M1W D 1 1~n~ 1~~, 1
"Do not bury me in Egypt" Another interpretation: Why did Jacob our father ask that he not be buried in Egypt? so that they would not make him an object of idolatrous worship. Jacob's worry in this midrash that he might be revered as an object of idolatry (here the idiom is "star-worship") perhaps
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
302
conveys the idea that the patriarch would have made an awesome and perhaps otherworldly impression upon the Egyptians. Similar, and even more remarkable, in terms of Israel's sense of his own stellar identity, is the flash of recognition that Bereshit Rabah 68:10 and 84:11 place in the patriarch's mind when Joseph recounts his dream- vision of the stars, sun, and moon (his brothers, father, and mother) bowing down to him: wnw~
~J~l
~01,
1nNW
wnw
~DW~
,nww
,'lll 1ITN Cl~IT ilD Cl~IT,l 1~ ~~,l ,n ~~n, 1nN n1,~,
"And he dreamt yet another dream ••• " (Gen. 3 7 : 9) • When Joseph said, "And lo, the sun and the moon ••• " Jacob exclaimed, 'Who revealed to him that my name is "Sun?"' This midrash suggests esotericism in connection with Israel's true identity.
Joseph, in his dream, hits upon a hidden name
and aspect of Jacob that the patriarch is surprised to hear invoked.
Along the same lines, but perhaps even more extreme,
and more surprising, is God's own revelation of a secret about Jacob in a passage in Vayikra Rabah 36:4: ~~u,
1N11~
1n~1n~ 11~,
'~
~"~~~
~~D,
1nu 1nN
1N1~
~J
~nu1
l~1N1
~~D,
,n
'1
i"~~
~~n,
,n,1~
cw~
1N1~ ~N1W,
onJg '1 ,n 1~ 1n1N
11~,1
~~D,
nN ,n1JT1
~N1W,
11~,,
,n~lD 1N11~
,n~lD ~lnJW
"And I shall remember my covenant with Jacob"--This is as it is written: "And now, thus says the Lord, he that created you, Jacob, he that formed you, Israel." (Isa.43:1) R. Pinchas in the name of R. Reuven said: The Holy One, blessed be Be, said to his world, 'My world, my world, shall I tell you who created you, who formed you? Jacob created you, Jacob formed you, as it is written: "Be that created you, Jacob, he that formed you, Israel."'
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
303
This passaqe is not expanded upon in Vayikra Rabah except that it is followed by a series of traditions tellinq that the world,
or various of its elements,
were created only on
account o:f the merit of this or that patriarch or leader. 330 Our passaqe, naminq Jacob as the world's creator, miqht be meant in a similar same sense; but its wordinq is dramatically different and, surprisinq as the face- meaninq is (after all, in other midrashim, the anqels themselves were not created until after the first day so that it would not be said that God had assistance in creation), we must ask what emboldened
the author of this midrash to drive his theme toward this most audacious expression.
In the first place, one can easily see
how
itself
the
prooftext
presented
an
irresistible
hermeneutical possibility. At the same time, the midrashist's confidence in pluckinq this particular fruit may well be the result of an ancient interpretational leqacy of aqqrandizinq and anqelifyinq Jacob. We have seen, in the above midrashim, a close affinity, even a converqence, between Jacob-Israel and the Holy one, blessed be He. ·This converqence is expressed quite readily by the framers of these aqadot in terms of anqelification, or admittance and recoqnition amonq the anqels; but it would be diminishinq the Jacob of midrashic lore to say only that he is
330
Intere•tingly, the•• tradition• al•o include the •tatement that Abraha. wa• •aved from the fiery furnace only by the merit of Jacob--a further indication that the identity of I•rael, the people, i• not fully actualized until the arrival of the eponymou• ance•tor.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
angelified.
Jacob-Xsrael can attain an identity still more
exalted, even if the route toward that identity begins with angelification.
We see this once more in a pair of midrashim
in Bereshit Rabah 78:6, expanding upon Gen.J2:29: DU nwru1lnl ~~1n1 n,WJM DU1 D,~~M DU n,1W ,~ Dll D~~ n~lJ, 1 D, J 1nrm~ Dll1 D~~ n~l~, 1 D, J 1 ,~U~ lWU ~T D~~ n~1~,1 D,J1nTm~ DU •••lN~n~ ~T D,Jl,~U~ l~W 1,J1~,NW N1~ nN D,~~M DU n,1W ,~ N"i 1,91~M1 ~~nun~
"For
~~1~rr
you
have striven (sarita) with celestials and with men and have prevailed" (Gen.J2:29)--You have struggled with those above, and were able to overcome them, and with those below and were able to overcome them. With those above--that is the angel ••• 331 With those below, and were able to overcome them--that is Esau and his chiefs. Another interpretation [of "sarita im elohim"]: You are he whose fiqure is enqraved on high.
(elohim)
Xn the second of these paired midrashim, Jacob is interpreted as ruling alongside, rather than struggling with, Elohim, read as God.
The link from that interpretation to the fiqure of
Jacob enqraved on high suggests that Jacob's heavenly image, said
to
be
ornamental.
enqraved
on
God's
throne,
is
hardly
just
Once more the reality described by the midrash is
determined by a compellingly clever reading, in this case of Gen.J2:29,
D,~~N
cu
n,1w
,~--a
reading that again, in view of
rabbinic audacity, seems irresistible to the point of being
331 I have oaaitted an interpolated •egment in the pa••age above, between the clearly connected explanation• of •tho•• above• and •thoae below,• in which a. Chama bar Chanin& identifie• the angel with wboaa Jacob atruggled •• •••au•• angel• (1WD ~w 11W) and u••• thi• identification to account for Jacob'• calling hi• encounter with B•au •like •-ing God• (Gen.33:10), adding that both encounter• al•o involve a countenance of judg. . .nt and nece••ary offering•.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
305
inevitable.
Once more,
thouqh,
the audacity involved in
qrasping the exegetical opportunity must depend upon a lonqstanding comfort with the notion of Israel's belonging among the angels, which we see reflected in the first midrash of the pair above.
That is, the elevation of the f iqure of Jacob to
such a prominent position in the heavenly panoply and to such a god-like rank seems tolerable only in combination with an accepted
tradition
of
Jacob's
achievinq
parity
with
the
angels. X say "panoply," with reqard to the heavenly realm of these midrashim, not to say "pantheon," althouqh both Bereshit Rabah 78:3 and Vayikra Rabah 36:4 portray God as seeminqly compromisinq divine uniqueness and sole authorship of the world in order to admit Jacob-Xsrael as, if not a co-reqent, something of an alter eqo--creating the world, manifest on God's throne.
Xn this liqht, Jacob's own divine pretension in
Bereshit Rabah 79:8 seems warranted, or at least excusable-which is to say that we can perceive in these several sources a
more or less consistent theme of Jacob's preternatural
aqqrandizement almost to the point of divine identity. The special affinity between Jacob-Xsrael and the divine is expressed aqain, terms, in
but in a
completely different set of
Bereshit Rabah 69:2 (Albeck Edition) in a petichta
on Gen.28:13, "And behold the Lord stood by him": 1 T~ ,~WD) ~~,,,~ M~N
~T1~ ,~j2lP
'JW ~T
111 iiT, niinnD
~T1~~ ~T1~ nng Ml,JIT '1~ 1,~0 l,K Nl,JIT '1~ Mnrr '1
11,~~ N~K rr~wn
W,M1
, (OW 'CW)
o~rr
'111
i,n~n
iiT,
Nnrr '1 1nK (T,
l,K 1~ ~n1~rr~w W,M1 , iiT, ~T1~~
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
,,~D
~in,nJW
,Jg in, W,N ~~D, .'lll ,,~D ~~J ,.,
1~D1
inDW 11,~ 'JW ~l,~W~
ll,~N ~J~l
R. Chama b. R. Chanina opened his discourse: "Iron sharpens iron" (Prov.27:17). Said R. Chama b. R. Chanina: A knife cannot be sharpened except on the edge of its mate. So too a scholar is improved only by his colleague, as it says, "Iron sharpens iron, and a man sharpens [the countenance of his fellow]". "A man"--that is Jacob. As soon as our father Jacob arose, [the verse was fulfilled,] "A man together with [another sense of in,] the countenance of his Fellow"--in that the Shekhinah attached itself to him, as it is said, "And lo, the Lord stood by (or 'upon') him." As iron improves iron, partners in rabbinic discourse improve one another--and so too Jacob and God?
The intimation of this
proem's combined midrashim on Prov.27:17 seems to be that this ultimate pair enjoys a similar interaction as well.
If that
be so, this midrash goes almost as far as to say that God and Jacob-Israel are alike in substance.
At the very least, God
finds in Jacob an affinite human being, and perhaps one worthy of sharing in divinity. In Bereshit Rabah 65:21, the words
~~D,
~1~
~1~~,
"the
voice is the voice of Jacob" (Gen.27:22) is read to mean
those
below. "
The
adjoining
midrash
in
65:21
1~1~
turns
to
Ezekiel's vision and to the question of why Ezekiel mentions that the angels "stand" as they let down their wings, sitting being unthinkable for these straight-legged servants. with
a
reinterpretation
of
OinD~--"when
they
stood"--the
midrash returns to Israel and Israel's voice: ~N1W,
DnW 0,1n1N
~N1W,W ~DW~
Oi OD
N~ OinD~ N,~ ~n1 1,~n1w n,~N~n~
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Then,
307
What is meant by "when they stood?" When the nation [viz Israel] comes, they become still. When Israel recites, "Hear o Israel," the anqels fall silent. The anqels' makinq liturqical room for Israel's declaration does not
in and of itself elevate the nation to anqelic
status, althouqh it does suqgest that Israel has a part to play in the hiqhest divine service.
on the other hand, the
first
65:21
portion
of
the
midrash
in
divinizing at least Israel the patriarch.
comes
close
to
The inclusion of
Israel in the imaqinal context of Ezekiel's throne-vision calls
to
mind
merkavah-excursions.
Yet
this
particular
combination of midrashim seems to present an at once more radical and more qeneral conception of Israel's relation to the heavens--one,
we miqht say,
that both encourages and
discourages extraordinary angelic experience.
The voice of
Jacob is inherently able to make the celestials fall silent, so influential is Israel among those who dwell on hiqh; yet no scaling of the heavens is necessary for this to be so.
All
Israelites who participate in the liturqical declaration of God's unity in earthly synagogues participate naturally in this power over the anqels. In Bemidbar Rabah 4:1, on the other hand, Jacob seems to serve as a prototype for the visionary voyaqer who sees God surrounded by the angelic host.
The passaqe is a commentary
on God's command to Moses to number the firstborn of Israel,
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
308
and it interprets the command in light of Isa.43:4, "Since you are precious in my sight ••• " 332 ,J,D~
17,7
nN 1~, ~~1~ ~~D,7 ~"~~~ 1nN 'lll lnN~~ lnN1~7 lN~, ,,W n1W~ ,JN,nl
N,7n91
17n~
~N1
n1~, 1WNn ,JN 71J,~JW ••• D1N l 197 lJW ~WN 117, ,1WN N,DWl~ '1 1nN lnlN D,1nwn1 ,,,D D,~~J 17W
The Holy One, blessed be He, said to Jacob, 'You are exceedingly precious in My sight, for, as it were, I and my ministering angels came out to meet you when you set out for PadanAram ••• R. Hoshaya said: Happy is the mortal who beheld such a thing, the King and His entourage standing over Him and guarding Him.
Joaepb In concluding this section on Israel's patriarchs, we should note briefly several midrashim in which the figure of Joseph is preternaturalized in angelic directions.
While not
many in number, these sources do indicate that the theme of angelic Israel is sustained throughout the midrashim on the nation's patriarchal line. According to Bemidbar Rabah 14 : 5, Joseph, like Jacob, was born circumcised.
We have already seen that, although it is
a siqn inscribed in the flesh, circumcision, and especially innate circumcision, often corresponds with belonging in the company
of
angels.
No
bright
light
fills
the
house of
Joseph's birth in this particular midrash, as happens in other narratives of patriarchal birth, but among the many ways in
332 4: 1 begin• by ••yinq that I•rael i• very preciou• in God' • •iqht becau•e hi• tmaqe i• fiqured on the divine throne and becau•e the anqel• prai•e God with I•rael'• n..a.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
301
which Joseph is likened to Jacob in Bemidbar Rabah 14:5 is the observation that
both were accompanied at some point by
anqels. Even more indicative of an affinity between Joseph and the anqels is a tradition, in the same section of Bemidbar Rabah (14:5), statinq that the anqel Gabriel added one letter from God's name to the name of Joseph, a reference to the appellation
~01~,
in Ps.81:6 (bSotah 31a also identifies the
added letter as cominq from God's involvement of Gabriel).
name,
but without the
This midrash reminds one of the
statement, in Bemidbar Rabah 2:12, that, throuqh the addition of a he, Abraham's name came to resemble God's name as the names of the anqels do. Gabriel,
It is also noteworthy that the anqel
in this midrash, not only adds a divine letter to
Joseph's name but also teaches him seventy lanquaqes--perhaps a
suqqestion that Joseph is to be heir to his
father's
position as divine viceroy over the entire world of humankind. Finally, we should note that a makinq
God's
qlory
manifest
is
tradition of Joseph's
woven
toqether,
also
in
Bemidbar Rabah, with two other midrashic passaqes that are important to the theme of anqelic Israel, appears Bemidbar
in several other connections. Rabah
14 : 3
comment
upon
the
each of which
The midrashim completion
of
in the
tabernacle in the wilderness and, by extension, upon Solomon's completion of the Jerusalem Temple.
These expositions are all
based upon Psalm 24 and its theme of God enterinq as the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
310 ll~J~ 1~n
"qlorious kinq,"
throuqh
D~lD
,1DW--"ancient," or,
in the rabbinic interpretation, "worldly qates. " 333 The first of the anqelifyinq midrashim in Bemidbar Rabah 14:3 is a now familiar likeninq of the blue of the frinqes--by way of the sea and the sky, and the cloud, and the throne of God-to the divine qlory itself, interpretinq "the kinq of qlory" to mean:
,,N,,~
ll~J ~~lrr Nl~W 1~n~,
qlory to those who fear Him." fear Him
tekbe~et,
"the Kinq who apportions
"God apportioned to those who
which resembles His own qlory," says this
particular midrash.
We have already seen a version of this
same passaqe connected with Abraham in the Midrash on Psalms 90: 18,
and we will encounter this theme aqain in a
section.
In its version in Bemidbar Rabah 14:3, this midrash
concludes: " 'And
let
il~J~
1~n N~,,
,,~ n~Jn
them place on
tekbelet' --that is, midrash
later
suqqests
the
~,ng ~JJ~ n,~,~
corner
fr inqe
a
~D
llnll--
thread
'Let the Kinq of Glory enter. '"
that
by
wearinq
tekhelet,
the
of The
earthly
faithful walk about representinq God's heavenly qlory, makinq that qlory manifest in the world. The second of the relevant midrashim in Bemidbar Rabah 14:3 also interprets "the Kinq of qlory" to mean "the Kinq who
apportions of his qlory to those who fear Him."
The midrash
observes that, while one would not dare sit on the throne of an earthly kinq or borrow his qarments or use his scepter, the
333
We will have occa•ion to examine two of the miclra•him that occur in Beaai.dbar Rabah 14: 3 in later •ection• of thi• chapter.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
311
Holy One, blessed be He, allows various biblical heroes to partake in these trappings of His glory. Following these two midrashic segments, extend divine qlory and splendor to
both of which
elect human
beings,
Bemidbar Rabah 14:3 turns back to Joseph and to Gen 39, in which Potiphar observes that God is with Joseph. says of God's dealings with Joseph, c,~,M~
nM M,,
~,~w
'u
~'rr
Ml~W
~,i~~ ~0,,, il~J--"God
The midrash
il~J~
1'n
M~,,
apportioned glory
to Joseph the righteous because he was godfearing."
God
becomes manifest to Potiphar through Joseph in this midrash. We do not find Joseph angelified in the classical midrashic sources to anythinq like the extent that we have seen in pseudepiqraphic sources (most notably Joseph and Asenath).
On
the other hand, it is clear that Joseph is not left out of the sequence of
patriarchs who are elevated to preternatural
status and who acquire the angel-like ability to represent God's glory to other beings (at least in Bemidbar Rabah).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
312
Levi, Aaron, 'tile
Ange~ic
Priest:bood, and t:be
f'e•p~e
1nNJW D,lo~~ N~N ll~n l,N ll~n NloW~ ~N1W, D,~,~rr c,ll ~,n c~~ 1nN, 1J,o~N ,n1wn 1M1~n 'o ,Jo~ cnM1 l,M llJn MloW~ tl,Jo~ l,:J,~n ,,n,nn tli1~J:J1 1~JMTI nu• 11nw, loJ ,ngw ,J 'MJW n1wo ,JM~n~ M~M llJn M1o n1M:J~ '~ lM~n ,J ,~,gn 1w~~, o11n1 Dear are Israel, for when [God] calls them by a byname, He calls them 'priests,' as it is said, "You shall be called 'Priests of the Lord,' and 'Servants of our God," shall be said to you; you shall eat the wealth of nations and revel in their glory" (Isa.61:6). Dear are the Priests, for when [God] calls them by a byname, He calls them 'ministering angels,' as it is said, "For the lips of the Priest shall guard knowledge and they shall seek the Law at his mouth, for he is the messenger [or 'angel'] of the Lord of Hosts" (Mal.2:7). Sifre Bemidbar 119
Perhaps the most famous suggestion of affinity between the priesthood and the celestial realm is aqadic anecdote in which Alexander the qreat falls prostrate at the feet of the High Priest, Simeon the Just, the great king explaining to his astonished minions, "When I go into battle, I see his image and am victorious."
The High Priest in that narrative is, at
the very least, made out to be an image of the angel of the Lord.
In a lesser known midrash, the sense of reflected imaqe
vanishes and the Hiqh Priest seems actually to assume the hiqhest angelic office, at least temporarily. question appears in Pesikta Rabati 4 7,
The passage in
in the course of a
discourse delivered to Job by God, and it reads as follows:
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
313 N~l,~ 0~1D~ n1,1~~ il~~ ,n~~,n N~W 11~N 1n ~nN ~lil C,Wi~~ ,Wi~ n,~~ CJJJ1 Wil~ ,Wl~~ ~JnW Wl~~ ~,~W 1~ ~~N~ ~,~, N~ OiN ~Jl ,1,J9~n C,n11~ n1W~ ,JN~n1
nlnil
C~,J9 c,n,,~, ilnD~
il~J
o,J~J~
n1W~ ,JN~n l~,N 1~ c,~~1n ,,~w l~J,
N~l
n,~~
(T", T"tJ N1~, 1) iDln 'N ~N~Tn,) CiN ,J9
(',
N~n
~,~
,i,~Jl
,1,J9~n
(N",
'n 'N O,J~n) '~ il~J N~n ,J lJD~ , J9n n1W~ ,il~J nN ~~0n1 [il~J] 1~ ~~1n ,n,,~ OJJJ Nl~W 1nT~l 1WJ ~,~l, 1,9 ~DON ~l,N 1nNW Nl~ C,~l1J~ ,JW l,~n ~,~ln ~~~~~~ ~,~ 1,9 ~D NnlnJn ,, 1nN (T"J tJ"~ ~l,N) 11~N ~w 1no,JJ~ o,~,,J~ ,Jw [l,~n] (1,~) lil~J nN (N", ~~~~ C,1~i) ll~ 1,D, 1WJJ ~~~~~~ ~T 1WJ ~,~l, [~il~nl D~O lW ~D] lJl~n,l llJW, D~O lJ~ 1,D, ,Jl (,WN1) 0,1n ,n,,~W 9 11 DN (n"Jl /T"J \:1 11 ~/ OW OW ~l,N) 1Tln ~,~ N~l, ~,~wn lJW, D~O N~N lnO,JJ~ ,il~J .n,~~ nN N~nn1
[Said God to Job:] You are even greater than Aaron, to whom I apportioned glory as to no other creature in the world--for he wore eight garments of holiness and entered the chamber of the Holy of Holies, and the ministering angels would flee before him [as it is said] 'And no man shall be in the Tent of Meeting' (Lev.16:17), [which speaks of] the ministering angels [of whom it is said] 'and their faces, the face of a man' (Ez.1:10), and they would give him glory and flee before him, and My glory would fill the House, 'and the priests would not be able to stand and serve for the cloud for it was full of the glory of God' (1Kgs. 8:11). And when he entered, I [myself] would give glory to him and remove my glory from between the two cherubim. It was of this that Job said, 'Does the eagle soar at your command?' (Job 39:27). R. Tanhuma [explained]: "At your command"--the Holy One, blessed be He, would lift up His glory from between the cherubim when Aaron entered; "does the eagle soar"-- [refers to] the Holy One, blessed be He. "Building his nest on high," (Deut. 32:11, parallel to the rejoinder in Job.39:27) 'And shall he build his nest on high? He shall dwell and lodge in the rock, '(a reading of Job 39:27 and part of 28). Even though I would lift up my glory when he entered, still [according with] 'dwell and lodge in the rock,' once he exited I would return and fill the House. Standing in the Holy of Holies on the Day of Atonement, the High Priest occupies the place normally inhabited by God's own
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
314
glory.
our
midrash seems to push this idea toward its most
extreme possible implication.
The angels depart from Aaron's
path, not because Aaron is unfit to be in their presence, but rather in deference to his auqust approach.
If God's removing
of His own glory from between the two cherubim follows this same narrative trajectory,
then we come to the remarkable
possibility that God momentarily allows the High Priest to assume the place of God's own glory in the sanctum.
If this
is the sense of the midrash, then the high priestly role is conceived here not only in terms of apotheosis, but in terms of something like hypostasis as well.
That is to say, Aaron,
in the inner sanctum, does not only appear as an angel-like minister, approaching God.
At least temporarily, he himself
also becomes the representational figure of God's glory in the Temple's holy of holies, the entity through whom God projects, reciprocally, outward toward humanity. 334 In Vayikra Rabah 21: 12 a
transformation of the high
priest, during the same service,
is quite explicit.
This
midrash is an exegesis of the prescription in Lev.16:17, that "no man shall be
in the Tent of Meeting"
during Aaron's
service, which it reads to mean that the priest himself, in the course of that service, could no longer be termed 'man.' N1~~~ N~N ~,~ OiN ,,Jg ,,~ ,,~n ,,,w nni 11nw, 1~~ ,ngw ,~ c~ 1
1 1nNi
n11n1~
N~
~1il
Wi1~~
,~N~n)
1~~1
rr11
1~~N
~,~w
i"~~
'1 1nN orrJg
~nw~
,,~n
c,i,9~J • I
334 !'letcber-Loui• arrive• at a Prie•tly role in Daniel (l997b).
1l 1
•imilar conception of the Bigb
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
315
Said R. Abahu: The High Priest himself was not a 'man' [at that moment], but rather, as R. Pinchas said: When the Holy Spirit was resting upon him his face flamed as torches on him. 335 Of this it is written, "For the lips of a priest shall guard knowledge ••• " (Mal.2:7). The
quoted
prooftext,
the
beginning
of
Mal.2:7,
should
certainly be understood as pointing to the verse's end: Ml~ nlM~~
'n
lM~n,
,J
which can easily be read to mean, "for he
is the angel of the Lord of Hosts. " 336
An angelification of
the Hiqh Priest could scarcely be stronger or more direct.
If
the Temple and the Heavens converge, in rabbinic thought, then the High Priest himself, in these midrashim, is the focal and most bivalent point of the convergence.
335
An intriguing parallel to this passage exists in Vayikra Rabah 1:1 where, in a discussion of the biblical Pinchaa, we read 11n,o ,~, ,nN C,T,97~ nl,Dl~ l,l9 l,n 1,7D ,,,~ WTl~n ITl, ~n,~W ~DW3 OITl9. Some manuscripts of 1:1 attribute that statement to R. Pinchae, so that the opening reads crrJg ,~, ,nM. The statement is integral to ita context in 1:1, which we can therefore confidently call ita origin&~ home. There seem to be two possibilities with regard to these parallel sources and their attributions: l) The tradition was actually received from R. Pinchaa, and, when integrated into the present midraah, it was adapted to apeak generally of •the high priest, • the original reference to the biblical Pinchaa being left out. 2) The attribution to R. Simon in moat MSS of 1:1 is correct; when the tradition was integrated into the present midraah and generalized, it was incorrectly remembered as having been attributed to R. Pinchaa rather than referring to the biblical Pinchaa; and the mistaken attribution toR. Pinchaa, having become an accepted part of this present midraah, was then transferred back into some versions of 1:1, in lieu of R. Simon, as the attribution for the camment on the biblical Pinchaa. I am inclined toward the second possibility, especially because there is no apparent reason for the attribution of the tradition in 1:1 to have been changed from R. Pinchaa to R. Simon, whereas this possibility explains a change from R. Simon to R. Pinchaa. 336
As opposed to, •for he is a messenger of the God of Boats.• It is not uncommon in midraah for the first clause of a verse to be quoted when a later part of the verse is actually moat relevant. Here this convention has the effect of an esoteric circumlocution. Rather than identifying the High Priest as the Angel of the Lord of Boats, point blank, the quotation of the first part of the verse causes the identification to take shape in the listener•• mind as an unspoken and secret reality.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
311
A further indication of the High Priest's manifesting God's glory can be seen in the following warning in the Talmud Bavli's tractate Chagigah 16a: w,,i i1,Jn111nn , ,JnrrJ ,~,~ i1ili, ,~, W1i ,nWj7~ :nli1J l,l,D C,1~i i1W~W~ ~JnOni1 01,~ llD~ i1,i1, 1WN nWj7i1 i1N1n:J ~,n:Ji nWj7~ .O,li1J~l 1~in~+ ~,n:Ji N,WJ~ ,'i1 il~J nlni i1N1n Nli1 OWli1 Wii7ni1 n,~w 1nt~ c,Ji1J~ ~Jnoni1 _,,~u lili1n nnJl +T"J OW~ ~N1W, nN 1,J1~n1 ll:Jli ~D l,inlD 1,i1W ,D,,i7 W1 1~Jni1 ~J
:W,i7~
,N,Wl~l
R. Judah son of R. Nachmani, the meturgeman of Reish Lakish exposited: Whosoever looks upon [these) three things, his eyes become dim--upon the rainbow, upon the chieftain, and upon the priests. Upon the rainbow, for it is written, 'Like the appearance of the bow that is in the cloud on a day of rain, so was the appearance of the likeness of the glory of the Lord' (Ezek.1). Upon the prince, for it is written, 'And you shall bestow of your splendor upon him' (Num,27). Whosoever looks upon the priests--[that is] when the Temple stood and they would stand upon the platform and bless Israel with the explicit name. As bearers of God's name, the priests manifest a glory similar to that of the rainbow of Ezekiel's vision and similar to the radiance that Moses transfers from himself to the chieftains. The use of Ezekiel's vision in this midrash makes it clear that the hazard in gazing upon the sights mentioned is the danger of contemplating God's own glory. The statement that the High Priest was not a man when he served in the holy of holies,
in Vayikra Rabah 21: 12,
is
immediately preceded by another tradition that seems to point to
a
convergence
of
priest
and
angel.
The
passage
is
paralleled in the Talmud Yerushalmi in tractate Yoma 42c, where the tradition is more clearly formulated:
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
317
i1lUJ:l 1 i1.,1"Tl i1l1i1::l~ jPi~i1 11ll1JW UinUl i1JW 'D,ll~1M i1nM l::l,i1n ,., 11nM nn ,nM nMTi1 i1JUl~ 1i1., 1nM i1J11nMi1 Ul"Tlj1 n,~., Ol:JJ ,n,,i1Ul i1JW1 i1JUl .,:J li1., 1nM llil, ,nn Ol:Jl 'D,l~., ~1nn1 'D,J~., Wl~., inN li1T i1,i1 'D,Wij1i1 ,nn ~, M.,, ,nn OJ:JJ 1Ti1 i1JUl~1 ,nn M~,,
Forty years Sillleon the Just served in the High Priesthood, and in the last year he told them, This year I shall die. They said to him, How do you know? He said to thea, Every year, when I entered the holy of holies, an old man clothed in white and wrapped in white would enter with me and come out with me. This year he entered with me and did not come out with me. Recalling that no man should be in the tent or temple while the High Priest is in the holy of holies, R. Abahu suggests, in an explanation attached to both the Yerushalmi's version of this agadah and Vayikra Rabah's, that the mysterious figure was none other than the Holy One, blessed be He, Himself.
On
the one hand, the narrative itself seems rather to indicate some sort of angelic alter ego who, in the last year of the High
Priest's
life,
rejoins
the
heavenly
world,
passing
through the portal of the holy of holies, as it were, leaving the mortal counterpart to finish out a final year of earthly on the other hand, R. Abahu's explanation, that the
life.
figure is God, indicates a rabbinic comfort with the notion of a close intimacy between the High Priest and the manifest Divine. We have seen already that knowledge of the future is a privilege that patriarchs.
figures
in the angelification of
Israel's
The High Priest, too, at least at the culmination
of his service on the Day of Atonement, receives revelations of the
future
according to
Pesikta Rabati
47.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
In that
318
midrash, God says of the High Priest, ~,rr,7
,JN
~n
17
~7ln
,n,,~
nlWD7 ,,nu--"I would reveal to him what I would do in
the distant future."
This tradition is represented in Vayikra
Rabah as well, but there the High Priest divines the future by watching the column of smoke ascend from the altar, whereas in Pesikta Rabati the revelation seems more in the nature of an intimate confidence between God and the High Priest. We have seen Adam in the Garden of Eden aggrandized by midrash in terms of his "partition"
(~~,nn)
being inward of
that of the ministering angels.
A similar parlance is used in
connection with Aaron's sons,
Nadav and Avihu,
in Pesikta
Rabati 47, where God has Moses tell Aaron that his sons' death has come as a result of their having been stationed nl~,nn~--"inward
The expression
7~n
C,J97
of all the partitions"--even that of Moses. is explained graphically,
in terms
of the
physical scheme of Israel's encampment, but the inwardness of the priestly camp remains preternaturally charged in view of Nadav and Avihu's fiery death. A
scattering
of
passages
throughout
Bemidbar
Rabah
maintains a theme of Levi's exaltation in ways that indicate a particular link between the priestly tribe and the heavens. Just
as
a
miraculous well
is
said to have
followed
the
Israelites through the desert on account of Miriam, clouds of glory accompany Israel on account of Aaron in Bemidbar Rabah 1:2 and 13:20 (and in Vayikra Rabah 27:6).
Bemidbar Rabah
19:20 explains Israel's vulnerability to Amalek, in the wake
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
311
of Aaron's death, in terms of the removal of these clouds, and also has the Israelites expressinq disbelief at Aaron's death, inasmuch as he was "a man who withstood the anqel of death and had restrained him," referrinq to Aaron's avertinq of the plaque in Num. 17: 13 •
In Bemidbar Rabah 1: 12, the exclusion of
the house of Levi from the national census is explained by way of the parable of a king who tells his chief of staff, "Go and number the leqions except for my own personal one," implyinq that the children of Levi constitutes God's personal quard. Bemidbar Rabah 3 : 1 applies the reference to the cedars of Lebanon
in
Ps. 92:14
to
the
tribe
of
Levi,
calling
them
"qreater than all Israel," and goes on to say that God "chose only the sons of Levi alone to serve as His ministers. " Bemidbar Rabah 6:10, considering the provision, in oeut.18:7, for Levites from outlying towns to minister "in the name of the Lord" with their brethren in the Temple, asks, "What is the kind of ministerinq that can be described as being 'in the name of the Lord' song.
(Deut.18:7)?" and answers that i t must be
Sonq in and of its self is not enough to indicate
identification
with
the
celestials,
although
principal occupation of the ministering angels.
sonq
is
a
However,
Bemidbar Rabah 15:11 adds to the equation that the Levites would "sing in the presence of Him at Whose Word the World was created," a description that corresponds exactly to the office of the ministerinq anqels.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
320
We have already seen the addition of a
letter be to
Abraham's name interpreted as an angelification, and we have seen
the
addition
of
a
he
to
Joseph's
name
in
Ps.81:6
interpreted as having been effected by the angel Gabriel when he qave Joseph knowledge of seventy languages. Rabah 6:8 the appellation
,nn~n
In Bemidbar
nngwn (rather than
nn~
,J~)
for the levitical sons of Kohath, in Num.4, is explained as follows: cnnu 1nw
n"J~n ~,,~ 111Mn nJ,DO ow~ n,n oJ,Jnw ,g~ n", ,,n 1910J i"l,l 1WN1~ M"n l~J, M~W ,iJ
Because their assignment was to bear the ark, the Holy One, blessed be He, combined His own name with theirs to save them from beinq consumed. He placed a be at the beqinninq of the name and a yod at then end of it, thus makinq Yah. Apparently, the sons of Kohath perform an office which would be deadly to human beinqs unprotected by a certain deqree of
affinity with the divine. The notion that an ability to tolerate divine fire is required
for
service
in the Temple appears aqain
in the
Midrash on Psalms (15:2): 'n DlNJ n~ n,nM ,JN1 ~1nJn 1nNw nr l,~nMJ 11l, ,n o,J9Jn nJ1nJ n,nM i1JJ~1 p1n~n ~,~o ~,~o WM nn1n n11w~ ~,J, ,n o,Jg~n il~J1 p1n:1n WN nn1n DN ili 1nN 17nMJ 11l, ,n 1n1M ,,n nJlnJ "Who shall abide in Your tabernacle?" (Ps.l5:1) This is to be considered in liqbt of what scripture says elsewhere: "Jerusalem shall be inhabited without walls ••• For I, says the Lord, will be for her a wall of fire round about"--that is, in the area outside the walls--•and I will be the qlory in the midst of her" ( Zecb. 2: 8-9) --that is, in the area inside the walls. David said, If there is a wall of fire in the area outside, and the qlory is in the area inside, bow can anyone bear to abide in
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
321
Jerusalem? That is to say, Your tabernacle?"
"Who shall abide in
It is not surprising that serving
in the Temple
is
thought of in classical rabbinic literature as officiating in the immediate and dangerous presence of God. famously
promises
to
dwell
upon Mount
After all, God
Zion,
and
in
its
sanctuary, and God conspicuously takes up residence in the wilderness-tabernacle and in the Temple in several biblical accounts.
The very notion of God's dwelling in the Temple
renders the priestly and levitical offices analogous to the roles of the angels who serve in the heavenly throne room where God is also manifest. More remarkable, and beyond mere analogy, are rabbinic sources that preternaturalize the earthly Temple, making the Temple
continuous
with
the
heavens,
thus
raising
the
participants in the Temple's rites above mundane existence to a station for which only angels can serve as paradigm.
Very
much as we have seen in the literature of Qumran, the angels in heaven can appear as place-holders, in such a scheme, for the human priesthood, which would perform angelic functions and be preferred by God if all were right with the world. In Bereshit Rabah 3:9, the elevation of Israel and its priestly sanctum to cosmic preeminence is essential to the plan of creation.
The world is not complete, according to
this midrash, until the construction of the tabernacle.
The
midrash is built upon the cardinal, rather than ordinal naming of creation's first day:
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
322 ~w 1n,,,~ n~nnn ,nN ,~ ~N1nw 1"N ON 1W9J ~n O,J1nnn~ n19n1W n1WD~ ,JW 1 1WN1 1N ~W~W O,JW inN N~N 1n,n~ 1,1~ ~,~ ~"~~~ 0~~ D19 ,nn,N N~nnN ,W,~W ,JW inN NnW ,W,~Wl 01,~ ~,,~n~ ,~,, (T ,~in~) 1nNJW 1~wn~ nn~~~ 1~~~ ~"~~~ 1nN O~lD ~W 1n,,,~~ 1 1WN1 1J~1~ nN 1 1WN1~ ,n~lD nN ,nN1~ 01, lnlN~ l~,N~ ~"~~~
N~
~1Nnl
11~~
o~1D
1,lD~
Said R. Shemuel b. ADlP 37 : From the beqinninq of the creation of the world, the Holy one Blessed be He yearned to make a partnership with those below. 338 For, as a matter of reckoninq, the text ouqht to read "one, two, three" or "first, second, third;" whereas at "one, second, third" I should be astonished! When did the Holy One Blessed be He make it up to them [i.e. restore the missing "first" 1? Further on, in the [account of 1 the raisinq of the tabernacle, as it is said, "And the one who sacrificed his sacrifice on the first day ••• "--the first day of the creation of the world. Said the Holy One, blessed be He: It is as if, on that day, I created my world. The intended order of the world, according to this midrash, is not achieved until Israel fashions below, on earth.
a
throne-room for God
Accordinq to Bemidbar Rabah 12: 12 the world,
before the buildinq of the tabernacle, was like "a camp-chair with only two leqs that cannot stand erect and wobbles, but when they make for it a third leq it becomes steady and stands firm."
The metaphor is familiar to us from God's revelation
to Jacob that he is the "third leg of the chair." there
is
structure
that of
Israel
the
is
integral
cosmos--and,
in
and this
The message
essential account,
to
the
Israel's
337
In the parallel in Bealidbar Rabah 13: 6 the attribution i• to Sh.auel bar Ab&. 338 In the parallel in Bealidbar Rabah 13: 6 r o,Jlnnn3--•to dwell among tho•• below.•
the text read• r
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
1 JW'l
323
essential contribution to the order of the world is the levitical sanctum. Bemidbar Rabah 12: 13 qoes on to amplify the importance of the
earthly
temple,
siqnificance. nN, which,
aqain
qivinq
the
structure
cosmic
The midrash seems to be based on the particle
beinq comprised of the first and last letters of
the Hebrew alphabet suqqests the totality of the world: CW~ 7~N ,11~W C71D~ ilJJ 71~W Nl~W 1Jwn~ nN ' l l l c,~7N N1~ n,w~n~ J.,nJ i:~PJ 7~N ,,1~
n 1 D, 1 ,
n, tmJ 1
J., n~
1 JumJ. 1
1ITN 1~i 1Jwn~w
iln, 1 , ~ c, nw iln 1 J J., n~ 1 ' l l l 1Jwni1 7D 7i11N7 C,TD
Another exposition: The expression "et the tabernacle" denotes that its importance was equal to that of the world, which is called 'tent,' even as the tabernacle is called 'tent.' How can the statement be supported? It is written, "In the beqinninq, God created the heaven" (Gen.1:1), and it is written, "Who stretches out the heaven like a curtain" (Ps.104:2), while of the tabernacle it is written, And you shall make curtains of qoats hair for a tent over the tabernacle. This midrash qoes on to correlate the particulars of the temple to the elements of creation: the veil to the firmament, the laver to the waters, the candelabrum to the stars, and so forth.
That is, the tabernacle is entirely symbolic of the
cosmos--and it is equally as important,
accordinq to this
midrash. Bemidbar Rabah 4: 13 similarly correlates the features of the
tabernacle
to
the
heavenly throne-room. seems
furnishinqs
and
phenomena
In this midrash, however,
qradually to qive way
to
a
notion
of
of
the
symbolism
ontoloqical
correspondence, and to the idea of an actual openness of the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
324
heavens to the earth at the locus of the Temple. relevant
passages
begin
with
a
importance, attributed toR. Natan: ~~Dn
~w--"Precious
statement
of
The most the
ark's
i1~~~ NO~~ 111N~ ~mnn ~,~rr
[in God's sight] was the construction of
the ark as that of the throne of glory on high." then goes on to frame a
The text
correlation of the heavenly and
earthly sancta, as follows: 1l J ~ 11 1N~ 1 i1~un ~w W1i7ni1 n, ~ i l J ~ 111 ~n Wii7nilw ~Dnn 0,1n1n D~W D,91W~ n119~ 1Jn,~ il~Dn~ i1WD NO~il i1,i1W ?1N1 D,nw ilJ~ D,~,~IT D~W 0,~11~ ,JW 1~ i1WD 1~ DW~1 '1l1 i1Tn i1~j7n 1ITN 11~ 'NJW il"~i7il ~W 1~W1n D~~ 11~1N nN 1~ 'i1 ITn9, 1nNJW ?1N~ 11~1N nN ITn19 D,nWilW c,~,,~i1 '~n i1~un~ i1J1nJ i1J,JW~ 1~ c,nwil nN ~1tJi1 W,N D~,J91 1nNJW i1T~ i1T O,J11Jn Oil i1Tn1 ilTn 1,J1nJW 11,~n 'NJW il"~i7i1 ilJ~ 111Jnw 11~~il NO~ 1lJJ 1,ITN ~N n,91il o,il~N ,g,, ~~~n The position of the [terrestrial] sanctuary corresponds with that of the heavenly Temple, and the (position of the] ark with that of the heavenly throne. He made a cover above [the ark] to symbolize the seraphim which stand above Him. He made two cherubim, which were precious, corresponding to the heavens and the earth, upon which was the seat of the Holy One, blessed be He, as it says, "One cherub at the one end and one cherub at the other end" (Ex.25:19). And just as the heaven opens its treasure for the earth, as it says, "The Lord will open for you His good treasure, the heaven, to give the rain of your land" (Deut.28:12), so the Schekhinah was placed above the two cherubim that were placed on either side. They were placed facing one another, as it says: "With their faces one to the other" (Ex.25:20), corresponding to the throne of glory, which was placed vis a vis the Holy one, blessed be He, as it says: "Out of Zion, the perfection of beauty, God has shone forth" (Ps.50:2) This midrash seems to perch in ambivalence between symbolism and actuality, even as the tabernacle it describes seems to quaver between heavenly and earthly realities.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
On the one
325
hand, the seraphim of the heavens are paralleled by the woven ark-coverinq, and the two facinq cherubim symbolize the facinq heavenly
and
Shekhinah
earthly
actually
realms.
sits
On
between
the these
other
hand,
fiqured
God's
cherubim,
accordinq to this midrash, and God's qlory actually shines forth from the Temple in Zion, the treasury of the heavens open to the earth throuqh the speculum of the sanctum. The correlation of the tabernacle with the hiqher reaches of the cosmos is more on the fiqurative end of the spectrum in a
frequently
repeated
midrashic
correlation
of
the
tabernacle's "boards of acacia wood standinq up" (Ex.26:15) and the seraphim who stand in God's heavenly court in Isa.6:2. The connection seems entirely fiqurative (especially in view of a
tradition attributed to R.
Chiya,
which
immediately
follows in the versions in Shemot Rabah 35:5, Shir Hashirim Rabah 3: 2,
and Pesikta Derav Kahana 1,
and Yalkut Shimoni
Terumah (369), accordinq to which the qolden clasps of the tabernacle resemble the stars in heaven). a
parallel text
in Shemot Rabah
35:6
On the other hand, finds
the heavenly
symbolism of the Temple sufficient to invite a transposition of God's presence from the anqelic court into the earthly sanctum: ~w ,~w 11a,~~Jo n,Jn ,JM ~an~ ~~un ~w ~n1M~ ~wun eM c,in1D n,g,w l~Dn~ ~n ~an~ o~,l,~ ,nJ,~w ~,wn, ~~nn 1~ 1un~ ,M n,~~,~ ~~un~ ~n n,in1D n,aw ,~u ~un~ ,M
If you make somethinq like what is on hiqh below, then I will forsake my heavenly senate and cause my shelcbi.nab to dwell amonq you below. Just as above •seraphim stand," so below "boards of acacia wood
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
321
stand. " below. 339 In
Just as above there are stars,
Beaidbar
Rabah
15:4
and
15:10,
so too
when
Moses
has
difficulty understanding the instructions for the fashioning of the tabernacle's furniture, God points to the objects with a finger {15:4) or shows Moses a firey exemplar {15:10), as though the details of the sanctuary to be built below already surround God in the heavens {and as though Moses were in the heavens to see them, a theme to which we shall return). Bemidbar Rabah
15:4,
God
finally
assures Moses
In
that the
earthly candelabrum will take shape of its own accord in the furnace;
but
accordinq
to
R.
Levi
candlestick came down from heaven."
in
15:10,
"A
pure
The notion of a heaven-
sent candelabrum adds an element of actual continuity between the
heavenly
and
earthly
actually contains a
sancta.
The
tabernacle
piece of heaven's furniture,
below
in this
interpretation. 340 A convergence of
the
terrestrial
sanctuary
and
the
heavens occurs also in Vayikra Rabah 6: 3 , where the dimensions
339
In Bemidbar Rabah 12:8 God makes Koaea the same promise, with a alight change in wording: ~~w tlo~~~Jo n~Jn ~lM oun~ o~un~m on ~WlD ~nM oM ~on~ o~~l~~ ~nl~Jm o~3M1 l1M1 ~~Dn ~w--•If you make (something like) that which ia above below, I will leave my senate on high and come down and concentrate my Shekhinah between them below. • The odd plural at the end of this veraion--~on~ o~~l~~ (among eh . . below) ia probably a result of this passage's being borrowed directly from Vayikra Rabah 29:4, where God ia said to leave his heavenly senate to concentrate Ria presence among the rabbinic elders below who intercalate the calendar: 1~w 1 ~a~~~lo TP ln ~un~
o~~l~~
1n1~Jm 03n~1.
340
According to the iaiDediately preceding midraah at the end of 15:9, it was in the light of this seven-branched lamp that God constrained himself to dwell.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
327
of the doors of the earthly Temple are correlated with the size of the flyinq scroll that fiqures Isaiah's vision of God's heavenly throne-room (Isa.6). the expression
,n,J~ ~JJ
In Bemidbar Rabah 14:3,
(I have surely built) in IKi.8:13 is
interpreted, in a tradition ascribed to R. Judah b. Ezekiel, as meaninq, "I have built a house already built," a notion that we miqht better understand in view of the declaration, attributed to R. Shimeon b. Yochai in Bereshit Rabah 69:7, that the celestial Temple hovers, like a heavenly template, only eiqhteen mil above its terrestrial counterpart.
Had the
heathen been able to break into the heavens, says the Midrash on Psalms (64), they would have done so, but, since they could not, they tore down the sanctuary on earth. We should also take note of the tradition, attributed to R. Berakhia in the name of R. Yitzchak in Bereshit Rabah 3:4, that the liqht of the world was created from the place of the Correspondinqly,
Temple.
in
Vayikra
Rabah
31:7,
the
architecture of the Temple is described in terms of its beinq the source of liqht: w•~n~ n,J~ ,,~ n1J1~rr NJ,Jrr 1"N WlPl (TN C,J~n) 1nNJW C~lD~ n1~,rr1n1 c,Jg~n n1J,tJi2n ,,~ nlnHJN n15Jli7W c,nHJN ~JJW l~n~ ~wn ,,~ 1"N C~lD~ ~11N N,~,~~ ,IJ fliT~n N~,,
~11N ~n,~
0,5Jl~W
,Jl~IT
n1~,rr1n1
c~n1
n,~~
flrr~n
n,~ ~w n1J1~rr flrr~n n1~,rr1n1
nlJ,c~n
,,nlJl~rr
~wu1
1,~~10
1~
'1~M ~~,n~ ~11N o,JJ~'1 ,~~ c,Jg~n o,Jg~n n1J,Oi2n N~N 1~ ,,~ N~ Wlj2n~ [ ••• ] ~'11il ~11N N,~1~'1 ,~~
Said R. Chanina: There were windows in the Temple, and from them liqht would qo out to the world, as it is said, "And for the house he made windows broad and narrow• ( lK. 6: 4) • They were narrow within and broad without, so as to let liqht out to
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
328
the world. Said R. Levi, a parable may be told of a kinq who built a hall and made its windows narrow outside and wide within, so as to brinq liqht in; whereas the windows of the Temple were not so, but were narrow within and wide without, so as to let out qreat liqht. Both Bereshit Rabah 3:4 and Vayikra Rabah 31:7 include a tradition statinq that God qave light to the world by wrappinq Himself
in a
radiant garment.
To the perplexity of his
colleaques--who find explicit reference to God's wrappinq Himself in light in Ps.104:2--R. Shemuel b. Nachman relates the
idea
in
danqerous. 341
a
whisper,
as
though
it
were
esoteric
and
In both sources, the tradition is followed by
this passaqe: 1W9N il,il M'7 D,:J1:J j1mi, '1 ilW11W ,'71'7M il,J1:J 1"M ,, cw:J il,J1:J 1"M 1,1n1M lllil iln lJ 1n ,ni11 il1n1M'7 l"ilil c'71D'7 nN~,, i111M own W"Ti7nil n,J Dli7nn i7mi, D,lj1i1 111n M:J '7N1W, ,il'7M 11JJ i1Ji11 (ln '7Mi7TTP) lll:JJ l,Nl lll:JJn i11,Mil p1Mi11 D,:J1 D,n '71j7J 1'71j71 D11n llJJ NOJ (T, il,n,,) 1nN nMI ilnJ Wlj1ni1 n,:J M'7M .1JW"Tj1n Dlj1n 11WM1n
Said R. Berakhiah, if R. Yitzhak had not exposited the same in public, it would be impossible to say (out loud]. And before that (i.e before R. Yitzhak's exposition], what would they answer (to the question of where liqht oriqinated]? Said R. Berakhiah in the name of R. Yitzchak: From the place of the Temple, from thence light would qo out to the world. Thus it is written, " (Ezek.43:2) "And behold, the qlory of the God of Israel came from the way of the East, and his voice was like the sound of many waters, and the earth shone with His qlory" , and "His qlory• can mean only the Temple, as you say, "A qlorious throne, exalted from the first, is the place of our Temple." (Jer.17:12)
341
R. Shemuel b. Racbman explain• h~aelf by •ayinq, •since I heard it in a whiaper I relate it in a whi•per.•
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
321
This depiction of the Temple as,
not only God's earthly
residence, but also the source of the world's light, certainly preternaturalizes the Temple in a heavenly direction. Bereshit Rabah 70:8, and in Pesikta Rabati
(Piska 1) ,
In the
Temple is also portrayed as the place through which rsrael imbibed the divine spirit, a form of sustenance that we have seen associated with the angels in heaven. The midrashim that we have just seen are important to the theme of angelic Israel in that they liken the tabernacle or Temple to the heavens, and sometimes depict the heavenly and earthly realms as converging or connected at the locus of the Temple.
Beyond
the
sources
we
have
seen
that
angelify
rsrael's priesthood explicitly, these ones suggest that human beings
who
serve
in
the
sanctuary
inhabit
and
enact
a
celestial reality. We should note that the rabbinic theme of rivalry between angels and human beings, identified and explored especially by Peter
Schaefe~ 42 ,
Psalms (8)
emerges quite clearly in the Midrash on
in connection with the divine relocation to the
Temple.
rn the Midrash on Psalms,
complain,
"Master of the Universe,
the
angels
not only
'what is man that you
should be mindful of him?'" but even jealously and petulantly pelt stones at rsrael in fulfillment of Ps.68:13, "Kings of heavenly hosts cast (yidodun), they cast," as if the angels were immature and envious siblings. 342
P. Schafer (1975).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
330
Also important to the theme of angelic Israel is the notion that the construction of the tabernacle,
and God's
leaving the heavenly court to take up residence below,
is
actually a return to an original state of affairs in which God resided in Adaa's realm.
We have already seen the agadic
notion that God initially intended to have an earthly abode, and to be surrounded by human ministers.
In Bemidbar Rabah
12:6, a midrash attributed to R. Shimon b. Yochai interprets the
,~,,
("and it came to pass") of Num.7:1, referring to the
day of the tabernacle's completion, as follows: ~nN lJW ~, mll n1nJ'2 1 T1n1 i1C9 1 ~, ~ 1J. 1 1nN , "J.Ul1 w"nJ o,J,nnnJ. ~l,JW~ ~n1Ul c'21n '2w 1n,,,J. n'2nnn N~ln ~i1'2nOlW ll,Jl 'lll llJ. 1'2~nn D,~'2N '~ '21i1 nN lDnW,l 1Jwn~ Cj11~W iD ~11, N'2 J.1W DiN N~nUl nnJ. ~l,JW~
R. Shimon b. Yochai said, it was something that, having already been in existence, had ceased, and now returned to its previous state. You find that from the beginning of the world's creation the Shekhinah had dwelt in this lower world, as it says: "And they heard the voice of the Lord God walking in the garden" (Gen.J:S); but once the Shekhinah departed, at the time when Adam sinned, it did not descend again until the Tabernacle had been erected. The original lot of humankind, according to this midrash, is one of intimate, not to say angelic, proximity to God.
The
same idea is expressed also in Bemidbar Rabah 13:2, where the parable is told of a king who became angry with his lady and drove her away--i.e.
Israel was originally intended to be
intimate with God.
God's willingness to be present and
receive sacririces in the earthly Temple, instead of merely enjoying their fragrance in the heavens,
is the token of
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
331
affection that entices the king's lady--that is, Israel--back to fidelity in this agadah. 343 Bemidbar Rabah 13:2 goes on to include a rather famous agadah, first witnessed in Bereshit Rabah 19:7, in which God dwells, rea~,
first of all in the created world,
in the earthly
retreating into the first heaven, and then the second,
and so on to the seventh, only with each successive sinful generation of human beings.
By contrast,
the righteous,
beginning with Abraham and culminating with Moses, draw God's presence back down through the heavens, dwells in the tabernacle on earth,
until finally God
as in the beginning. 344
This midrashic assertion that an earthly habitation is natural to God also amounts to an assertion about what is natural, or at least attainable, in human nature.
Human beings, if they
are careful, can constitute a fit entourage or court for God. Finally, in this segment, we must examine two apparently conflicting midrashim in Vayikra Rabah that speak of the celestial consequences of the Temple's destruction.
The first
is an interpretation of Ezekiel's heavenly vision in Vayikra Rabah 2:8:
343
BeiDJ.dbar Rabah 13:2 pre•ent• the •ame concept in a different formulation. According to thia miclraah, when Adam dwelt in the Garden of Bden, he wa• •in the camp of the Shekhinah,• an appellation u•ed al•o of the tabernacle•• vicinity and of Jeru•al. . with it• Temple. When Adam •in•, in thi• tradition, he i• bani•hed from God•• •partition•--,n~,nnn. S~ilarly, in the Miclraah on P•allll• (11:3), the two clau•e• of Pa.ll:4 are under•tood a• being •eparated by I•rael•• •infulne•• and the de•truction of the earthly Temple. 344
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
332
1J"'llN 1 ,'7D i1·nnw 011 1W::l 1'1ll'1 i 11 illl'7 OTN 1::1 N11 T rr'1w 1N~n 1rrN'1 p1n'1 1N,~1i11 1n,::1n 19rrT1 TllD ,1,J::l1 ,n,::l 1N1N1 N::l ,l1'79 1::1 1'7 1llN i1'7~Nll TnN 1::1 N,::lil1 ,nJ1~w1 ,,1::1J nn,g 01'1~ 1llNll p1rr ,'1 w,w ,nJ1JW n,::11 1i1~i1 ,T1::l 1::1 '1N~Tn,'7 i1llTJ 1~ p1n::1n nTll1D 1lJNW 9 11 DN Win'7 i1Wlln::l ,D,::l1::l i1JW O,W'7W::l ,il,1 (N '7N~Tn,) 1llNJW Mli1 i1,JW::l1 i1J1WM1 i1l:,W 1T 1 i1 1::1T i1,i1 (N '7Nj1Tn,) 1nNll 1 19~i1 1ll ilN::l i11DO n11 i1Ji11 (M '7Nj1Trr,) 1ll1N ,ni1::lli1W ,T1::1J lilT OIM 1::1 1'1 1llN i1::1~1lli1 '7~ 1ilN1i1W ,nJ,~w n,::11 ,,1~~ nn,g 01'1~ 0'71Di1 n1n1Nn i1'7Dn'1 o~nM n111~ 1WD 1WN '1Jll 1ll'1~l ON1 (lll '7N~Tn,) 1llNJW 0~'7 ,ll ,'7 1 ,M 1llNn MllW 1 ,M1::lll1 1 ,N~1ll1 1nl 1~n1 n,::lil 0,9'1N i1WW1 O,Dwnl nlNll 'I ,J9'7 ,'1 W, 1::1J ,n1M T::llDW 01, '7J::l '71Tlil ,nw O,WTj1ll1 O,TlllD OilW n1Wi1 ,JM'1ll '1W Wlij1) 'i1 'i1 1 j1 D,1lllMl i1nD,j1W TDl illlrri1 nM,~,ll T,lln Tl::lJ 111::1 0,1lllN1 i1nN,~, TDl i1llrri1 nD,i1Wll (Wlij1 Wlij1 O,WlD OnN illl ,l9ll p1N::lW 11W'1 'D '1"~ l,Nl llllj1llll 'il O~nN O,O,D~ll 1,1N1 1l,NW 0,1::1T 0,1Dl~lli1 0,1::1T ,llW 1Dll'1 ilWlD ,J,1i1 i1WDN i1ll '7::1N OJ,'7D O,M::lil 1,110,::1 ,nw 1Dll'1 WDNl ('0 J '7Nj1Tn,) 'NJW OJ,'1D N1j1JW '7lilil .'lll '7ni1 ,n'1::1'1
•son of man ••• " (Ezek. 2: 1) , to what may this be compared? To the case of a king of flesh and blood whose wife children rebelled against him, and he rose up and thrust out of his house and banished them outside. Afterwards he sent and brought one [of his children] from [where his wife was]. He said to him: son of that one, come and X shall show you my house and my court that X have without your mother. Have my glory and my court diminished at all, even though your mother stand outside? So it appeared to Ezekiel son of Buzi the priest, as it is said, "Xt came to pass in the thirtieth year, in the fourth month ••• the word of the Lord came to Ezekiel the priest, son of Buzi" (Ezek.1:1,3) This was the first [vision], and in the second, it says, •and behold, a storm wind, coming from the North" (Ezek.1:4). once He had shown him all the chariot He said to him: Son of man, this is my glory, that X raised you above the nations of the world. Have my glory and the house of my Shekhinah diminished for you, as it is said, •are they are ashamed of all that they have made--the form of the house, and its fashion, and its exits and entrances?• (Ezek.43:11). And lest you say that X have no one to serve me, see how already X have before me ninety and four hundred and six thousand ministering angels who stand before me and sanctify my great name every day, always, from the rising of the sun until its setting, and say, Holy, holy, holy; and fro• sunset until sunrise, and say,
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
333
Blessed is the glory of God from His place ( Ezek. 3 : 12) , not to mention the seventy tongues [i.e. nations] of the earth. Why, then, are you doing unworthy and unseemly things, rebellinq against the tribulations that come upon you? But how shall r act? Lo, r will act for the sake of my great name that is called upon you, as it is said, "And r shall act for the sake of my name, that it be not profaned" (Ezek.20:14). In this midrash, God's heavenly household remains unchanged with the Temple's destruction, taunts Ezekiel with the fact.
and God reproves and even
By contrast, in Vayikra Rabah
31:6, God's angelic court undergoes a noticeable change in the wake of the Temple's destruction: ~~M 1n1N lnN ~1n~1 1,l1ll~ 19on w,~ 1n1N lnM ~1n~ 101~~ ~,~ Wl~n~ n,~ ~1n N~W lD N~N ~,JlwnW, 1,9~N ~u,n ~1~,~~ Wl~n~ n,~ ~1nw 11,~ c~wn ~~1u ~·~~~ ~w 1
01'7~
Ni1 1 W 1 ,l~ ll ,N
i1"~~i1
1nNl
1'7W N,'7n9 i1"~i7il i1,uw 1n~ u'71D
~~1u
One verse reads, "Is there any number to his armies?" (Job.25:3) and one verse reads, "A thousand thousands served Him" (Dan.7:20). [It would seem contradictory,] except that until the Temple was destroyed the praise of the Holy One Blessed be He would ascend in complete form. Once the Temple was destroyed, as it were, the Holy One Blessed be diminished his entourage, and the Holy One Blessed be He said: It is not fitting that my praise should ascend as it used to ascend. Here the destruction of the Temple results in a diminishing of the ranks of God's ministering angels. 345
The midrash does
not say that Israel itself is the missing cohort of anqels. At the same time, the reduction in God's entourage suggests, at least, a correspondence between rsrael and the angels, and 345
The • - idea i• pre•entec:l anonymou•ly in bChagigah llb. On the •ame page a tradition attributed to R. Chananel in the n - of Rav •tate• that when the Temple wa• de.troyed the wing• of the heavenly creature• (with which they produce •ong) ware di.lllini•hed.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
334
the midrash does convey the message that the service of Israel is essential to the celestial praise of God. To review, we have seen a variety of midrashim in this segment suggesting that association of Israel with the angels remained an important theme in rabbinic thought concerning the Temple and the priesthood.
It is not possible to speak in
generalities of a single rabbinic concept, since the midrashim we have seen range from ones which explicitly preternaturalize the human priest in angelic directions to passages that merely indicate a correspondence between the service below and the office of the ministering angels on high.
On the other hand,
we can say that the angelic realm consistently functions as a paradigm
for
conceptions,
the Temple
and
its
priesthood
in
and we can say that some voices
rabbinic in aqadic
literature take the correspondence of heavenly and earthly ministers and sancta to be much more than symbolic.
For some,
the priesthood in its sanctum epitomizes angelic Israel, much as we have seen in earlier sources.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
335 Israe~
at Sinai
w,w nn 7N1W,7
N1~1
D,nw~
nN
n"~~n u1~
n11n 1nn Dl,~ n7llll7
On the day of the qivinq of the Torah, the Ho1y one, blessed be He, tore open the heavens and showed Israel what there is on hiqh. Devarilll Rabah (Lieberman) , Parasbat vaetcbanan
Like Garden of Eden, and like the tabernacle and Temple, Mount Sinai figures in many rabbinic imaqininqs as a locus at which Israel achieves somethinq like anqelic identity.
Also
like the Garden of Eden, and like the tabernacle and Temple, Sinai not only represents a point of intimate conqress between God and humankind, but also a moment of perfection precedinq human corruption.
Israel's brief moment of fidelity at Sinai,
before the buildinq of the qolden calf and the shatterinq of the tablets, shines throuqhout rabbinic literature as a beacon of the possible; and in quite a few rabbinic conceptions, the possibilities represented by Sinai are framed in anqelic and celestial terms. Two
contiquous
passaqes
in
Pesikta
Rabati's
first
pislca346 express a lonqinq to recapture the possibilities of Sinai,
and do so specifically in terms of an ontoloqical
converqence between Israel and the divine:
346
Part of the •YelUidenu-•ource• of Pe•i.kta Rabati ( cf. Strack and St.-berger, p.299), which .ay well date to about 400 CB (ibid, p.JOO).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
331
,JntJlDW 'li1"1Ni1 i1nHt 11TTTJ1Ul:J tPi1"1N"1 ,W9J i1Nn~ N"i OnN Q,i1"1N ,n1nN ,JN ,J,O~ p~i1 ~1~i1 ,l,O~ ntll~"1Ul OWJ ,,~"1N 1W~"1nw O,i1"1N"1 N"i i1nJ p1Ni1 "1J "1D 1"1n"1 ,", i1,i1, 1n"11u~ 1n1i1"1N irr,,n, 1"1 1n, O,ntlli1 "11m ,,i1"1Ni1 1"1 1n,1 ~~U,~ W1li Nli1W nli1"1N Another interpretation: "[My soul thirsts] for Elohim"--that is, my soul thirsts for the time when that godlike quality which You bestowed on me at Sinai will return; [as referred to in the verse,] "r have said: You are elohim" (Ps.82:6). Another interpretation: "[My soul thirsts] for Elohim"--that you clothe (rsrael] with divinity as you clothed them at Sinai. Bring them near the time of redemption, that thereby may the oneness of your divine power be acknowledged throughout Your world, "When the Lord shall be king over all the earth" (Zech.14:9), in accord with what is exposited in connection with Jacob: "So let Him bestow upon you Elohim, a portion of the heavens" (Gen. 27: 28) 347 [that is,] bestow upon you divinity. Both of these extremely audacious readings, of Gen.27:28 and Ps.82:6, reinterpret elohim as a quality bestowed upon Jacob at Sinai.
The easy manner in which both agadic segments seem
to take a divinization of rsrael at Sinai for granted suggests that the notion is a long-established tradition. of
these midrashic
lines
evoke
The speakers
Sinai with confidence
in
rsrael's divine glory there, so as to project a like moment into the future.
The capacity of these midrashim to convey a
compelling eschatoloqical hope depends upon a ready acceptance of their concept of rsrael' s di vinization in the past,
at
Sinai.
347 The contextual aenae of the verae, of courae, is •so God qive you of the dew of the heaven•, • but in thia interpretation, Blohbll ia interpreted aa the object of the verb, and the word lllieal i• under•tood a• an Aramaic infinitive of the verb nel, •to take.•
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
337
Quite a number of aidrasbia decorate the already vivid biblical narratives of Sinai with hosts of angels.
A midrash
found in Pesikta Rabati 21:8, Tanchuma Tzav 12 and Pesikta deRav Kahana
12:22,
is representative of
the
angeloloqical
embellishment of the epiphany at Sinai: 1,~0D ,~n, ,lo ,Dilno 1TD,7N 1~ 1TD7N ,~, ~,nn ,97N o,n~,,
1nN ,J,O
1~
o,o ,~N7n
~,Tnn ,,~~
1
11
~,1TD 1~ 1TD7N 1 1 o,~7N ~~, ~109 1,io~
,Dilno 1TD,7N ,~17 ~,1TD ,n9N 11N~ ,J,07 1nN ••. ~,7
R. Elazar b. Azariah and R. Eliezer of Modi' im were engaged in interpreting the verse, "The chariots of God, twice ten thousand, thousands upon thousands, [the Lord among them, Sinai in holiness]" (Ps. 68: 18) • R. Elazar b. Azariah said asked R. Eliezer of Modi'im: But could Mount Sinai hold them? He said to him ••• [God] said to Sinai: Lengthen yourself, enlarge yourself, receive my angels. 348 In some midrashim the angels at Sinai appear merely to amplify the fanfare and spectacle of the revelation; but in others the angels participate more essentially in the mediation of the law.
As Chernus has suggested, the mere presence of so many
angles at Sinai is mystically suggestive. 349 presence of angels
implies a
That is,
the
convergence of heavenly and
earthly realms, which beckons toward heavenly experience, and
348
Chernu• (p.l) write• of thi• midraah'• lemma, Pa.68:18, "This particular ver•e fraaa P•alm• came to be an important crwc for the influence of e•oterica on amoraic aaic:lra•him on Siani. • Of thi• particular ..Uc:lra•h, he write•, •&ere, however the •iqnificance ia merely the •ugge•tion of the clo•e proximity of the angel• to the Iaraelite•l •uch proxiaaity i•, of cour•e, a daaainant feature of Merkabah my•tici.... In fact it ha• been •ugge•ted [by Johan Maier, in Vo. .Ku~tu• zur Gno•i•, p. 134) that the tradition of a•cending to the Merkabah may have begun with Temple prie•t• who •joined with [the recitation of hymn• in) the liturgy of the angelic world.• Here, however, rather than huaaan• a•cending to join the angel•, we find the idea that angel• de•cended to join the
human•.• 349
s..
the previou• note.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
338
thus suggests an experiential convergence of Israelites and angels as well. In the Mekhilta Derabbi Yishmael,
(Bachodesh 3),
the
angels appear in order to gird, crown, and clothe Israel in wondrous ornaments. (Vaera 9),
The same idea is repeated in Tanchuma
and in Bemidbar Rabah 16:24,
in the following
passages: C::J'7,:lUtl ,ni1, C,::JN'7n '71ll n1:1:11 ,:111 C,9'7N ,9'7N.:l 11l1IT iiTN. D,::JN.'7n 1 :1 D::Jn iiTNl iiTN '7::J'7 1Cln ,n,,~l 1WN1:l ~1Ull 1n1J 'N.l ll,,T C~'7 1DN C,llT 1nN 1,19,~i ~11~, ,:11 ,,'7u ~1~rr lll119n~ cw1 11ll,:l'7~ N.1,9119 1n1N ,N.n,o ,:111 lN'7n N'71 D~:l Dl1l D1 1:li ~,~ N'7 Ci,:l ~,~W C,n,~ '7J1 1ITN 1:li D'71 n1n~
I came down on your account with thousands upon thousands and myriads upon myriads of angels and presented to each of you two angels: one to gird every Israelite with his weapons, and one to put a crown on his head. R. Yehudah of Sepphoris said: He girded them with cuirasses. R. Simai said: He clothed them with royal cloaks. The explicit name was engraved on them and as long as they possessed it no evil thing could touch them, neither the Angel of Death nor anything else. 350 It is important to note that these midrashim appear in a context whose theme is backsliding, the lema of the larger segment of Bemidbar Rabah being Num.l4:2, "How long will this people despise me?"
Israel loses its angelic garments with
350 The notion of I•rael'• exclu•ion fro. the purview of the angel of death i• expanded in Vayikra Rabah 18:3, where, in a tradition a•cribed to a. Yochanan in the name of R. Blieaer the Galilean, God in•truct• the angel of death after I•rael ha• pledged obedience at Sinai: •sven though I made you a univer•al ruler over earthly creature•, you have nothing to do with thi• nation. Why? Becau•e they are my children. •
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
339
the sin of the golden calf, when Moses commands, "Put off your ornaments" (Ex.33:5). We have already seen that a midrash in Vayikra Rabah 11:1, attributed to R. Yirmiyah bar :Ilai, claims that God enabled the first human beings in the Garden of Eden, before their transgression,
to fly,
and called them elohim.
A
parallel passage in 11:3, attributed to Bar Kapara, applies the same prooftexts to Israel at Sinai, to the same effect, and the passage also describes a
diminishment of stature
subsequent to :Israel's transgression exactly parallel to that of the first human beings: ,~M1W, l~M M1~n ~,n11uJ ~rr~w ( ••• ] 1ng M19~ 1~ n1~~M 1n1M M1~1 ~"~~~ lU,O~W n1~ ,n11n ,9l ~T~ rr~w~ ~J 1ITM '1l1 cnM c,~~M ,n,nM ,JM (~9 c,~~n) ~"~~~ ~w 1nui 1rr,J~ 1~ ~J~ 110, ,ng ,n ,~wn) 10IT lJ ~,~W~ ~M1W, l,~~M ~~M (~~ n1nW) ~lU~ 11nM1 .11n1nn CiNJ lJM (~g c,~~n) 1~ ~1nM ~~ ~u
1nNJW
cu
Bar Kapara interpreted [ ••• ] "She hath sent forth her maidens; she calls ••• " (Prov.9:3)--This refers to :Israel. " ••• upon the highest heights of the city" [,91--being read midrashically here as 'wings']--The Holy One Blessed be He caused them to fly and called them gods (nl~~M), as it is said, ":I have said, you are gods (CnM c,~~M)" (Ps.82:6). After all this exaltation, "Whoever is simple, let him turn in here" (Prov.9:4)--They forsook the will of God and said to the calf, "This is your divinity, o :Israel!" For this reason, "She [that is, the Torah] said to (:Israel]: "One who lacks understanding!" [a midrashic reading of Prov.9:16], "Indeed you shall die like men" (Ps.82:7). As in the case of Eden, :Israel's angelification at Sinai is represented as a consummation.
possibility lost,
a
forfeited moment of
On the other hand, rabbinic fascination with
that moment, and with the details of Israel's transformation,
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
340
suggests that Sinai remains a spiritual objective and an ideal paradiqm in rabbinic self-conception. Of all the midrashic themes that can be grouped under the heading of 'angelic Israel,' the theme of Israel at Sinai is perhaps most reminiscent of the collective angel if ication that we have observed in the sources of Qumran. settlement in the imagination of its sect,
Like the Qumran Sinai seems a
beachhead of the angelic world in the earthly realm, a point at which a divine order seems poised to spread throughout the earth with the elect of Israel as its wondrous champions. What's more, the notion, in Bemidbar Rabah 12:3, that God gave to every
Israelite at Sinai a
weapon engraved with the
explicit divine name, coincides remarkably with the images of similarly emblazoned implements of war in Qumran's War Scroll. Two passages in the Midrash on Psalms are also quite suggestive of a kinship between Israel and the angels at Sinai.
A midrash attributed toR. Berachiah in the Midrash on
Psalms (68:10) says that the number of angels that descended on Sinai was equal to the number of Levites in the camp.
In
68: 7, God instructs the angels to help Israel endure the impact of the revelation with the command, "Go down and help your brothers. " Finally, it is important to note that in Vayikra Rabah 20: 10, and in Bemidbar Rabah 2:25, the fifty elders who ascend Sinai are said to have fed on the radiance of the Shekhinah. According toR. Yochanan
(in
both parallel sources) the elders
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
341
"derived actual nourishment, as it is said: 'In the light of the king's countenance is life' (Prov.16:15)".
We have seen
angels described as being nourished in this way, by contrast to human beings (e.g. in Bereshit Rabah 2:2); so the elders seem to be angelified in this conception. Israel's angelic identity at Sinai is fleeting in almost every midrashic retelling.
The angelic accoutrements and
abilities that Israel acquires during the revelation vanish at the worship of the golden calf.
Not only are the Israelites
at large diminished by the sin, but, according to a tradition in Bemidbar Rabah 11:3, even Moses' especial quasi-anqelic stature is reduced by his people's backsliding. traditions
The series of
in Bemidbar Rabah 11: 13 can serve as a
bridge
between our consideration of Israel's angelification at Sinai and an examination of the angelification of Moses at Sinai in The
particular.
passages
in
question
follow
a
remark
attributed to R. Shimon b. Yocbai, which says that so long as a man refrains from sin be is an object of awe and fear, yet when he sins he becomes subject to awe and fear.
The first
proof for this idea is derived from Adam in the Garden of Eden; then follow these traditions: 1oo 1T~
WN1~ n~~1N WN~ 'o i1~~ ~N1nl ~N1W, n1001~ 1,o WN ~W n1~,nn U~W Nl~~
1T
11 ,~1 N1,1
O,ingnn ~~no~~
N~1
1,~1~,
11,~1
11o,~~n
~wn
N~W iU N~N 1"N
1~
O,N1,nn 1,~
n1N~~
,Jgn O,N,,nn
N~1 O,N11 ~N1W, 1 ,~1 11o1oo ,Jg 1~,gN 1Ntlnw ~wn nN ~N1W, ,l~ ~~1 111~N 1,Jn 1"M 1,~N 1"~ onJg '1
M~
'111 11~ ~l~1 1n oonu w11nn 1101oo ~N 11i1i, N,~N~ni
1NUIT
n1N~~ ,~~n 1~u~w ,~~n 1~,N '1 ow~
1,~
~N,1~l
1~,9N
~uw~
1i1,
~N~,n
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
~uw ,~1
,,9N
342 ,~
i"~~
~~no~~~,~,
~wn
~,~
N~
c~~w
~n~1
l,,,~,l~ ~N~
,Jgn
lNUnW
,n,,l,
Before Israel sinned, "The appearance of the qlory of the Lord was like devourinq fire on the top of the mountain." (Ex.24:17) 351 R. Aba b. Kahana said: Seven partitions of fire were consuming one another and Israel looked on undaunted and undismayed. As soon as they had sinned, however, they could not even look at the face of the interaediary; "When Aaron and all the children of Israel saw Moses, behold, the skin of his face sent forth rays, and they were afraid to come near him" (Ex.J4:JO). R. Pinchas b. R. Avin said in the name of R. Chanin: Even the intermediary felt the consequences as they did, from time to time. Previously "Kings of hosts flee" (Ps.68:13). R. Yudan in the name of R. Aibu expounded ,~~n n1N~~ (Kinqs of hosts) as the Kings of Angels, namely, even Michael and even Gabriel were afraid of Moses. But as soon as [Israel] sinned, Moses could not look even at the weaker amonq them; hence it is written, "For I was in dread of Af and Chemab" (Deut. 9: 19) • 352
351
Thi• fir•t •egment i• po••ibly the continuation of a tradition attributecl to R. Avin. The entire •erie• of lllidra•hial i• paralleled in Shir Ba•hirilll Rabah 3 and Jtohelet Rabah 9. 352
Here •Anger• and •wrath• are apparently per•onified a• two de•troying angel•, preaumably inferior to Michael and Gabriel.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
343
rile
ADge~ic
nM
•oses
~wn1
~wn1
~wn
1nMJW
M~
DiM
c,J,nnn~
,J,o
1~
tnJ
,J~~
f1M~, ~~~ c,nw o,nw~ nM1 c,J,,~n~ c,J,nnn~ i,,, 'lll c,~~M~ ~M ~~n
c,J,,~n~
~n
'~
"The heavens are the heavens of the Lord, but the earth He has qiven to the sons of Adam" (Ps.115: 16) --Moses came and made the terrestrial realm celestial, and the celestial realm terrestrial, as it says: "And Moses ascended to God" (Ex.19:3), "And God descended upon Mount Sinai" (Ex.19:20). Devarim Rabah 10:2
If
Sinai
in
classical
rabbinic
literature
often
represents a converqence of heaven and earth throuqh which Israel attains, at least momentarily, somethinq like anqelic identity, then the f iqure of Moses, who ascended from the camp toward
the
heavens
to
receive
the
Law,
epitomizes
converqence and the possibility of anqelification.
the
Moses'
forty days and niqhts on Sinai are often interpreted as involvinq at least an imitation of the anqels, in part because Moses did not eat or drink durinq this time: M~nn
,,Mn
,~,ow~
11~M
,,,
1rn~M
,, c1wn MnlrrJn
~,nw1 ~~,JM l,MW ~~nn~ ~o1n,J~ 1~~ Mn1~~ 01, D,D~1M 1~~ ~WMl 1nMJW ~JM M~l 011n~
,n,nw
M~
C,n1
,n~JM
M~
CIT~
~~,~
n~n ~wn
,~,
1nM ~~lJ
D,D~1M1
R. Tanchuma in R. Elazar's name and R. Avun in R. Meir' s name said: The proverb runs, 'When you enter a town, follow its customs.' Above there is no eatinq and drinkinq; hence, when Moses ascended on hiqh he appeared like them as it says, "Then I abode in the mountain forty days and forty niqhts;
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
344
did neither ( Deut. 9 : 9 ) • 353
:I
eat
bread
nor
drink
water"
Bereshit Rabah 48:14 Correspondingly, in the Ta1mud Bavli's tractate Yoma 4b, we find the following interpretation of Ex.24:16 ("And the qlory of the Lord abode upon Mount Sinai, and the cloud covered it six days, and on the seventh day He called to Moses from the midst of the cloud"): i1 1 nW1
i1-, 1 :lN
j21n-,
N-,N
l1n:li1 Nl N-, 1n1N 1nJ 1 11 n1wi1 1 JN.,nJ 1n1w., ,,nn1w
R. Natan says: The verse comes only [to indicate that sufficient time was given] to eliminate the food and drink in his innards, to make him as the ministering anqels. 354 Moses' fast is, at least, an imitation of the anqels in this talmudic tradition; but the idea, attributed to R. Hoshaya Rabah in Shemot Rabah 3:1, that Moses was nourished by the radiance of the Shekhinah, implies a chanqe of Moses' nature more than a mere masquerade.
Also with reference to Moses'
abstention from food and drink,
a sequence of passages in
Bemidbar Rabah 21:16 seems to establish a commonality amonq the natures of Moses, the anqels, and God:
w,
1 J1 i1., 1 JN ,,Jg-, ,nn., ,Jl1i1 nN 1,nJ i1TT3, , , 1nN , , l 1 J1T 1 J lJ,iln 'Oil,., ,,n,um W"i1nn i1n., il,nw1 1 J9 11Nl 1nNJW l,J1T 1 J Dil i1J 1 JWi1 1 1 Tn j2TT3 1 ,"N li1 1 c, ,n 1-,n
wN
353
We •hould note that thi• pa••age i.lmnediately follow• the tradition of Abrahaa being awe•ome even to Gabriel and Michael, which we have exami.ned above. 354
Th.i• tradition i• paral.leled in Avot Derabi Ratan, Nuacha A, chapter I, (lema ai"Ti2J1l i'IUirl) and al•o in the addition• to Nuacha A, chapter I (lema M~nl ~), and the attribution i• the •ame in the•• paral.lel•.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
345
1nMn OM ,l,O ,~,,
1~
'lll
~JM
~,nJ
1,nn
1~~ ~,lWD~ ~n ~M, ~won
1n~
on7
~~,~
O,D~1M1
~nlWl
7J1M
~,~
M~
n~lD ~,nw,
01,
~,nWl
~,nJ ~·~W1 ~7,JM ,Jg~
C,D~1M
~~,JM
'~
,Jg~
1nM
w,w
CD OW
~,~
l~M
R. Yitzchak said: It is written, "My food which is presented unto me" (Num.28:2); but is there such a thing as eating and drinking for Rim? You can learn the answer by analogy with the ministering angels, of whom it says, "His ministers are flaming fire" (Ps.104:4). Whence do they derive their sustenance? R. Yudan in the name of R. Yitzchak said: From the radiance of the Shekhinah they derive their sustenance, as it says, "In the light of the king's countenance is life" (Prov.16:15) R. Shimon b. Lakish said: It is written, "A continual burnt offering, which was offered on Mount Sinai" (Num.28:6). If you assume that I [God] eat and drink, you may learn the contrary from Moses. See what is written of him: "And he was there with the Lord forty days and forty nights; he neither ate bread nor drank water" (Ex.34:28). Now if I ate and drank he would have done the same. Moses' ascent into the cloud of Mount Sinai is commonly interpreted
as
an
ascent
into
the
heavens.
In
the
continuation of Yoma 4b, for example, a tradition attributed to R. Eleazar states:
llD~
1M,~~,
~wn~
Ml~
111~
W11~~
109n--
"God caught hold of Moses and brought him into the cloud."
In
Bemidbar Rabah 12:3, "He that dwells in the covert of the Most High" (Ps.91:1) is interpreted to mean Moses when he entered the
cloud
of
Mount
Sinai.
We
have
already
noted
the
traditions in which God points out to Moses-- apparently in the
heavenly
throne-room--the
details
replicated in the earthly tabernacle.
that
are
to
be
A somewhat similar
heavenly show-and-tell takes place In Vayikra Rabah 13: 4 where, in the course of explaininq the dietary laws, God shows
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
341
Moses
T1~:Ji1
MO:J nnnn ••• WM
-,w
n-,1-,1 1 ,n:J--"something like a
fiery [animal's) skull under the throne of glory"--and points out the defects that would render the animal unfit to be eaten.
In Bemidbar Rabah 15:4, God similarly shows Moses the
position of the Moon at the beginning of new months. In Shemot Rabah 3:1, nearby the statement that Moses was nourished by the radiance of the Shekhinah,
we find the
tradition, attributed either to R. Yehoshua b. Karcha or to R. Hoshaya, 355 that had Moses not hidden his face at the burning bush, God would have showed him i1n1 i1,i1W i1n1 i1Un-, i1n1 i1-,nn-, i1n n1,i1-, T,nuw--"that which is above, and that which is below, and what was, and what is yet to be."
The resemblance of this
line to the areas of speculation censured in the Mishnah's Chagigah 2:1 is quite striking, and esoteric knowledge of the heavens is also ascribed to Moses in the Midrash on Psalms 24 in which Moses, "who had gone up to heaven," is said to have known "the upper as well as the nether worlds."
Knowledge of
the future is expected of a prophet, but rabbinic sources go to
lenqths
to
give
Moses
knowledge
of
the
cosmos,
and
especially of the heavenly realm (which does not figure in the scriptural narrative of Moses as it does in the commissioning and visions of later prophets).
355
•••
,nut Fill
lmt
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
347
Moses' hidinq his face at the burninq bush is deemed, in Midrash
Tanchumah 16
(Buber) 356 ,
to
lead to God's makinq
Moses awesome, Godlike, and able to see God.
The tradition,
apparently attributed to R. Yehoshua b. Karcha, 357 reads as follows: 1nNJW i1~~ 1~ ~~1n ,JN i1~~ ,~ n~~n l,,rr ~"~~~ ~"N N1, ,~ nN1, ~nN '111 ~Uln ,l9 nN ~N1W, ,J~ 1N11 n1~T~ ,,~N nw1n 1M,,,, 1nMw 1n~ ~tu1n ,lM l,,n n,~~n u,~, '~ nJ1nn1 u,~~n The Holy One, blessed be He, said to [Moses], 'You qave me honor; by your life, I shall qive you honor,' as it is said, "And the children of Israel saw Moses' face [that the skin of Moses' face it sent forth rays]" (Ex.34:35). 'You feared--"for he was friqhtened of seeinq" (Ex. 3: 6) --and by your life I shall do as it is said, "And they were afraid to come near him" (Ex.34:30).' By the merit of "[friqhtened] of seeinq,"--"he sees the imaqe of God" (Num.l2:8). Here Moses is made awesome to human beinqs, and able to see God, which miqht well be called anqelic attributes.
In Shemot
Rabah 12:3, God shares even more qrandiose preroqatives with Moses.
Accordinq to the tradition there,
'111
c,nw~ ~n
qave
[Moses]
li,
~uJ
~wn ~N '~
permission to
Ul~W~
1nN,, 1nNJW c,nw rule
over
n1w1
1~
1nl
~tunn~--"(God]
the doinqs
of
the
heavens, as it says, "God said to Moses, Stretch out your hand over the heavens. "
The same portion of Shemot Rabah also
356 The ver•ion in the War8aw edition (19, lema ~wn 811100ther, but probably -nded to be 80. 357
lnM,l)
i• much
There i• 80.. di•tance between the attribution and thi• particular pa••age, 80 that, although the •ubject i8 continuou•, it i• difficult to •ay whether we are dealing with the continuation of a •ingle trac:U.tion or an appended 8ource.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
348
contains a tradition that emphasizes the blending of heavenly and earthly realms at Sinai: '~
pgrr 1WN ~J •"~n n,nw~ ~u 11, nuJ ~wn ~N '~ 1nN,, D,nul D,nw~ ~"~i2~ 1T1W 9"DN ill 1nN 1 111 ~tml 1nN1 1r1w 1~n~ ~n11 ,~~~ ~n~ ~wn DiN ,l~~ 1nl p1N~1 lJ ,n11~ l~D, N~ M,11D ,l~l M,11D~ 111, N~ ,n11 ,J~ p1N~1 ~~~ D,nw D,nul~ 1nN1 1T1 D~1Dn nN ~"~i2~ N1~WJ 1nN1 ~l1WN1 ~1,T1 ~U~ ~11n~ 1n,~ Wj2~WJ DiN ,l~~ lnl ,JN1 D,llnrrn~ 111, D,J1,~D~1 D,ll,~D~ l~D, D,llnnnn 1nN ~wn ~Nl J,nJ1 ,J,o 1~ ~u 'n , , , , 1nNJW ~,rrnnn '111 p1N~1 D,nw~ ~WD '~ pgn 1WN ~J ,,~ '~ ~N ~~D 'n~
"And God said to Moses, Stretch out your hand over the sky." This is as it is written, "All that He desires, God does ••• " Said David: 358 Even though the Holy one, blessed be He decreed "The heavens are the heavens of the Lord, but the earth He has given to the sons of Adam" (Ps.115:16), the matter may be likened to a king who decreed and said, 'Romans shall not go down to Syria, and Syrians shall not go up to Rome.' Likewise, when the Holy One, blessed be He, created the world, He decreed and said, 'Those below shall not ascend to those on high and those on high shall not descend to those below.' When He desired to give the Torah, He annulled the first decree and said, 'Those below shall ascend to those on high and those on high shall descend to those below, and I shall go first!' Thus it says, "And God descended upon Mount Sinai" (Ex.19:20), and it says, "And unto Moses He said, ascend unto the Lord" (Ex. 24: 1) • Behold, "All that God desires, He does in the heavens and the earth." According to this midrash the giving of the Torah entailed a dissolution of the boundary between the heavens and the earth, not only to allow the divine to become manifest below but also to enable those below--Moses initially--to ascend.
Torah, in
this midrash, enables or entails a bridginq of celestial and terrestrial realms and, apparently, also a transcendence of mundane hwaan status. 358
That ia, the Paalaliat.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
349
Another passage in Shemot Rabah 45:2 presents a quite graphic and surprising narrative of God's moving from the heaven1y to the terrestrial realm in order to be with Moses: nK IT,J~W ~wn~ ~·~~~ ~~ITW 11~~ ~M1 1nK 1"~ ~11~, '1 1n 1 ~ l, M~ n1W~ , ~K~n 1, ~ 1 ~wn ~~M M:l1 C, J 1 , ~ll~ rr,,,~, wnw~ 1~1 ~um ~~K 11nJ M,~, ,,Jg-, l1Jn,~ 1,M~~ nM~~ n1W1 ~10,~1 l,Jg~ n11rrnw~-, C,M~ 0,~~~~1 ,,~ K-, 0,1rrnwn1 n1W1 1,-,UlJ l~W ,~1-,,MW C~1ll-, M19M nl,IT~ 1~NW 0,1rrnwn 1-, C,nw~ M~~1 1nNJW l,M~l, 1nNJW M1~ l~W l,Jn ~wn -,~N 1~-, ~"M 11~~~ MC~ Ml~ ~~ w~~n N~M ~,n~ l,N ~wn w~~n '~ w~~n -,~ ~,~,
R. Yehuda b. Rabbi said: See what honor the Holy One, blessed be He, gave to Moses, in that He left the celestial& and came to be with Moses; and the ministering angels came to sing their hymn before Him, but He was where Moses was. And also the Sun and the Moon and the stars came to bow before Him and to receive permission to go out and illumine the world--for if they did not receive permission and bow they could not go out, as it is said, "The host of heaven bows to you" (Nech.9:6). They asked the (celestial] creatures, 'Where is the throne of glory?' They answered, 'Go look where Moses is.' How do we know that it was so? For it says: "And it came to pass that all who sought the Lord (went out to the tent of meeting]" (Ex.JJ:7). It does not say, "all who sought Moses," but "all who sought the Lord." This is a rather late-redacted and late-sounding midrash, but its heavenly setting and cast of celestial characters cal1 to mind pseudepiqraphic sources,
and the agadah reinforces a
concept that is already familiar to us from other rabbinic sources.
That concept is that Israel--or, at least, Israel's
elect, here Moses--might constitute appropriate company for God, so as to rival the angelic retinue.
In this midrash,
Moses seems to become God's chief chamberlain,
and God's
throne of glory itself is transposed to the place where Moses is.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
350
We
have
already
taken
some
note
of
the
frequently
repeated midrashic tradition in which the appellation 1'7n il~J~--"the
King of Glory"--is interpreted as
1i1~Jn ~'71rr Ml~W
1, M1, ~--"the King who apportions of his own glory to those who fear Him."
Among the proofs for this concept in the versions
of this midrash that appear in Tanchuma Behaalotecha 15 and Bemidbar Rabah 15:13, is the fact that God allowed Moses to be called "Elohim," referring to Ex.7:1 ("Behold I have made you
elohim to Pharaoh") •
In a very similar list of proofs for the
notion that God shares of His own glory with those who fear Him, in Bemidbar Rabah 14:3, God is said to have lent Moses His own scepter, in the form of the staff which Moses took "from before the Lord."
This same segment of Bemidbar Rabah
also contains the statement that God gave honor to Moses by speaking to him in Moses' own voice; and it also interprets the title "King of Glory" with reference to the blue of the corner-fringes, as we have seen before, linking the fringes-by way of the grasses, the seas, the firmament, the rainbow, the cloud, and the throne--to the image of God's own glory, in which wearers of the blue fringes partake.
This midrashic
context for the narrative of Moses' sharing in God's own glory implies that Moses
is not only a
uniquely qualified and
angelified figure, but is also exemplary of an identification with
the
divine
glory
that
might
be
enjoyed
by
other
Israelites who share in the fulfillment of God's will. Among the passages preserved in the classical rabbinic
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
351
literature that establish an angelic identity for Moses, the one that is most strikingly suggestive of a preservation of pre-rabbinic traditions of angelification is the following tradition in Shemot Rabah 1:20 on Ex.2:2 ("And she saw that he was good"): ~,n~ ~11N nN D,~~N
~1~n N1~W~ i~1JW D,1n1N D,1ITN 1~1J n,~~ N~nnJ ~wn i~1JW ~nw~ ,,nN 1J~11 N1,1 en~ ~,n~1 N1~ ~10 ,~ 1n1N N1n1 N~~ ~10
,~
11N~
Others say: (Moses] was born circumcised The Rabbis said: When Moses was born the whole house filled with light. It says here, "She saw that he was good," and elsewhere it says, "And God saw the light, that it was good." The midrash reads as though its substance were lifted directly Shemot Rabah
from pseudepigrapha that we have seen.
is
sufficiently late a compilation that we cannot speak with confidence about the route of this tradition's entry into its anthology.
We have noted that authors as diverse as Philo,
Eusebius, and the author of the Testament of Moses aggrandize Israel's law-giver along angelic lines, and so it is possible that this particular tradition of Moses' reentered Jewish tradition from without. traditions classical
angelifyinq rabbinic
Moses
literature
are
so
that
lustre at birth At the same time,
ubiquitous we
cannot
in doubt
the a
preservation of the general theme from an earlier time by the rabbinic authors.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
352
twbe ADge~ic Propbets
Q,~M~n
Q,M,~l~
1M1~l
l~~W
~M
n,~n
Said R. Yochanan: As a genus, called angels.
1JIT1,
1nM
,~1
the Prophets were Vayikra Rabah 1:1
Moses is not the only prophetic f iqure given angelic aspect in classical rabbinic literature. of
importance
the
celestial
We have seen the
narratives
of
prophetic
commissioning& and visions to angelic self-conception in prerabbinic sources.
To some extent, a concept of the prophets
as angels remains a fixture in early rabbinic thought as well. Despite
the
supersedes important
frequent the
in
suggestion
prophetic
agadic
that
tradition,
literature
as
rabbinic the
authority
prophets
exemplars
of
remain fiqures
entirely engaged in the fulfillment and expression of the divine will--as are the angels. The entire opening of Vayikra Rabah 1: 1, leading up to R. Yochanan's comment on prophets,
as a genus,
being called
'angels,' seems to represent another instance of fluctuation between
semantic
or
ontological identity.
symbolic
identification
and
actual,
In this regard, the small collection of
midrashim is worth examining as a whole: '~
eN ~J
nM
1~1~ IT19 ,M~,JIT 1n QliTJn ,~1 ~wn ~M M1~,1 1~1n ~ 1n~~ i1n~ '1 l 1 1 1~1 ,tolD rr~ , 11 ~l 1, ~M~n 'i1 nN 1J1l 1'DNl 1lJ N'7i11 1~1n l1nJi1 C,l1,'7D~
1i1W ,,, '7D C,J1,~D Q,llnnn~ N'7M 1~in ll,M Mi1 l,M~~ '~ nM 1~11 11nMJ ~·l~i1 ~w ,,,,~gn~ 11nD'7 1,~,~,
~J
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
353 1,i,~9n~
ilnD~
,,~N~n ~~
N~l
1,~1~,
,,~N~n
ll,NW ,"D C,llnnn ~~N l,N~~ '~ nN ,~,~ 1nNJ 1~~ ~"~~~ ~w
llN,~l,l lM~n l~W,l i"~~ C,~N~n C,N,~J~ 1N1~J N"i N11~ ~n~1 ~,~ ~wn N~~, ~,~ lM~n ,~, 'lll c,1~nn
~,nll~il C,JN~n C,N1~J C,N,~J~W lMJn N~N lM~n N~~, ~,~ lM~n ,J, c,~,~~ ~N ~l~l~ 1n '~ lM~n cnJg 11n,c ,~, 1nM N~N lN~n 1n1M N11~ ~n~1 ~,~ n11u1~
,Jg
,,~
,,~u
~11w
Wil~~
n11
~n,~w
1n1N ~n,,
onJg ~nw~
c,·pg~J
w,N Nl~W
~J~
o,~N~n
in~
n1nut
~n,~
~n
n1Jn
~w
1~ ~11~0~ O,~~N lN~n ~N1n~
~nN
c,N,~J~
J"D
N~
1N1~J
'~
1nwN ,,nN
1~~w
~N
n,~n
n1~N~n~
'~
lM~n
c,~N~n
ll~,,
l~N1n1 ,~N N~ C,~~N lM~n M~N 1J,N1 N,~J
c,N,~J~
lJITl, ,~, 1nN ,ln 1nM,, i"~~ 1N1~J
~N
n,~nw
"And the Lord called unto Moses" (Lev.l:l). R. Tanhum b. Hanilas opened [his discourse with the verse]: "Bless the Lord, His angels, valiant of strength, who fulfill His word." (Ps.l03:20). Of whom does the scripture speak? If the scripture speaks of those on high, has it not already been said, "Bless the Lord, all His hosts?" (Ps.S:21) Thus [our verse] can only be speaking of those below. [To] those on high, because they are [all] able to fulfill the charges of the Holy One Blessed be He, it "Bless the Lord, all His hosts." But [to] those below, because they are not [all] able to fulfill the charges of the Holy One Blessed be He, it is says, "Bless the Lord, His angels," and not "all His angels." Another interpretation: The prophets were called 'angels.' Thus it is written: "And He sent an angel and took us out of Egypt" (Num.20:16). was this an angel? Surely it was Moses; and why does it call him an angel? From this we learn that the prophets are called angels. Similarly: "Then the angel of the Lord went up from the Gilgal" (Jud.2: 1). Was this an angel? Surely it was Pinchas; and why does it call him an angel? Said R. Simon: When the Holy Spirit rested upon Pinchas, his face burned like torches. And the rabbis say: The wife of Manoach, what did she say? "Lo, a Man of God came to me, and his appearance was like the appearance of an Angel of God" (Jud.l3:6). She thought he was a prophet when in fact he was an angel. Said R. Yochanan: As a genus, the Prophets were called angels. Thus it says: "Then said Chagai, angel of the Lord in the angelic service of the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
354
Lord ••• " Thus you learn that the prophets, as a genus, were called angels. The
series
interprets
of
agadot
opens with
,,JN~n--"His
a
midrash
that
readily
angels"--as a plausible appellation
for God's faithful on earth.
According to this same midrash,
those below who are able to endure and fulfill God's commands are appropriately addressed as angels.
As ever,
we must
wonder whether this identification is a matter of ontology or of mere semantics; but by now it should also be clear that there
is
scarcely
classical midrash.
such
a
thing
as
'mere
semantics'
in
There are always ontological implications.
The midrash identifying Moses as the "angel" referred to in Num.20:16, which follows next in the sequence, certainly appears to incline more toward nomenclature than ontology. God's messenger of redemption to Israel in Eqypt was a man; he is once called an angel by scripture; 'angel'
can mean
'prophet. '
thus we learn that
on the other hand,
we have
already seen that the angelification of Moses is no mere matter
of
semantics,
and
the
midrash
on
Pinchas
that
immediately follows in our series here, although it begins as an
apparently
identical
semantic
syllogism,
ends
in
a
statement about actual radiance and divine spirit, indicating that much more than terminology is at stake.
The midrash
asks, why can scripture be read as calling Pinchas an angel? We expect the formulaic answer: because prophets are termed 'angels;' yet the answer we hear this time is that Pinchas was actually angelic in aspect.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
355
The segment concerninq the appearance of the Anqel of the Lord to the wife of Manoah and her account of the visit, in Judq.l3 :2-6, which follows next in the series, presents a supposition that the Anqel of the Lord miqht be mistaken for a
prophet.
With
the
inclusion
of
this
midrash,
the
compilation moves decidedly away from mere nomenclature and toward a qenuine ontoloqical confusion. not
misspeak,
misapprehends
or the
use
obscure
nature
of
Manoah's wife does
sobriquets, her
she
visitor,
actually
although
she
certainly does not fail to recoqnize his wondrous appearance. The midrash thus makes the claim that it is difficult to distinguish between a •very terrible" Anqel of the Lord and a prophet discharqinq a divine command. With the midrash attributed to R. Yochanan, by contrast, this
collection
of
midrashim
reverts
decidedly
semantics and sylloqisms of nomenclature.
back
to
Haqqai was a human
prophet; he is called Anqel of the Lord; therefore prophets can be termed anqels.
Here we have an entirely sound, not to
say mundane, philoloqical exeqesis, attached to the name of an early Amara. The
vacillation
compilation, ontology, exeqetical
of
between
this
mere
qroup
of
terminoloqy
midrashim, and
as
a
aqqrandizinq
seems to reflect a diversity of conceptual and inclination
amonq
the
early
rabbis.
The
compilation also reflects a redactional decision, on the part of the compilers of Vayikra Rabah, to encode this rabbinic
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
ambivalence by juxtaposinq these several traditions.
No part
of the sequence is verbally linked to the lema, the first verse of Leviticus, and none of the contrasting explanations are joined together in the form of actual dialoque.
The
assembly
The
of
the
pieces
is
entirely
redactional.
compilation is certainly not haphazard.
On the contrary, an
active editorship seems to have decided to begin Vayikra Rabah with a carefully synthesized discussion or disputation on the nature of prophecy and on the question of whether prophecy was actually
an
anqelifyinq
definitively
resolved.
office.
The
Despite R.
philological exegesis at the end,
question
Yochanan's
is
not
soberinqly
the possibility of the
prophets' sharinq in the nature of the angels is still held out as actual and consequential. Another midrash in which the angelic visitor to Manoah and his wife is mistaken for a prophet appears in Bemidbar Rabah 10:5.
There too, the mistake does not entail a failure
to note the visitor's angelic aspect: ~~M ~l~N~ ~,~
,~~W
1Jntn ~~N,W
~,~ 1~
1~~ Nl~
1n1N 1J,N
'~
lM~n
lN~n
,~
IT1Jn Dl, N~ Dll, ~,~ l~N ~~Dn~ ~~,JN l,NW
~,~W
~DW~ In~ nN lN~n 1~ 1~,~ N~ ~n~1 w11~~ rr11 ~"~~~ ~w 1n1rr,~w~ c,~~,~ c,N,~J~ ,,~w D~,N11 ,J,U~ ~n,N D~~ ~Jn1J ~n,~ D~,~U ~11W ~n,~w c,~N~n~
c,n11
,,~w
c~n
c,N,,nn
~~~w
"Manoah did not know that he was the Anqel of the Lord" (Jud.l3:16)--and for this reason he invited him to eat. If, however, he had known that he was an anqel he would not have invited him to eat, for he knew that there is no eatinq in heaven. But why did he not recoqnize him? From this you may infer that when the prophets went on an errand of the Holy one, blessed be He, the Holy Spirit which rested upon them gave them an awe-inspirinq
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
357
appearance in the eyes of those that saw them, so that all were afraid of them, for they looked like anqels. Here, once more we see the notion that a human beinq entirely occupied with discharqinq the divine will is tantamount to an anqel, not only in deed, but in awe-inspiring aspect as well. By wholly acceptinq the charqe to be an instrument of God's will,
the prophet,
in this rabbinic conception,
seems to
recapture something of the oriqinal, angel-like nature of the first
human
beinq
before his
sin,
or
the
nature of
the
Israelites at Sinai before theirs. The wondrous nature of at least one prophet is explicitly indicated as a recapitulation of Adam's oriqinal attributes, in Vayikra Rabah 27:4.
There, R. Judah is quoted as arquinq
that the example of Elijah--"who did not sin, and lives for ever"--renders easily acceptable the idea that Adam, had he not sinned, would also have lived forever.
The continuation
of Vayikra Rabah 27:4 contains the statement, attributed toR. Acha in the name of R. Eliezer b. Chalafta: "All that the Holy One, blessed be He, intends to perform in the Time to Come He has already partly performed in anticipation in this world through the instrumentality of His riqhteous prophets."
In
this conception, the preternatural wonder that attaches to the prophets not only harks back to the nature of the first human beinqs, but provides a foretaste of the wonders of the world to come as well.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
358
We have seen the sugqestion that the awesome appearance of the Angel of the Lord miqht be the very imaqe of a human prophet enqaqed in his mission.
We have also seen the notion
that the holy spirit miqht rest on someone charqed with a divine mission so that his face would shine like torches. Radiance and the converqence of heavenly and human appearances also f iqure in a
midrash concerning prophets in Tanchuma
(Chukat 6:6) 359 : ~w 1rrJ ~lil lil, ,~, 1nM ,,Jg ,,Mn DiM nnJrr nnWMl 1nMJW DiM n11~~ ~~nn ~w ~11~1 n1ni l,ninw MJ~n 1nM 11n,D ,~1~ ~il~, ,~11 ,~1M 1 ,~ DiM ~~nn~n ,,~n DiM ~M1nJ n1ni MOJ~ n1ni
D,M,~J
~,~ ~Ul
"A man's wisdom makes his face shine" (Eccl.S:l). R. Yudan said: Great is the power of the prophets, for they liken the imaqe of the Almiqhty on hiqh to the form of a man, as it says, "And I heard the voice of a man between the banks of Ulai" (Dan.8:16). R. Yehudah b. R. Shimon infers it from this verse: "And upon the likeness of the throne was a likeness as the appearance of a man on it above" (Ezek.l:26). on the one hand, this midrash seems to read its startinq verse to mean that prophetic wisdom casts liqht upon the visaqe of God, renderinq the divine describable.
on the other hand, the
notion that the prophets are particularly able to liken God to man
seems
inextricable
from
the
idea
that
the
prophets
themselves represent the celestial aspect of humanity. is,
inasmuch as this midrash makes prophecy a
likening divine and human imaqes,
That
matter of
its openinq verse still
resonates with the meaning it has in context in Ecclesiastes: 359
Paralleled in ~dbar Rabah 14:4, Pe•ikta Rabati (Friedman) 14, Pe•ikta de-Rav Kahana 4:4 and Midra•h Zuta on Eccle•ia•t•• 8:1.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
359
the wise man's own face is luminous.
In any event, Bemidbar
Rabah 14:4 suggests something like a familial recognition of God by the prophets: they are able to perceive God as a being like unto themselves, at least in appearance. A further indication that the prophets of Israel share an angel-like familiarity with God occurs in Bereshit Rabah 52:5 and 74:7.
A tradition in those places,
attributed to R.
Issachar of Kefar Mandi, contrasts God's manner of encounter with Balaam with the divine speech heard by the prophets of Israel.
According to this interpretation, the word 1 i1, 1 , used
of God's appearance to Balaam, recalls the term
~~,~ ~1i1n,
in
Deut.23:2, thus evokinq the connection of impure, nocturnal emissions and indicating that impurity attaches to the foreiqn seer despite his prophetic character.
To the prophets of
Israel, by contrast, accordinq to this midrash, God speaks 1n1M
l,O~i1n n1w~ ,JN~nw 11w~~ ~W1ii1 11w~l ~~,n 11w~~ o~w ,,~~~
W1ii1 1nN1
~T
~N
~T
N1j11--"in full speech,
in a lanquaqe of
love, in a lanquaqe of holiness, in the lanquage in which the ministering anqels praise Him--'and one called to the other, Holy!'"
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Allgelic: Israel in 'tbe Wilderness
Cl~Wl 1Mn~
en C~ CM ~M1W, ••• M1,T 1 1 CW~ 11Dnw 1 1 1nM 1nMJW c,u11 c,nM cnlM M11~ Ml~ ~J1nnn~ ~l1in~ 1~ Cl~W Ml ~1~iM ,D11 ,nM
R. Shimon said in the name of R. Zera ••• Even when the children of Israel are, God forbid, most degraded, God continues to call them His brothers and friends, as it is said: "For the sake of my brothers and friends I will speak peaceably of you" (Ps.22:8). Midrash on Psalms 4: 3 360
In the previous segments we have seen certain special individuals
or
groups
classical midrashim.
within
Israel
made
angel-like
in
The present segment will demonstrate
that this theme of angelification extends beyond particular Israelite
heroes
to
become
an
important
aspect
of
the
conception of Israel at large in classical rabbinic thought. Certain of the passages that associate the entire nation of Israel with the celestial realm are more in the nature of similes than assertions of actual, preternatural identity. Once again, however, the theme qoes beyond mere symbol and alleqory.
The
following midrash
in Devarim Rabah
1:14,
provides an example. ~n c,~~,~~ cn1M 11~ ~n~ 'lll c~nM ~~,~ c~,~~M '~ n1~nn ~M1W, 1~ lJ n1~un ,~l ~u n1~un 1~~~ c,~JlJ~ M~l 1~n M~ c~~ 1 ,M 1~~~ c,~Jl~~ ~n n1~un ,~l ~u
360
In the Kidra•h on P•alm• 4: 3, God i• •aid to refer to him•elf •• I•rael•• kin (~M,W, ,~,,~) on the ba•i• of Deut 4:7.
,w
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
311
D,J.J1Jil
ilD
l,Jn M'71 1j2TT 'Oi1'7 l,M '7M1tu, l:J l,Jn '7M1tu, l:J 191'0 iDl D'71Dil ~l'Dn 'D,C'71W
"The Lord your God has made you multitudinous (and behold, you are today like the stars in heaven in greatness 161 "--Why did God bless them as the stars? Just as the stars (are arrayed in] ranks upon ranks, so too Israel [are arrayed in] ranks upon ranks. Just as the stars have no end and no number, so to Israel has no end and no number. Just as the stars rule from one end of the world to the other, so too Israel. 362 For the most part this midrash seems a matter of symbolic comparison,
and not to make Israel celestial. 363
However,
the very end of the passaqe hints at a supernatural qrandeur actually inherent in the nation. The statement, in Shir Hashirim Rabah 8:6, '7W 11,T i,nD i1J.Jil N'DJ nrrnn WMJ
M~,,
n1,i1'7 7M1tu,--"The radiance of Israel
will, in the future, shine forth from beneath God's throne of qlory"--involves the nation in the workinqs of the heavens; however this is an imaqininq of the ideal future and does not speak directly about Israel in the world as it is.
By the
same token, thouqh, the future radiance of Israel is often expressed in terms of the nation's moments of qlory in the
361
Usually translated "in number,• but "in greatness• seams to be the aenae in which the verse ia read in this midrash. 362 A similar midrash ia included in Bemidbar Rabah 2:13. Also, in Bereahit Rabah 100:9 Joseph tells hia brothers, "You are like the stars, and who can extinguish the stars?• 363 Similarly, the linking of the twelve tribes of Israel with the twelve aiqns of the zodiac, the twelve hours of the day and of the night, and the twelve months of the year, in Pesikta Rabati (Piaka 4)--a connection made to support the assertion that God created the realm on high aa well as the realm below for the sake of Israel--does not in and of itself suggest an affinity of natures between Israel and the celestial luminaries, even if Israel ia of cardinal importance.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
3,2
distant, but this-worldly past.
A widely repeated midrashic
argument disputes whether the booths in which Israel dwelt upon leaving Egypt were wnn n 1~ 1o--actual booths--or , J J D i 1J.~--clouds of glory; and a midrash on Ps. 48: 13-14 sees Israel's shining future in terms of this imagined past: -,D
D~nN
DWJ
NWM 1 1nNJW tlNWJ 1 D9, j2ill i 1 J.J , J JDJ -,N1W, nN il 11 J.j2il -,tlJW
Di1., nltml., i,nD Nli1
1~
D,1WJ
,9J~--"Just
as the Holy one,
blessed be He, took Israel up in clouds of glory, and wrapped them around, and bore them, as it says 'I bore you on eagles' wings' (Ex.l9:4), so will He do to them again." We have already seen how Israel at Sinai is angelified, upon receipt of the Torah, with angelic weapons, cloaks, and crowns, and exclusion from the purview of the angel of death. Even though many of the same midrashim that bestow these accoutrements and privileges upon Israel at Sinai also imagine them revoked with the worship of the golden calf, still Israel in the divinely prescribed marching order of the nation's wilderness days is imagined as something like an angelic host in several midrashim, the following tradition in Devarim Rabah 7:9 being a particularly dramatic example: llDi1 ilnD 1-,iln i1,i1 1J.lnJ. -,N1W, l,ilW~ il,~1J. '1 1nN ,JW l,ill il-,lD n11C~il lWDl i1~1Dn lWD il,ill Dil,l9-,n l,91ltJJ l,ill ll1Nil ,lJ. ,JW l,J.n l,N~l, WN -,Ill l,i2li2,T DnlN D,Nl1 D-,lDil nlnlN l,ill D,J1j2Dil nNl D,WITJi1 nN WNJ. N-,N ll,N lW,nllln -,~ J"N nlill-,N D,1nlN1 Said R. Berachiah: When Israel were in the wilderness the pillar of fire would go before them, and the smoke of the altar and the smoke of the incense would ascend, and two rays of fire would go forth fro• the two poles of the ark and burn up all the snakes and scorpions, and the nations of the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
313
world would see and say, 'These are divinities, all of their implements are of fire!' This vivid passage, for all its supernatural imagery, speaks of Israel as perceived by other nations, and so perhaps does not,
strictly speaking,
assert an actual likeness between
Israel and the angels.
On the other hand,
the order of
Israel's marching and encampment in the wilderness is more unequivocally made a matter of commonality with the angels elsewhere. According to Bemidbar Rabah 2 : 3 , God organized Israel under banners, just like the ministering ,
JN~TlJ
n1Wi1. 364
angels--c,~li
CNWD
The same midrash goes on to recount Israel's
impulse to emulate the angels in their marching order: ~"J lTlD 1i1, ,J,O 1i1 ~D il"~~il il~lJW ilDW~ ,JliN] lNJW ,9~N o,n1~1 C,il~M ~J1 1TlNJW C,JM~Tl ~lli 1TlNJW C,~li C,~li C,,,WD C~lJ ,,ill (Wil~~ ,J,O C,~li C,~li l,,,WD CilW ~N1W, 1n1N 1U1W ll,J i1~~1Tl C,~li C,WUJ lJN lJ ,Nl~N 11TlN C,~li~ C,lNnTl l~,nnil 1n1nJ ~W C~
n1~~1
When the Holy one, blessed be He, revealed Himself on Mount Sinai twenty two myriads of angels descended with Him, as it is said "The chariots of God are myriads, thousands upon thousands; the Lord is among them, Sinai in holiness" (Ps.68:18), and they were all arrayed under banners, as it is said, "Marked out by banners from among myriads" (Song. 5: 10) When Israel saw them arrayed under banners they began to long for banners and said, o that we could also be arrayed under banners like them! This
wish
is
apparently
granted,
subsequent passages in Bemidbar Rabah.
according
to
several
An exegesis of
~D
w, N
364 The Mi.dra•h on P•alm• ( 22: 12) al•o •••ert•, i.n the n - of R. J:li.ezer, that the chi..ldren of I•rael were arrayed under •tandard• l.ike the ai.ni.•teri.ng angel•--o,,JT o,,JT o,TnlDn n1wn ,JK,nJ.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
3,4 l~li--"every
2:5 reads,
man by his banner" (Num.2:2)--in Bemidbar Rabah
,~ o,n~w1n1
o,M,,
o~w n1w~
,JM~n
lnlNJ--"like those
ranks of ministering angels who fear me and are wholeheartedly Bemidbar Rabah 2: 6 combines this angelic
devoted to me. "
theme of banners with even more clearly celestial imagery and makes the angel-like ordering of the Israelite encampment an occasion
for
divine
terrestrial realm.
movement
from
First of all,
the
heavenly
them. "
19,~i1W--"that
the
this midrash interprets
li1JJ.J.O,--"He compassed them about"--in Deut.J2:10, ilJ.J ,JJDJ.
to
to mean
God set clouds of glory all around
The midrash qoes
on to
rephrase God's
promise,
accompanying the command to build the tabernacle, as follows: Oi1,J,J. 1J1Wl .,,,,
o,J,,~n~
nM rr,Jn ,JM 71J,J.J--"I shall, as
it were, leave those on high and descend to dwell with them." Immediately following this passage, the midrash turns to the instruction
to
array
Israel
under
banners,
rephrasing the scriptural command: onlM 1
~wn
~WD7
this ~"J.~i1
time 1nM
JJ. o~w i1n~ ,nw~ o,7li--"Said God to Moses, Array them under
banners in my name.
Why?
same midrash goes on to
Because they are my children. " include a
declares, ,nw7 o,7li onlM i1WDM
,nlMJ.~
passage
The
in which God
1i1W ,971--"and because
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
315
they are My hosts I
shall array them under banners in My
name. "365 In
Bemidbar Rabah 1: 9
the
phrasing of
the
biblical
command to number the nation WN1 nN lNW--literally, "lift up the head--is interpreted thus:
~,,~ ,n~~,rr
N7 7N1W,7
~"~~~
,7 W,W DWJW ,7 OJnN ,n,n,11 WN1 ,17n DJ7 ,nnJ 1J7 DJn n1,~7
,n,WU DJ7 lJ
~7111~
'~
17 1nNJW
D71D~
,N~
1nN
~1,n,
7J 7D WN1 ,17n
WN1 ,,7n DJ7--"Said the Holy One, blessed be He, to Israel, I have never cherished any creation more than you, therefore I have conferred exaltation upon you and have likened you to Me, for as I am exalted over all mankind, as it is said 'Yours, o Lord, is the greatness' (IChron.29:11), so have I done to you that you might have exaltation."
The clouds of glory, the
relocation of God's presence from the heavenly court to the earthly encampment, the divine arrangement of the encampment in angel-like ranks, and the interpretation of the numbering of
Israel as
an exaltation toward God's
own status,
all
combine to give the impression that the Israelite camp is transformed into an angelic assembly, designed to replicate the heavenly host so as to facilitate and fittingly conform to the transposition of God's presence from the celestial realm into the earthly world.
365
In Bemidbar Rabah 2:19 the nWDberinq of Israel by tribes and by faailiee ie interpreted •• an expression of divine love in these terms: 1n1Jn1 ~3111 1,n1K~3 1,~ u~w--•for they were Hie host and Be desired to count tb... • The same ~draeh qoee on to place these words in the mouth of God ,l131 D,W1DW ,n11D~ ,1m, n1K~3 1~ •so many hoate have I in my world who do my will.•
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
311
If this interpretation of Israel's bannered encampment seems reminiscent of what we have seen to be the Qumran coJDlllunity's self conception--that of a military outpost of the heavenly realm upon the earth--the resemblance is especially stronq where Bemidbar Rabah turns to the Israelite encampment as an army.
Bemidbar Rabah 7: 3 ,
a segment whose startinq
point is the command to send out every leper from the camp, describes
Israel as
God's own f iqhtinq force,
by way of
several analoqies to "the army of a kinq of flesh and blood," with various ranks and offices.
On the one hand, there is no
explicit anqelification of Israel in these proofs.
On the
other hand, the very absence of the anqels from connections in which one would most expect them--e.q.
"Just as a kinq of
flesh and blood has qenerals, so too the Holy One, blessed be He"--seems
to
suqqest
that
Israel,
marchinq
and
campinq
accordinq to the divinely prescribed order, is all the host God needs. portions
The emphasis on the sanctity of the camp in these of
Bemidbar
Rabah--excludinq
bastards (9:7), adulterers (9:7), and
all
lepers
(7:3),
~Wli~~ M~W C,i~ll,
"any
whose birth is not in sanctity" (9:7), as well as all lewdness (9:7), so as to ensure that God's presence remain in the camp-also reminds of
the fascination with the purity of the
military encampment
in
the
texts
of
Bemidbar Rabah shares with Qumran a
Qumran.
Of
course
scriptural basis for
fascination with holiness of the Israelite camp;
but the
midrash also seems to share with the earlier sectarian texts
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
a readiness and a zeal for conceiving of Israel as a pure, angel-like host. Surely it is in terms of such an understanding of the wilderness encampment that we must read an anonymous and probably rather late midrash toward the beginning of Bemidbar Rabah (2:10) that connects each of the compass-points and the tribes that encamped in each direction with the named angels who surround God's throne: l,lC lJ
~N C,~li
~N911
' i lilJJl n1n11 ' i
~"l~~
N1lW CWJ '1 lNCJ~ 11lllW ~llWl ~NJ,n lnUl N1~J ~n~ lllN1 ilJJ lJ,n,l nN c,,ow ,n 'lll 11nJ ,n ~1,Ull ~Wn rr.ng c,l ~N1W, ~NJ,n ,,~ ~NJ l,N 11nJ ,n ll11Ul, ~NJ l,N 1nN ~11n~ lnUl N1~J i1n~ 119~l Nl~Ul li ilJJ l~Nnwn ~N,11N ,,~ll 19Jn ~"l~~Ul C,llnJl C,N,lJ ~11n ~,lWl ~N,11N ilil 111N Nl ,J ,11N ,nl~ 1nNJUl ~N1W,~ 1~~ 1,Nnl lWN ,J 1nlN Nl~ lJl ~N,11N ,,~ lJ~ 1N,l '~ ~N 1nN ~wn1 ~11~, nlJ~n ilJJ ,,J9~n ~N,1ll ,~ 11N 1Ullnl l,nJ ~ili1,l ~N,1ll 1nw N1~J ~n~1 n1rnJ ,,~w 11~Nl ~wn ~N N1~,1 l,nJ ~uJnll 'lll l,ITNl 1ll ~il~, ,J ~N91 ~N,1ll ,1i1 1ll,l ~N plll, N~9 lnUl N1~,1 l,nJl ~W 11lW nlN91~ ,iJ ~N91 lnUl N1~J ~n~l C,19N ilJJ ,1i1 i1~ NJ N91 NJ ~N l1llnl Nl~Ul C,19Nn N~,W Clll1, ~NJ,n
~N,11Nl
~N,1lll
~NJ,n
C,JN~n
~N91
Just as the Holy One, blessed be He created four directions and four banners corresponding to them, so too around His throne are four angels: Michael and Gabriel and Uriel and Raphael. Michael on His right, corresponding to Reuven. Why is his name Michael? When Israel passed through the sea, Moses began his song, "Who is like you (mi kamocha)?" The one who finished the Torah said, "There is none like the God (ein kael) of Jeshurun." Hi kamocha, ein kael--thus, Michael. Uriel on His left corresponding to Dan, who camped to the North. Why is his name Uriel? In reference to the Torah, the Prophets, and the Writings, through which God effects atonement for Israel and shines light for them, as it is written, "Rise and shine, for your light (orecb) bas come." And David said, "El is the Lord and shall give light for us"--thus, Uriel, and likewise it says, "Though I sit in darkness the Lord is a Light unto me." Gabriel before Him,
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
correspondinq to the kinqdom of Judah and Moses and Aaron, who camped to the East. And why is his name Gabriel? It is written of Judah, "For Judah prevailed (gavar) above his brothers," and of Moses it is written, "God called to (el) Moses," and it is written, "His name shall be called Wonderful Counselor, Miqhty God (el gibor)"--thus, Gabriel. Raphael, corresponding to Ephraim. And why is he called Raphael? In order to heal that which Jeroboam broke, who came out of Ephraim, who camped in the East. "Please, o God (el na) heal (refa) her"--thus, Raphael. The most remarkable feature of this midrash is its claim that the names of the anqels who surround God's throne refer to the respective tribes of Israel.
In this way, not only is Israel
represented symbolically in the court of heaven,
but the
angels themselves stand for the personalities of Israel and their histories, as though these angels were heavenly alteregos of the earthly tribes or place-holders for them. Such correspondence of Israel with the angels helps to make sense to the following midrash in Sifre Bemidbar 42 366 : ~~N
1n1N inN
~,llwnW,
~lnJl
l,ilil~
190n
1,9~N ~~N 0~1Nn ~N1W,
~~nn
~w
W,~
1nlN iiTN
l~lwn ~,llWDW,
~,~ng
~ounnl
~lnJ 1,9~N
~,J,~J
One verse says, "Is there any number to his troops" (Job 25:3), while another verse says, "A thousand thousands ministered to Him" (Dan 7: 10). When Israel were exiled from their land, "A thousand thousands ministered to Him"--the heavenly retinue was, as it were, diminished. Israel certainly corresponds to at least a certain contingent of the angelic host in this agadah. redacted source,
In a parallel, earlier
in Vayikra Rabah 31:6 (which we have seen
once before, above) the number of anqels in the heavenly host
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
311
appears to depend upon, or at least to be divinely determined in proportion to the praises that Israel directs toward God:
inN ~1n~1 1,i1il~ 19on w,~ 1n1M inN ~1n~ ,,nN ll~11 Wi~n~ n,~ ~1n M~W iD N~M ~,J1wnW, 1,9~M ~~M 1n1M Wi~n~ l,i~
n,~
1l,N
~1nw 11,~ o~wn ~-~~i1 1nN1 l~W
~~1u ~·~~~ ~w 101~~ ~,~ N,~ng i1"~~i1 'OlPn ~1~,~~
1~11N 01~, M~ ,n ~D1 ~~lD i1,~W 1n~ ~~1D ,01~~ Mi1,W N~1 01,~ ~nn ,~ 1,M~ M~ 1n1M1 0~1D ,M~ ~~n M~ ,n ~~~1 O,J1nnn~1 O,ll,~D, 1,Mn i1nM ~~,~~ill~~ ,~ 1,M~ ,l~ nM 1~ i"~~ ~N1W, ~W 111M~ i11Mnn ~nM1 0~1D ,N~
.,M1W,
The Rabbis say: One verse reads, "Is there any number to his arlllies?" (Job.25: 3) and one verse reads, "A thousand thousands served Him" (Dan.7:20). [It would seem contradictory,] except that until the Temple was destroyed the praise of the Holy One Blessed be He would ascend in complete form. Once the Temple was destroyed, as it were, the Holy One Blessed be diminished his entouraqe, and the Holy One Blessed be He said: It is not fittinq that my praise should ascend as it used to ascend. "And upon whom does His liqht not arise?" (Job 25:3) Who, of al1 that enter into the world, can come and say: 'The sun has not qiven me liqht by day, nor has the moon qiven me liqht by niqht." You qive liqht to those above and those below and to all who come into the world, yet You desire Israel's liqht. Hence it is written, "Command the children of Israel (that they brinq you pure oil of beaten olives for liqhtinq" (Lev.6:1). The suqqestion here is of a sudden absence from the heavenly court of those anqels who represent or correspond to Israel. Since the nation itself, arrayed around its shrine according to God's will,
is likened to an anqelic host,
it is not
difficult to comprehend the notion that, when this order is disrupted and Israel is displaced, the number of God's anqels is decreased.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
370
The
Midrash
compilation,
on
Psalms,
another
relatively
late
gives an explanation of the garments worn by
Israel in the wilderness that harks back to a description we have seen applied to the first human being.
To the question,
attributed to R. Eliezer, Whence did Israel's clothing come all those forty years? R. Shimon is quoted as answering: n1w~
,:JN'1n
DlW,J.-,~W--"From
ministering anqels."
~nn
garments qiven to them by the
Then, lest we think that the ministerinq
angels merely provided mundane garments, R. Shimon goes on to say that the children of Israel did not outqrow their anqelqiven
clothes,
because,
like
clothinq qrew as they did.
the
shells
of
snails,
the
We have seen the image of the
snail used before to make the arqument that garment and person can be one (in Bereshit Rabah 21:5). garment
seems
Israelite. midrash,
to
become
integral
Here too, the anqelic to
the
person
of
the
What's more, accordinq to the R. Shimon of this
the garments were kept clean by the cloud that
encompassed the people (a kind of celestial dry-cleaning) and R. Eliezer's rejoining question, 1,91WJ
,,~
N-,1, "And were the
garments not then burnt?" qives us to understand that we are not speaking of mere vapor but of a cleansinq cloud of fire or glory surroundinq the Israelites. The Midrash on Psalms also imagines somethinq like a loss of angelic status correspondinq to the eventual destruction of the Temple.
Here aqain, the terms are reminiscent of Qumran
and especially its War Scroll:
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
371 1WN
~nn~n~
l,N~,,
,,mu
,~J
nN
w11gn~
~on
cw
,ll~ ~T
~N1W,
~nn~n~
,~~N ,~J
'~
l~T,N
1nN
~J
tlJi,~
ll,Jl l,NJlW~ l,~glJl ~nn~n 1,tu1n ,,~ N~l ~nn~n~ '1 l~,NJlW i,~ l,~glJ ,,~ n,~~ ~~1n1 nlJlD~ 1D1lW tlW~ nN l,g~~n ,,~ tl,JN~n~ 1nN l~,,N '1 1l~1l l~,,N ~~~J ~,~ 1n~nn 11nN lJ~,, 1~,~D ~,~w
"Thus says the Lord, God of Israel, Behold I will turn back the implements of war that are in your hand" (Jer.21:4)--What 'implements of war' are meant? The explicit divine name. For, formerly, when Israel went out to war, without their even making war, their enemies would fall, but once sin brought about the destruction of the Temple Israel would fall before their enemies. R. Aibu and the Rabbis differed on this point: R. Aibu said: The angels scraped off the divine name that was upon [the weapons]; and the Rabbis say: It scraped itself off. Reading
this
midrash,
one
can
almost
picture
the
divine
lettering described on all the banners, weapons, and machines of Qumran's War Scroll, fading or falling away--the conception of Israel's army in its full glory in this text seems so similar.
In any case, the conception of the Israelite host of
old, in this agadab and in Bemidbar Rabah, is of an assembly representing and manifesting divine glory, arrayed in ranks as a ministering entourage, wondrous to the other inhabitants of the earth. 36 .,
The paradigm is certainly angelic.
367
The Midraah on Paalaa 22: 19 aaaerta that at every aong and praiae of rarae1, God ia enthroned in their lddat; and, in 2:17, it ia foretold that when, in the future, the nation• will deaire to aing a aong of hOID&ge to God, Be will tell th. ., •ao aing it to rarael. Bad it not been for th. . , the world would not have endured for a aingle hour.•
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
372
!'be Rigllt:eous and tile !'Die to co.a n1,~~
n,~,i~
~"~~~
WiU
~w
i,nu
1n~,nn
n1~~~ ~n D~~
Nl~~
i,nu~
l,~NlW 1~1 nlW~
N~N
,, 1nN
,~N~nn D,Jg~ Dl,~
Said R. Aba: In the time to come, the partition of the righteous is destined to be inward of that of the ministerinq anqels, and the anqels will have to ask the righteous, What laws did the Holy One, blessed be He, expound today? Devarim Rabah 1:12 (yShabbat 8d368 )
A considerable number of classical midrashim envision the righteous in the time to come as celestial and angelic, and it is important to take stock of such midrashim in this study of the various sources can be grouped under the heading, "Angelic Israel. " There is a within
the
larger
sense in which this particular theme
trope
of
Anqelic
Israel
is
the
interesting of all for the purposes of this study. has
been
to
show
that
classical
rabbinic
least
The aim
sources
often
conceive of the nature of Jewish humanity as angelic, approachinq angelic.
or
Perhaps the most remarkable aspect of
these conceptions is that they are usually applied to human beings in this world (albeit often in the distant past) rather than
in the
next world or
beyond death.
We
368
have
been
The addraah in Devarilll Rabah ia a alight reworking of the tradition found in the Yeruaha~i, which reada, I have uaed the veraion from Devarilll Rabah aa epigr.a for thia aegment becauae it moat clearly repreaenta the rabbinizing of the heaven• on the model of the houae of atudy. 0,~,~3 ~m ln3,nn n1mu~ ~·J~~ ~,nD MJ~J ll MJM ,Jl OWl ~,Jll ,Jl n1wn ,JM~ ~m ln3,nnn o,l9~.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
373
particularly concerned with the ways in which rabbinic sources portray Israelites as partaking in angelic identity while still alive in the earthly world.
such portrayals amount to
what we might call an angelic anthropology of Israel, and that is the primary focus of this study. It is less remarkable that the classical rabbinic sources imagine the righteous in the world to come as akin to the angels.
Teleoloqy and eschatoloqy tend to obviate the qreat
paradox that gives rise to the theme of angelic Israel--human spirituality confined to earthly life and mortal form--by respectively freeing the soul from the demands of the body and by turning the entire world into the kingdom of heaven.
In
such circumstances, what would the righteous be but angelic? Still,
inasmuch
as
eschatoloqy
epitomizes
idealizations,
directs endeavors, and is informed by the most exalted moments of this-worldly life, rabbinic envisionings of the righteous in the time to come are inseparable from the this-worldly anthropology of angelic Israel. The quotation at the beginning of this segment,
from
Devarim Rabah 1:12, comes in a larger passage which begins with
the
following,
exegetically
derived
and
supported
promise:
1nM '111 ,~JlJJ 01,~ DJJ~l DJnM ~~1~ DJ,~~M '~ D,i,nD onM ~,~ M~~ i,nn~ ~~M o,~JlJJ onM 01,~ ~,nJl ~~JM WM l,~~M '~ ,J lMJ ~,nJ i~,J OJ~1~ l,nli ~~~~~ 1Wli~1 WM~ ~M1W, 11M ~,~1 Ml~~ i,nD~ ~M1W,~ Ml~ ,,~ o,~JlJ nil~D i~lDW ,n ~n1 Mnn 1~ ,,~ ,, 1nN i~lDW ,n '111 D~,WlD ~J ,,~, D~lnJ 1nMJW 1n1nJ 1n1nJ ~,~,w lJW ~J M~ ~·~~~~ l~~
n1,~~
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
374
"The Lord your God has made you multitudinous and lo you are today as the stars [of heaven in magnitude369 (larov) "]--He said to them, Today you are like stars, but in the time to come, larav--you are destined to be like your Master (lerabcbem). How so? It is written in one verse "The Lord your God is a consuming fire," and it is written of Israel in the time to come, "The light of Israel shall be for a fire and his holy one for a flame" (Is.10:17). R. Levi said: Just as he who worships idols becomes like them, as it is said, "Like them shall be their makers" (Ps.115:8), he who worships the Holy One, blessed be He, how much the more so will such a person be like Him! Israel,
according to these agadic passages,
resemble God Himself in the time to come. that,
according to this midrash,
resemblance
to
encountered. 370
the
stars--a
In the
tt is worth noting
Israel already enjoys a
theme
time to
is destined to
that
come,
we
the
have
already
resemblance of
Israel to the celestials is to be magnified in the extreme. The idea is an early one in rabbinic literature.
Vayikra
Rabah 28:1, in a midrash attributed to the Sages, also invokes celestial radiance in connection with the righteous: ~T~ D~lDl D,llC D,WDnll n1~n~ l,~lln l,l~lNl 1nNJW ilnTTil ~l~lJ Cil,J9 WlTm
D,~,l~~W ~n il"l~ilW 1n11Jll wnw~ nN~J
1,,1
In return for the utmost that the righteous achieve in this world in the performance of commandments and good deeds, it is enough for them that the Holy
369
aidraah
Literally, • in n\llllber, • the verae.
but thia ia the aenae in which the
~terpreta
370
It ia worth not~g in thia connection that the righteoua are alao UJcened to the atara ~ Peaikta Rabati 11, ~aamuch •• both atara and righteoua ahare honor and coexiat with one another in peace. a..idbar Rabah 2: 13 alao drawa thia aame connection and emphaaizea the time to come ~ likening Iarael to the atara The aame midraah alao aaya: •Aa any one of the atara can burn up the whole world, ao too the righteoua.•
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
375
one, blessed be He, renews their countenance like the disc of the sun, as it is said, "They that love Him are like the sun when it goes forth in its might" (Jud.S:31). Like its prooftext, this midrash may be only figurative; but the association of the righteous with heavenly radiance is rendered quite literal in other midrashim, most notably in the Midrash on Psalms, where (in 11:6) reference is made to seven cohorts of the righteous that are destined to give light to
Their faces are to be like the sun, the moon, the firmament, the stars, lightnings, lilies (C,lW1W), and torches (0,1,97), each resemblance supported by proof texts. 371
Essentially
the same tradition is attributed to R. Shimon b. Yochai in the Sifre on Deuteronomy (10). 372 The midrash on Psalm 72 (5) also turns a figure of speech into an imagined actuality, interpreting Isa.60:3 ("Nations shall walk by your light") to mean 1, 1, Mn TT1, il 1 Uillu1ilw DWJ
and moon shine in this world will the righteous shine in the world to come."
371
The Midraah on Paalm 16:11 alao refer• to theae aeven cohorta, reading 1,1g nK n1~ D~~-·Pul1n••• of joy in Your preaence• aa •seven (D~W) joyoua companiea in your preaence.• The aame midraah deacribea the righteoua arrayed in the pattern of the Temple'• candelabrum, with thoae in the right-hand branch, atanding to God'a right, more preferred. 372
Rabbi Simon b. Yochai aaid: The face• of the righteoua re•emble aeven joya in the time to coma: aun, moon, firmament, atara, lightning•, liliea, and lampa.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
371
In the midrash on Psalm 11 (1), the context in which the enumeration of the radiant elect in the time to come occurs makes quite clear that the righteous will have been admitted by God into the company of the celestials.
Reminiscent of the
tradition in Devaria Rabah 1: 12, which likens the righteous to God Himself, the segment in the Midrash on Psalms begins by arguing--on the basis of Ps.11:7
~~N n1~1~
'~ ~,~~,
"The Lord
is Righteous, He loves righteousness"--that the Holy One, blessed be He, is not like other artisans, who hate fellow practitioners of their craft.
Rather--on the basis of the
scriptural rejoinder, 1n, Jg
1W,, "the upright will behold
His
face",
and
its
1TTP
unusual
possessive
form
( 1n, Jg) --the
midrash goes on to argue that the righteous will see 17W
~,7n91,
~J,:JW
,Jg
"the face of the Shekbinah and God's retinue" in
the time to come.
Not only will the righteous see this host,
according to the midrash, but, following the enumeration of the seven shining, righteous cohorts, the midrash goes on to say that the greatest of the companies that will stand before God in the time to come will be the company of the righteous: C,1W, n:J 1T
~J,:JW
,Jg
n7~~n
N,~W
l~lW
~71Dn~
n:J~
1T,M1--"And
which will be the most distinguished cohort among them, which will receive the Shekbinah? The cohort of the upright."
This
passage reminds once more of Devarim Rabah 1:12, in which the righteous in the time to come stand inward of the angels with respect to the divine throne.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
377
"On that day, i1DW
i1nlM~
linD
where will the riqhteous stand?" 1J,i11
c,~,l~o,
asks the Midrash on Psalm 46 1 with
reqard to the seeminqly eschatoloqical cataclysm described
cleavinq to the throne of qlory 1 Shelchinab."
under the winqs of the
Similarly, the midrash on Psalm 45: 3 accounts for
the well-beinq of the righteous in the time to come in terms of their imbibinq the radiance of the divine presence without
We should note that the admission of the righteous into the company of the anqels is not only an aspect of the world to come in the Midrash on Psalms and in other midrashim. Accordinq to a passaqe in 30:3 1 attributed to R. Hiyya the Great, (which parallels passaqes in Pesikta Rabati 2 1 Bemidbar Rabah 11:7 and bKetubot 104a)
1
three qroups of anqels care for
the riqhteous as they depart this world.
Accordinq to R.
Hiyya b. Yose, in another passaqe in the same seqment of the Midrash on Psalms, the righteous dead, although they can no lonqer speak, are still able to sinq praises to God (as do anqels) because He stores their souls in the bundle of life
373
The cloaene•• of the righteoua to the divine preaence ia repreaented in a different way in the midraah on Paalm 9, where God ia aaid to inacribe upon Ria purple robe the name of each righteoua peraon whom the nation• put to death.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
378
A frequently repeated aqadic statement, usually leadinq into the declaration of Isa.25:9, "This is our God for whom we have hoped," promises that the Holy One, blessed be He will, in the time to come,
prepare a
feast or a dance for the
riqhteous in the Garden of Eden at which the riqhteous will be able to point with their finqers presidinq in their midst.
at the divine presence
The theme appears at the end of the
Babylonian Talmud's tractate Ta'anit, in Bemidbar Rabah 13:2, in the midrash on Psalm 48, and a related imaqe appears in Vayikra Rabah 11: 8 and Shemot Rabah 5: 5, where the convocation is not a feast but a judicial assembly, convened to judqe the nations 1,1
(WN1~ ~Wl,
Nl~l
n,~ ~NJ C~lJ--"The
111lJ
~N1W,
,l~T
nN
~,Wl~~
~·~~~
l,nD
Holy One, blessed be He will qather the
elders of Israel around as at a threshinq floor, and he will sit at the head of them all as the president of the court.") A passaqe riqhteous
in
assembled
bBava in
Batra
the
time
75b374 to
also come,
describes and
here
themselves are the focus of adulation: 11lJ Wll~ l~,l9~ C,1Tl1NW C,~,~~ l,l,nD 1TD~N 1"N 1nlli11 ll,~:l 1NWli1 il,ill 1TlNJW il"~i'il ,l9~ C,1Tl1NW 1~ 1TlN, Wll~ D,~W11,~ R. Elazar said: There will come a time when 'Holy!' will be said before the riqhteous as it is said before the Holy One, blessed be He, for it is said, 'And it shall come to pass that he that is left in Zion and he that remaineth in Jerusalem, shall be called Holy.' (Isa.4:3)
374
Paralleled i.n the Yalkut Shimoni. 299.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
the they
379
on the one band,
this midrash involves
a
rather
literal
readinq of its prooftext in rsaiah; but, on the other,
its
interpretation of the desiqnation "holy" as indicatinq the formula of anqelic worship before God (as in rsaiah 6) amounts to quite an astonishinq assertion of a quasi-divine status and situation of the riqhteous in the future.
The passaqe reminds
of Bereshit Rabah 8:10, in which the anqels mistakenly set out to say "Holy!" before Adam in Eden.
Here the sanctification
is not a mistake, and yet it may very well be that the anqels are meant once more as the speakers of the "Holy!".
Who else,
after all, would be left to offer the praise? A tradition attributed to R. Sifre on Numbers (92)
Shimon b.
Yochai in the
takes similar advantaqe of an Isaian
prediction concerninq the vindicated inhabitants of Zion in the time to come: 01~n~ 1~ N~~ i,nu~ ~Nw l,Jn 1n1N ,Nnl, 1~ 11nnw ,~, 1~n ,~ ~nnn ~Wl~l ~J~~~ ~19IT1 'JW D,J~T~ il~~ ~~liT ilJ il~~ l,J~T ilJl C~Wl1,~1 ll,~ 1~~ nlN~~ 'il il~~ l,J~T ilJl N~N 1nNJ N~ l,N,~J ilJ ,,~N~n
R. Shimeon b. Yochai says: How do we know that even in the time to come it will be so, namely that the omnipresent pays respect to the elders? 375 As it is said, "Then the moon will be confounded and the sun ashamed, for the Lord of Hosts will reiqn on Mount Zion and in Jerusalem and before his elders will manifest His qlory" (Xs. 24:23) rt says not "before His anqels," nor "before His prophets", but "before His elders." As
in
the
settinq
of
Eden,
at
the
end
of
bTaanit
and
parallels, God is present and manifest amid the riqhteous in 375
The previou• •egment of the text di•cu••e• Gocf•• honoring of the •eventy elder• at Sinai.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
380
this passage in a manner more readily associated with angels and with prophets.
Once more, the righteous in the end of
days seem to take up the position of God's closest entourage. The message of these narratives of Eden and the time to come can perhaps be read in view of the other sources that we have seen as a reversal of the relative position of Israel and the angels in the present world.
In this world, the angels
constitute the inner court of God, while Israel exists on the outskirts of heaven. 376
In the world to come the righteous
of Israel will take the innermost positions and the angels will have to look over human shoulders to discern the business of the divine academy.
376
Th.i• i.mage of inner court and outski.rt• is borrowed from the parable in Bere•hi.t Rabah 68112. Therer a• we have •eenr the angel• are •urpri.•ed to fi.nd Jacob a•leep, becau•• when they a•cend on high they encounter hi.• ilaage l'lld 1, l li1,Mr that i.•r God, enthroned in judgement. The mi.dra•h goe• on to draw an analogy to an earthly ki.ng who i• found •i.tti.ng i.n judg-nt when one vi.•i.t• the palace, but asleep when one vi.•i.t• the out•ki.rt• of hi.• realm. In the same veinr the Ki.dra•h on P•al.ma 19:3 •ay•r by way of a parabler with reference to the heaven•, that only the i.nhabi.tant• of the province i.n which the ki.ng li.ve• can declare hi.• wealth and gloryr whi.le tho•• who li.ve many para•ang• removed cannot.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
381 f'lle
Allqe~ic
,~,:U.IlJ
Baqes li.Dd the AcadeJIY
ll,j21
,~,J.Utl
NJN lli,
O.D
Biqb
NJ.N 1J.
~NlnW
'1 1nN Nlli1i1J
R. Shemuel b. Aba said: I know the lanes of heaven as well as I know the lanes of Nehardea. Berakhot 58b377 The same midrash on Psalm 16 that enumerates the seven companies of the righteous whose faces will be radiant in the time to come, and describes their assembly as standing in the pattern of the Temple's candelabrum, goes on to present a difference of opinion between "two Amoraim" as to the kind of men who will stand at the right hand of God in that assembly. According to one they will be distinguished by strength in Torah (i11lni1 rrJn NJW i1T) and according to the other they will be scrupulous
"scribes and teachers of
1n,nN~
,in~nl).
nli21J,n
children"
(0,1910
The two classifications correspond
roughly to two sorts of distinction in rabbinic learning that are recognized in bBerakhot 64a: 0,1i1 1i21ll, the "uprooter of mountains," able to perform great feats of exegesis; and ,J,O, "Sinai,"
the prodigious human
tradition.
The ostensible dispute between the "two Amoraim"
in the midrash on Psalm 16 question:
storehouse and purveyor of
leaves one conclusion beyond
Either way, God's right hand men, so to speak, in
the time to come, are to be rabbinic sages. 377
Cf. Kiclra•h
Oil
P•alm• 19:4.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
382
This eschatology of a divine inner court of rabbinic saqes, as well as the notion of a heavenly academy ~~Dn
or D,i11i
evidenced
Mn~ ,nn),
rabbinic
is
continuous with a
self-conception
identification with the heavenly host. that
many
classical
nationally, anqels.
rabbinic
ancestrally,
and
(~W ~~,w,
pervasively
that
involves
We have already seen
sources
associate
eschatoloqically,
Israel, with
the
In this seqment, examininq sources in which the saqes
themselves are, to varyinq deqrees, described as anqelic, we will see that those themes of anqelification subserve a selfidentification of the rabbis with the anqels in the present. That is to say, the anqelification of the Patriarchs, of Moses and the Prophets, of Israel at Sinai, and of the riqhteous in the time to come, amounts to an anqelic anthropoloqy of Jewish humanity that includes the rabbinic proponents of the theme themselves as well. We have already encountered the image of the elders of Israel gathered around, "as at a threshinq floor," in a court over which God presides, in the time to come.
We have also
seen the idea that, in the future, the angels will have to ask Israel's righteous, who will be stationed closer to the divine throne, to report on the balakhot expounded by God. imaqes of the world to come are,
of course,
These
akin to the
"heavenly academy,• imaqined in many sources as beinq already extant in the heavens above this world and as the destination of
rabbinic
saqes
beyond
death.
The
idea
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
that
God's
383
occupation in the present world is the presidency, as it were, of a qreat bei t midrash in the sky, in and of itself bespeaks a belief that terrestrial rabbinic activity is continuous with the business of heaven. The famous near-death vision of an "inverted world" D71n 119~,
attributed to the ailinq R. Yosef, son of R. Yehoshua b.
Levi, in bPesachim soa and bBava Batra lOb--in which "those [formerly] above are now below and those [formerly] below now above,"
~7nn7
n,J1nnn1
~un7
n,J,,7n--describes the rabbinic
saqes as beinq just the same in that world as they are in this one:
R. Yehoshua b. Levi asks his son,
how are we there?" and is told, 1J,n,N nn~,
nn~
,J~
"Just as we are here are we there."
,J,~
NJ~
1JN1, "And
ln,NI
,J,~
,J
What's more, R.
Yosef qoes on to say, he heard a voice there proclaiminq, ,lWN 11,~
111n7nl 1NJ7
N~W
,n--"Happy is he who comes here with his
[rabbinic] learninq in hand," and also DIN l,N n1J7n 1n~,nn~
,lll~
llnD7 71J,--"As for those put to death by the [Roman]
qovernment, no man can stand in their partition!"
Alonq with
the qlory of martyrdom, the point of this account seems to be the centrality and continuity of rabbinic activity, which qoes on unchanqed amid the cosmic inversion of the vision. A different imaqe, attributed to R. Yehuda b. R. Simon in Vayikra Rabah 19:3, on the other hand, seems to describe the vindication of the rabbinic saqes in terms of a transformation of aspect in the time to come.
The midrash is one of several
that are presented as responses to Lev.15:25, havinq to do
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
384
with impure discharge from the female body, and, by extension, as responses to the problem of the Torah's including matters that seem disgusting: 1ITM
,, 11IT~ 11J~~J 1~M1n 1n1M 1ITM ~lnJl ~11DJ n111rrw 1n1M l~M M~M 1~~11, 0,~1~J C,1,g~J 1~,M1n ~,nJl C,T1MJ ~~M ~Til O~lD~ 0,11ITW1 0,11DJ 1,M1J 1i1W i111n ,J~ ~lnJ
n,nrrrr
,,,n~n~
M1~
1ng 11n,o
n,,,g~J
1"~
~,,~,
1~,M1n
M~~
,,nu~
R. Yebudah b. R. Simon explained the verse as having to do with the disciples of the wise, thus: One verse says, "Black like a raven," while another says, "His appearance is like Lebanon [from lavan, white] excellent as cedars," and it is written, "Their appearance is like torches, like flashes of lightning they dart." All of these verses refer to the sons of Torah, who appear ungainly and black in this world, but in the world to come, "their appearance is like torches." The image of human faces shining like torches is,
by now,
already familiar to us from many other midrashim in this study.
Likewise, the black and ungainly appearance of the
sages in this world belongs to a well-known theme: the earthly toil with which they must support their studies. 378 the images of this agadah bespeak a activity
is
a
constant
in
the
transition,
midrashic
While
rabbinic
formula.
The
essential occupation of the Sages does not change, only their appearance does--the radiant aspect of the
rabbinic
life
becomes apparent. According
to
attributed to R.
Vayikra
Rabab
11:8,
in
a
tradition
Ishmael b. R. Bibi and R. Shimeon and R.
378
A proximal addraah, in Vayikra Rabah 19:1, speaks of the toil neceaaary to aupport Torah-atudy.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
385 1~wn C,l~T--"The
appoint
His
own
Holy One, blessed be He will, in the future, assembly
of
elders.•
The
prooftext
is
Isa.24:23, speakinq of God's eventual sovereiqnty on Mt. Zion outshininq the sun and the moon, and especially the phrase il~~
,,l~T
illl--"before His elders shall be qlory.•
same midrash qoes on,
quotinq R.
This
Avin in the name of R.
Yishmael b. R. Yehoshua, to describe the judicial 'threshinqfloor,' 111l, of the time to come, with the riqhteous arrayed around God like the Sanhedrin around its president.
:It is
true that anqels do not fiqure explicitly in these traditions, but it is equally evident that the saqes have taken the place of the anqelic inner court of God in these visions.
Vayikra
Rabah 11:8 qoes on to quote the mishnaic description of the Sanhedrin seated in the formation of a threshinq-floor (cf. msanhedrin
4:3),
and
ends
in
a
rather
mysterious
(and
mysteriously attributed) tradition, quotinq Solomon (possibly the kinq)
as sayinq: Oi1, J, :l
c~n1~n
i1,n,nn , JN--":I saw Him
manifest concentratedly in the midst of them." The reference to God confined or concentrated
(c~nl~n)
in
the midst of the earthly court corresponds to another account in Vayikra Rabah 29:4, in which the sense of the statement is more fully explained: 'il i1ll11n ,llil, Cllil ,,WM ('09 c,~i1n) rrng llW1i1, ,, CilW C,l~T ilwnn~ M1~ 1ng 1i1:lM '1 ll~~il, l,Jg 11N:l l~W N,O,~~lC n,ln i1W1ll i1":l~il iln i1JWil nM 1:lll~ C,OJ~J c,1n1M w•iln 1un~n Ci1,J,~ lnl,~W c~n~n1 i,,,, l~lln~n OW) 1~ :lln~W ,n Ni1~N Nil Nil~N Nil cp~n Ni1 9.,~n Nil 1,o,~~JO n,ln i1~1 c,Wli~ i10~ p1llJ ~N (/'0"9 c,~iln/ 1Dtl CMW iln~ 1~ ~~ iltln~ Cil,l,:l lnJ,JW C~n~nl l~W ll~~il, l,Jg 11M~ i"ilil Cil,l9 1,Nn i1":l~i1 i1~~il 1:li:l
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
381
R. Yehoshua opened his discourse: "Happy is the people who know the sound of the [shofar's] blast; they walk, o Lord, in the light of Your countenance" (Ps.89:16). R. Abahu interpreted this verse as having to do with the five elders who enter to intercalate they year. What does the Holy One Blessed be He do? He leaves His senate on high and descends and concentrates his Shekhinah among those below. The ministering angels say, This mighty one, this mighty one, this God, this God, the one of whom it is written, "An exalted God in the great council of the holy ones" (Ps.89:16); he leaves His senate and concentrates his Shekhinah among them below? Why does he do this much? So that if they err in a matter of law, the Holy One Blessed be He illumines their faces. Thus it is written, "They walk in the light of Your countenance." This version of the narrative, in Vayikra Rabah, sets up the Sanhedrin as a rival court, as it were, over and against the angelic retinue of the heavens. 81:4,
the exegesis of Ps.89:16,
In the Midrash on Psalms "Happy is the nation that
knows the sound of the [shofar's] blast," is recast to similar effect: l,Dil,W 1,1i~JD 1nM 11J,~~, l,Jg
l~M
~Dl1n
,Di1,
DD~
,1WM 1ITM
1~i
11M~ '~ ~11n ~w ~nn11n~ 1n,~, M~,~ ~J~~~ c~,Jg ,,Mn1 o~nu c,Jon ~·~~~w ,~~M ,,
Blessed are the members of the Sanhedrin who know to discuss in the joyful sound of Torah," and, in the name of R. Abahu, the biblical rejoinder, "they walk in the light of Your countenance" is read as: "the Holy One, blessed be He, conforms to their decisions and makes their faces shine with the radiance of Torah Very much as in the midrash of the sleeping Jacob, beset by astonished angels,
in Bereshit
Rabah 68: 12,
the angels of
these accounts seem surprised and even dismayed at the evident continuity between heaven and earth where Israel is concerned. This midrashic theme conveys the idea that the elders of
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
387
Israel, assembled for sacred deliberations, are to some extent interchangeable with the celestial synod as an appropriate abode
for
angelified
God's in
presence.
these
The
sources
so
rabbis much
as
are
perhaps
not
angels
are
the
rabbinized, made out to constitute a heavenly Sanhedrin; but that
is no less a
suggestion that rabbis and angels are
somehow interchangeable and to some extent alike. Still other agadot suggest that the particular members of the heavenly and earthly courts might be quite compatible one with the other. and
rabbis
Academic congress between principal angels
figures
in
two
rather mysterious,
cryptic passages in the Talmud Bavli, Berakhot 4la. Yishmael is quoted as reporting: 10 7N,110 ,, rro D,Jg~--"Three
brief,
and
First, R. 0,1~1
~w7w
things Suriel the Minister of the Countenance
related to me."
curiously,
the three angelic admonitions
concern rather quotidian hazards (such as passing a cup of asparagus-broth to someone other than the person from whom it was received), but, according to the heavenly source, a band of harming angels lies in wait for a person to be cauqht in such pitfalls.
Immediately following this passage we find a
similar quotation of R. Yehoshua b. Levi, saying,
0,1~1
~w7w
n1n~
rrN7n ,, rro--"Three things the Angel of Death related to
me."
These passages are extremely tantalizing, as they say
nothing more about the contact between these rabbis and the respective angelic figures.
Just about all we can say is that
the talmudic redactors seem to have taken very matter-of-
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
388
factly the notion that early rabbinic sages might have held practical
conversations
with
principal
members
of
God's
angelic entourage. The Midrash on Psalms 19:10 presents a quite poignant passage in which rabbinic intellectual activity is cast in ,
quite cosmological terms, although the action involved is one of calculation and not a mystical scaling of the heavens. C,il 1n 1,'1tJ1J 11J.lli1 ilC l,llil,l '1N1tlP ,Jj2T iltJn'1 CilWJl 01,'1 1,Jn1J1 i1'1,'1i1 1n 1,'1n1J1 i1~,~'1 1,Jn1J1 C,JW ,WN11 C,WiiT ,WN1 lllJ.i2W 1ITN'1 illllil n,J.n l,N~l, N~, p1Nil '1JJ. i,n nlilllnil nN 1Ji2nl ilJWil nN 11J.,lll il~j2J.l nlilllnil ,nnll ilJWil WN1 ,nn,N C,1n1N ~JilW Cli2 n191j2nJ. ilnJJ. WilrrJ. ilnJJ. i1T'1 ilT 1,'1N1WW Ci1,'1n '1J.n
Below are the elders of Israel, who know the secret of calendrical intercalation; they take from the day and give to the night and from the night and qive to the day, and when they come out from the place of assembly, havinq fixed the new moons and new years and intercalated the calendar and fixed the appointed times, then "Their line is gone out through all the earth" (Ps.19:5), for all say, When is the new year? When are the festivals? "And their words to the end of the world" (Ps.19:5), for all ask one another, What day of the month is it? What point in the season is it? The calendrical authority of the sages is cast here in terms that evoke actual heavenly potency, and the midrash applies to the sages prooftexts, from Psalm 19, which in their context speak of the heavens and the firmament expressing divine qlory.
Thus, although the subject is calendrical calculation,
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
389
this midrash associates the rabbis with the heavens as thouqh the saqes had real power in that realm. 379 Preternatural elements in narratives of the deaths of certain saqes suqqest an easy transition between the world of the rabbis and the celestial realm.
Vayikra Rabah 3 0: 1
relates the story that, when R. Hoshaya of Tiriya died, his bier was seen to soar in the air
1,1N~
~IT19W
1nun 1N1.
In a
narrative in the Talmud Bavli, Bava Metsia 86a, a note falls from the heavens in Pumbedita bearinq the message: "Rabba b. Nachmani has been requested in the heavenly ~7Dn
7W
~~,W,~ W~~nl
,JnrrJ.
academy"--1~ ~~1
And on the previous paqe (85a),
we find the followinq sequence of two narratives, which are quoted here in full: ,Trr :,~n110 1~ N~,~rr ~1 ,7 ,nnwN :N~,~r. ~1 1nN 11,9W 11~ N19~7i ,~,~l 1~,7N IT,JW ~1~i ll~1n N1~~ ,Nn :~,7 ,1nN .N11J~ l,7~,niJ l,,ni Nn11N71 ,~,J,D ,~70 ,J ll~1 ,7 ,1ITN :1~,7N7 ~,7 1nNi :,7 1nN1 ?,N~ 1~7 ,1~~ ,71JnoN n,~n 1~71J~ :,7 1nN ,D,~1i Nn~,nn7 ?1~,,Jn,o ,Nn .~,~ 7Jnon N7i N,,rr ,~1i N~1~11n ,~1i N~1~11n 1~7 ,,nnJ1 ,~7o ,J ,JN7n ,7TN 1~71J~ , ,NW9JN Nn~1N7 ,N~n N7 .n,TTJ 1 ~,70 ~,W9Jni N, ,IT N1~l N1~~7 1~1,TTn1 N11Ji ,U,U1~ ,1n 1nN ~~~ ,7JnON :NJ,nN ,~,n1DnN ,TTUnWN ,7TN 1TTn7 .~,.J,U7 1~J,n01 Nn~,nn~ TT,JW ~1~ ,~,7N .,NonN1 ,NJ,Jnn 1ni Nn,,Jnn 1nN .NnN N71 ~,7 ~ll ,~1~ NTT1, W,1 iTT Nn1, ,,~1i NJn,~1NiN =~,7 1nN ?1n7 ~,7 ~lJ Nnnu ,Nn :~,7 ~~~,7 1J1 .~,7 Nl,Jln1 ,,7~n1 ~,i, NJ,wn1 C~1~N7 ,g~n :,1~o !,ii~ ,i~~ 1~.J,n~171 -~~n,7 1J1 w,1 =~,7 1nN - .~,JnT N7~ rr,wn7 ~,7 ,n,,n1 ,,nrr1~ .l,J~1 N,,n ,~1 ,NJ,N :~,7 1nN- ?~T~ C71D~ 1nn11i
~,7
379
Siailarly, in Midra•h Tehili.JD 4: 4, R. Bo•haiah i• quoted a• •aying, with reference to the •age'• calendrical activity, that God conform• to the deci•ion of the elder• of I•rael and approve• whatever they enact, and .in a differently dramatized pre•entation of the same th. . . , .in Pe•ikta Rabati 15, the angel• in heaven come before the throne of glory to a•k the date of the new year, only to be told that both they and God mu•t go to go li•ten to the decree of the •age• of I•rael on the matter.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
390
1nN .l,J~l N,,n ,~,, l~J,nnN ,Nn,Jnn ,~, 1Tl ,J ,M1~,n NnMl - CWl~ i,11n 1nM ,M~,T ~~Wll - IT11~ lMn :ND,~1~ ,,nM .Nn7D Wl1 - c,nn~ ~,nn ,n,n7 Non ,1~,7M7 li11,nN .1~,7N :,1nN ?Nn7D~ N,T1 ,7l ,N11Ji N~liJ 1~7 ,ni,N NnN .N11li ,0719 1,nw l~l,nn .l~J,i1~1 l~,,J,~ 7D
~,wn
Said R. Chaviva: R. Chaviva b. Surmakai lectured me [as follows] : Do you see this rabbi who was frequently visited by Elijah, whose eyes this morninq were fine and this eveninq are as if they had been charred in the fire? I said to him: What is this? And he said to me: That one [that is, I] said to Elijah: Show me the rabbis as they ascend to the Academy of Heaven. He said to me, You may qaze upon all of them, except for the chariot of R. Chiya, upon which you are not to qaze. [I asked): What is its distinquishinq feature? [He answered]: All the rest are accompanied by anqels who ascend and descend, exceptinq the chariot of R. Chiya, which ascends and descends of its own accord. I could not restrain myself and I looked at it. Two sparks of fire came and struck that man [i.e. me) and blinded his eyes. The next day I went and prostrated myself at [R. Chiya's) tomb. I said, the mishnayot of the master are [correct) mishnayot, and I was healed. Elijah [the prophet) was a frequent visitor in the Academy of Rabbi. One day, it was New Moon and he tarried and did not come. [Rabbi] said to him: For what reason did the master tarry? [Elijah] said to him, By the time I raised up Abraham and washed his hands and he prayed and I laid him down, and thus aqain for Isaac, and thus aqain for Jacob... [Rabbi said,] You ouqht to have raised them up all at once! [Elijah replied,] I reasoned that they would be so stronq in their prayers as to brinq the Messiah before his proper time. [Rabbi] said to him, Have we ones like them in this world? He replied: Indeed, R. Chiya and his sons! [There havinq been no rain,] Rabbi declared a fast. He made R. Chiya and his sons to qo down before the Ark [to lead the prayers). [R. Chiya) recited 'Who maketh the wind to blow, ' a wind came! He recited 'And maketh the rain to fall, ' the rain came! When he came to say 'Who quickeneth the dead,' the earth shook! In heaven they said: Who has revealed this secret on earth? They answered: Elijah! They brouqht in Elijah and lashed him with sixty straps of fire. [Elijah then] went and appeared to [the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
rabbis] as a fiery bear, went among them, distracted them [in their prayers].
and
The first seqment of this narrative sequence in bBava Metsia 86a speaks of the rabbis beyond death, entering the yeshivah on high.
The suggestion that R.
needs
angelic
no
aid
on
its
dangerously awesome to behold, angel if ication
of
Chiya's chariot
journey, reads
that particular
and
as
(Mi11i11l)
it
is
something of
an
sage.
that
He
is
no mere
passenger or visitor to the heavenly realm, but a celestial diqnitary in his own right. The
awesome
aspect of
R.
Chiya
after
his
death
remarkable enough as an indication of rabbinic hopes participation in the world of angels.
is for
The adjoining narrative
seqment, concerning R. Chiya and his sons, although not set in the heavens, is perhaps even more noteworthy, for it suggests that
rabbinic
sages might
hold
considerable
sway
celestial realm even during their earthly lives.
in the Elijah's
being lashed for revealing the secret of these sages' true stature
reminds
of
Enoch/Metatron's
being
lashed
for
inadvertently misleading a mortal into wondering whether there might be two powers in heaven.
certainly, the admonition
given Elijah leaves the impression that the distinction of R. Chiya and his sons is a matter secret and celestial,
and
perhaps best left unknown to those on earth. Once more the angels in heaven become place-holders for Israel's elite--this time in the mold of rabbinic jurists. The heavens are rabbinized, and the world of the rabbinic beit
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
392
midrash is rendered quasi-celestial.
God deliberates upon
halalcha in the heavens, recites the dicta of the rabbinic sages, occasionally sUDUDons them to take seats in the heavenly
yeshivah, and sometimes transposes Himself from the heavenly court into the earthly one, making the terrestrial rabbis themselves His inner circle, in a foretaste of the time to come. When Moses ascended to heaven, according to R. Acha in the name of R. Chanina in Bemidbar Rabah 19:7, he found God engaged in study of the scriptures concerning the red heifer ~19 nw19~
~OlDl
~Wl,,
and reciting an apposite ruling in the
name of its rabbinic proponent a ruling of R. Eliezer.
~1n1N DW~
~~7~,
in this case,
Similarly, in bChagigah 15b, God is
reported (by Elijah the Prophet to Rabah b. Shila) to recite teachings
in the name of
their rabbinic tradents.
Such
accounts of God's reviewing the dicta of the sages make the case that the business of the rabbinic beit midrash is also the business of the highest heavens.
The creation of a
heavenly paradigm for the rabbinic house of study suggests that rabbinic learning is also conceived as an imitation of activity in the celestial world.
on the basis of Bereshit
Rabah 1: 1, in which God "looks into the Torah and creates the world"
D71D~
nN
N11~1
~11n~
c,~n,
we might say hat the very
act of Torah-study is considered by at least some rabbinic
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
393
minds
as
an imit;at;io dei,
a
playing with
the
fires
of
creation. 380 A characterization of the rabbinic sage as a player with divine fire certainly seems to be the message of the following agadah in Vayikra Rabah 16:4: 11nM ,,n,~,~o n~~~n WM~1 w1111 ~w,, ~,~ ,MTll 1~ T,1nn M~M 1M~ 1~~ 1nM ~01ll ~nM ~~~1n ,110~ MnW 01,~ 1,nnw ~11n ,,~i1 c,~,n~~ c,M,~J1 c,M,~J~ ~11n 1D1~ 1~~1 i"~~ 1Jn,J WM~ 1nl,nJ ,~,n ,J,c~ 1nJ,nJ ~,~
,1~i
WM~
Ben Azai was sitting and expositing and fire was flashing all around him. They said to him, Perchance you are dealing with matters of the chariot? He said to them, No, I was merely stringing words from the Torah to the Prophets and from the Prophets to the writings, and these words of Torah were joyous as on the day they were given at Sinai. They were given at first in fire; thus it says, "And the mountain burned in fire" (Deut.4:11). 381 This passage reminds of the narratives of merkavah- exegesis in bChagigah 14b, and especially of the account there in which the angels congregate,
in a rainbow-suffused assembly,
listen to the expositions of R. Yehoshua and R. Yose.
to In
380 According to thia miclraah, God usea the primordially created scripture• like an architect•• plan. •aeginning• n,wM, is read as Torah, on the baaia of Pa.lll:lO, thua the first scriptural quideline is: •with Torah God created,• and so God createa. In Bereshit Rabah 17:5, R. Avin ia quoted aa adding two itema to a liat of experienced phenomena that correapond to realitiea beyond normal human life. (The original three itema on the liat are: aleep aa a d~inutive form of death, clreaming aa a leaaer form of prophecy, and the Sabbath aa a ahade of the world to come.) The addition to thia liat reada, i1'7Nn '7m il,lN n'nll 1,n,n llD cpom l":lM ":1, il,ln i1'7Dn ~ iln~n n'7:lll ilnn '7l'7l--•R. Avin adda two: the derivative of the heavenly light ia the diac of the aun1 the derivative of heavenly wiadom ia Torah.• In thia view, juat aa the inhabitant• of the earth partake to aome extent in the radiance of heaven, by way of the aun, ao they may partake in celeatial wiadom by way of the Torah.
A a~lar acene ia depicted, in Ruth Rabah 6:4, at the circ:umciaion cer.aony of the aage Bliaha, where R. Eliezer and R. Yehoahua become engaged in rapturoua acriptural expoaition. 381
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
314
bChaqiqah 14b, the imaqe of the anqels qathered around to bear exeqetically derived descriptions of their own realm seems to suqqest that the rabbinic knowledqe of that realm that miqht be attained throuqh study of the scriptures is not inferior to
the first-hand familiarity of that realm's own denizens.
The
account of Ben Azai's exeqesis in Vayikra Rabah 16:4 suqqests that esoterica and heavenly speculation are not the only means by which
to
realize
the preternatural
power
inherent
in
rabbinic activity--even more run-of-the-mill rabbinic exeqesis is cbarqed with divine fire. The brief narrative of Ben Azai's exeqesis in Vayikra Rabah
16: 4
can easily be read as
somethinq of a
polemic
aqainst heavenly speculation and esoteric mystical strivinqs combined
with
an
effort
to
retain
some
associated with that kind of activity. 382
of
the
potency
The fire that laps
around Ben Azai is borrowed from the thematic environs of the merkavah in order to promote more quotidian immersion in the Torah as a means to the same wondrous spiritual satisfaction. At the same time, much as in the central Europe of Rabbi Chaim
382
By way of analogy, the idea, in the account of Ben Azai, that normal rabbinic exegetical atudy might auffice aa a meana to divine radiance, remind• aomewhat of what we aight call the 'devekut of normal Torah-nudy' propounded in the ninet-nth century by Rabbi Chaim Volozhin over and againat the ecatatic and eaoteric allure of Baaidiaa and Kabali. . . Immanuel Btkaa, Rabbi Iarael Salanter and the Kuaaar Kov. . .nt: Seelting the rorah of !'ruth, JPS, 1993, pp.33-36. Of Rabbi Bayyim Volozhin'a effort to •reatore the poaition of Torah atudy •• the higheat religioua value• through an ideological ayatem •woven out of concept• and idea• borrowed froa kabbaliatic literature,• Btkea writea, •xn effect, Rabbi Bayyim aaaigna to the acholarly elite the coaaic taak that had hitherto been reatricted to the kabbaliatic elite. Thua, the lomda, whoae aain activity ia Torah atudy, fulfill a univeraal aiaaion of the higheat order ••• • (pp. 33-34).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
315
Volozhin's
day,
there
seem
to
have
been
competinq
sensibilities in the circles of classical rabbinism where the intersection of earthly and heavenly experience was concerned. At least some amonq the early rabbis seem to have been interested in the kind of exploration of and participation in the heavenly world that fiCJUres in pseudepiqraphic literature. A well-known and apparently tanaitic narrative in bBerakhot 7a exemplifies that interest: 1,l:Jj7i17 ,nOJJJ nnN Oll9 llW,7N l l 7NllnW, 1"N ~PJn Nli1W nlNJ~ 'i1 i1, 7N,1nJN ,n,N11 O,J971 ,J97 n11l:Jj7 ,n1nN ,JJ1J ,JJ 7NllnW, ,., 1nN1 NWJl 01 NCJ 71l JWl, 7n 1,nrr1 ,.,,l,, lOllJ nN 1,nrr1 lWJJ,W l,J97n 1"i1, ,., c,J97 ci17 DJJnl c,nn1i1 ninJ l,JJ en li1Jnn1 1,n11n 1WN1J ,., llJllJl 1,1i1 n11Uln
It was tauqht, R. Ishmael b. Elisha said: I once entered [the innermost part of the Sanctuary] to offer incense, and I saw Akatriel Yah, the Lord of Hosts, that He was seated upon a hiqh and lofty throne, and He said: Ishmael, My son, bless Me. So I said: May it be Your will that Your mercy conquer Your anqer and that Your mercy overcome Your (other] attributes and that You deal with Your children accordinq to the attribute of mercy and be lenient with them. Thereupon He nodded His head. This narrative calls to mind the sixth chapter of Isaiah, where too the Temple seems to serve as conduit to the vision of God enthroned in the court of heaven.
Here, in the quise
of Hiqh Priest, R. Ishmael b. Elisha takes up the office of anqelic minister before God's manifest presence.
There is a
certain archaism to this rabbinic passaqe, not only because of its settinq in the Temple, but also because its vision of the divine throne, and the human beinq ac:lJDitted before it, smacks so of Isaiah and Ezekiel.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
39&
It is instructive to contrast the narrative above, from bBerakhot 7a with a tradition in Vayikra Rabah 10:2 that takes up the sixth chapter of Isaiah explicitly, but to quite a different end.
This agadah seems to reveal a
competing
tendency in some rabbinic thought--the tendency away from heavenly experience and speculation:
1nN
~,DW,~
~"~~~
~w
1n9 11n,0 1~ ~i1~, ,~1 DW~ ~,1TU '1 ,nunw1 ,i1n~n n,~~ ,n,,~ ~,,on ~,uw, 1l~ 1~, ,n, n~wN ,n nN (1 ~,uw,) n1n1N
~,,~
1~1~
R. Azariah in the name of R. Yehuda b. Simon interpreted the verse with reference to Isaiah. Isaiah said: I was at leisure in my house of study and I heard the voice of the Holy one Blessed be He saying, "Whom shall we send and who shall go for us?" (Isa.6:8). This agadic passage takes a biblical story set in the divine throne-room and recasts it as a narrative of the rabbinic house of study.
In its scriptural context, the divine call of
Isa.6:8 comes amid winged seraphim and calls of "Holy, holy, holy," in the heavenly setting of God's throne. Rabah,
In Vayikra
the moment of Isaiah's commissioning is reinvented
entirely, as though the prophet's call were brought about not by service in the Temple and a vision in the heavens, but by deep immersion in rabbinic study.
Very much
like the
account of Ben Azai, expositing the Torah amid flashes of fire,
this revision of Isaiah's experience seems directed
against the urge to scale the heights of the divine realm. an alternative,
As
the passage promotes devotion to earthly
rabbinic activity.
No special feat of heavenly journeying is
requisite in this passage, just as no special contemplation of
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
317
esoterica is necessary in the account of Ben Azai. unpretentious,
even leisurely study of the Torah leads to
choice
God's
Simple and
of
rsaiah
from
amonq
all
possible
representatives, just as apparently unprepossessinq midrashic activity, in the case of Ben Azai, leads to that Saqe's being cauqht up in a wondrous light that suggests the merkavab to his peers.
Both the account of Ben Azai and this narrative of
rsaiah manage to retain some of the power of the very heavenly themes
that
they
also
obscure.
Seemingly
unremarkable
rabbinic activity becomes the path to the fire of the chariot and to the divine invitation of the sixth chapter of rsaiah.
A number of agadic sources suggest that at least some among the early rabbis thought of common customs of rabbinic piety in terms of self-association with the heavenly realm and self-identification with the angels. R.
Yehudah b.
For example, the Tana,
rlai is described as attaining a powerfully
anqelic aspect through his preparations for the Sabbath in a brief passage in bShabbat 25b: c,N,~n
cttJDnn1
n~w
~1n
1,~111
n1N~~
'~
,Nn~N
1,1, 1N~n~
,~
~~1~,
1,Jg 1'TT111 ~0111
,~,
~w
l,OTT
1,~,,1~0~
1l~Jn ~~n
~,~
1~
~~,1D
1~
l,l,IO~
~W1,1
R. Yebudah said in the name of Rav: This was the custom of R. Yehudah b. rlai: on the eve of the Sabbath they would bring him a basin of warm water, and he would wash his face, hands, and feet, and
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
318
wrap himself, and sit in fringed sheets, and he would resemble the Angel of the Lord of Hosts. 383 R. Yehuda b. Ilai's angelic appearance in the passage above calls to mind the dicta that declare the Sabbath to be a diminutive form of the world to come and Torah to be a diminutive form of heavenly wisdom.
Taking into account as
well the tropes of heaven as a divine beit midrash, and the theme of God surrounded by the elders of Israel in judicial assembly in the time to come, we should not be surprised that a great sage washed and cloaked in Sabbath finery should be the talmudic image of the Angel of the Lord of Hosts.
A
frequently repeated agadic tradition having to do with ritual fringes
(n,~,~)
suggests that the fringes mentioned in the
description of R. Yehuda b. Ilai's Sabbath trappings might be essential to his angelic aspect.
According to this tradition
God shares the blue of the fringes
(n~Jn)
with Israel as an
apportioning of His own glory, the color being associated, by way of various resemblances, to the heavenly throne of glory and God's own appearance in Ezekiel's vision. occasion for this midrash is the interpretation of in Ps.24 as
~,M,,~
lil~Jn ~~1nw l~n--"the
of His glory to those who fear Him."
The usual il~J~ 1~n
King who apportions The concept, as it
relates to the fringes, is most fully developed in the Midrash on Psalms 90:18.
We have already seen the portion of that
383 a. Yehuda b. Ilu'• •eated po8ture in th.i• image .incline• - to tran•late nnt::t~ 'il lM'ln •• •the Angel of the Lord of Bo•t•, • •ugge•t.ing the part.icular, •upr- angel.ic off.ice, rather than •an angel of the Lord of Bo•t•.•
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
311
midrashic segment in which Rebecca is said to have appreciated Isaac as angelic in appearance on account of his fringed garment
1n1ni1
(1M~n3
c,~~N--"She
n,~,~~ ~u1un1
Wl~~
1n1,~
11i~
1n1N
~nN1
saw him exceedingly splendid, garbed and wrapped
in fringes, and his appearance was like an angel of God"). The text also includes the following passages: c,~
n~3n
,,Nn '1
nlJ~,Nl
nlJ~,N~
~nli
D,~,~
nw~ ,,nNi n,N, ~,~rrr ,, 1nNT D,nli C,~WDl O,lWD~ ~nli D,l
1nNJW n1ni~ nw~1 nw~~ ~l1J1 ~l1J~ n,~,, l,lC ~llJ~ ~N1n 13 DWl~ Cl,l llD~ ~,~, 1WN 1,03nn ~N1W,w 1nTJ ~,~rrr ,, 1nN '~ i1~3 n1ni 13 N~N 1,Wl1~ 1~ n~3n NnW 1,11~0 ,,~, N~ on,N11 1nNJW 1~,~u ~J,3W 1i~ ,~,N~ n,~,~l 1,~~non ~ll 11i~1 , 1~ ~"l~~~ 1n1N N~N 1nNJ N~ On1N 1n1N
nw~~
~N1n3
~N1n Nl~ n,~,~l ~N1W, ,,~,
o~,Jl
For R. Chizkiah said, and some say it in the name of R. Meir: Sky-blue resembles the sea and the sea resembles the qrasses, and the grasses resemble the trees, and the treed resemble the firmament, and the firmament resembles the brightness (nogab), and the brightness resembles the rainbow, and the rainbow resembles the (divine) likeness, as it is said, "like the appearance of the rainbow that is in the cloud on a day of rain, that is the appearance of the brightness round about; that is the appearance of the likeness of the glory of the Lord' (Ezek.l:28). Said R. Chizkiah: When Israel covers up with fringes, let them not think that they are (merely] wearing sky-blue dye (tekhe~et). Rather thus should Israel contemplate the fringes--as though the beauty of the Shekhinah were upon them, as it is said, "And you shall see Him384 " (Num.l5:39). It does not say "them" (the fringes], but rather "Him"--meaning the Holy One Blessed be He. That is the meaning of "and your beauty upon their children." Once more, we see the path to heavenly glory identified as quotidian rabbinic behavior--here, the wearing of the fringed 384
In •criptural context. •it• (ma•culine), with reference to the comer-fringe.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
400
shawl.
This account of the fringes
does not
involve an
Enochic transformation of a human being into an angel, yet we can safely say that the participant in the custom is urged to see himself as angelic in aspect and as partaking in God's own radiant glory even as envisioned by Ezekiel. We have already mentioned that
the rabbinic
liturgy
evidences a strong interest in the world of the angels.
Not
only
is,
the various
permutations
of the kedushah--which
explicitly, an emulation of the angels and a participation in their service--but also the yotzer-li turgy of the morning blessings of the Shema invokes God's celestial servants, the angels and the luminaries, apparently as paradigms for the worshipper.
It is remarkable how much of the yotzer-liturgy
is phrased in the third person plural, naming and describing the heavenly beings that glorify God.
That is to say, the
dawn-prayer of classical rabbinism is a liturgy descriptive of the heavenly host.
This focus can be explained in part as a
celebration of the wonder of renewed light each morning, but the
use of descriptions
of God's heavenly
servants
as a
mandatory liturgy for the recitation of human beings must also be appreciated as urging those human beings to conceive of themselves and their worship along heavenly and angelic lines.
A tradition in pBerakhot 1: 1 is perhaps the earliest rabbinic textual witness to the idea that a reciter of the Eighteen Benedictions should adopt an angelic posture:
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
401 ,,~
,~1
1Mnl •••
1,M1lnN 1,1n ,,~l1 nK nllW~~ 1,1~ lnlDW l~T D,l~JJ 1nN 1n1 n,JN~nJ 1nK 1n 11n,o ,~,, ~1W, ~l1 D~,~l11 D,JK~nJ 1nNI
The one who stands [in prayer] must put his legs toqether. Two Amoraim, R. Levi and R. Simon [disaqree on this point], one saying 'like the angels, ' and one saying, ' like the priests' • • • The one who says 'like the angels' invokes the verse, "their legs were a straight leg." According to one of the two Amoraim of this passage,
the
participant in the statutory rabbinic prayer must make his body conform to the appearance of the heavenly angels.
The
same view is echoed by R. Yosi b. R. Chanina in the name of R. Eliezer b.
Yaakov later on the same page,
with the same
prooftext.
Even the opinion that the worshipper should adopt
the posture of the priests is not quite a negation of the idea of emulating the angels according to another dictum included on that same page: ~J1~~ nOJJ~ n,~~ O,l~J~ nN 1J1~ ~,,JW~ l,JN~n '~ ,,wun ~J '~ nN
nN nN
~Nl1W ~T Nll~ 1 1 1nK 1J1~ 1n1~ 1,1~ ~l1WN1 1J1~ n,w,~w~ ,,N~~ ~J ~~
Said R. Huna, One who sees the priests in the synagogue--at their first blessing must say "Bless the Lord, His angels," at their second blessing, "Bless the Lord, all His hosts," at their third blessing "Bless the Lord, all His works." rn view of this passage, and in view of the many traditions we have seen that associate the priests with the angels,
the
disagreement between the two Amoraim earlier on the page seems somewhat less substantial.
An emulation of the priests in
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
402
prayer is also an emulation of the anqels, albeit one imaqinal step removed. 385 Midrash Tanhumah (Tsav 13) bases the custom of risinq up on one's Ezekiel's
toes
durinq
the
recitation
of
the
description
of
heavenly
the
kedushah
creatures,
includes the phrase, "And with two he would fly."
on
which on this
basis, accordinq to the midrash, "the Saqes established that a man should fly up on his feet when the leader of prayers says, 'Holy holy holy!'"
Here we have another indication of
the statutory prayer as an occasion for a kind of anqelic role-play, an effort by the worshipper to pass as a celestial beinq. 386 A passaqe in the Midrash on Psalms 87:2, in its stylized form and clever construction perhaps epitomizes the absorption of the theme of anqelic Israel into the ethos of rabbinic learninq and reflects the easy association of the Saqes and the anqels in rabbinic thouqht: 1~ N~N ,, cw~ n,3,~ ,, 1nN 1,n1wnw i3i~ ,nn~1 ,,n n~ ,,nNl ~N,1~l1 ~N~,n u,~,~ ,~N~n ,,n n~ ,1,~9 cnw 1nN irr M,,rr ,, ,l~ n,~rrr1 niln, M~1Dn~ ,N11nN ,nnw1 ,,n 1 1 i~l l,i~ ,,n,~ n"~~n 1nN ngw, 1nN irrl 1,n1wnw i13i~ NJn~
"And X shall make your luminaries kadlcod" (Xsa.54:12). R. Berachiah tauqht in the name of R. Abba bar Kahana: As to the meaninq of kadkod, two
385
The . . . . page al•o contain• a dictum forbidding eating i.all.-diately before prayer, an idea that remind• of Mo••• • fa•ting on Sinai, through which he became angel-like. 386
We •hould al•o note that in the Midra•h on P•alm• { 17) the •reader of the •ynagogue• nDl~~ n,~ ttn, holding the •croll of the Torah i• •aid to be •like an angel of God. •
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
403
angels in heaven, Michael and Gabriel--and some say two AJDoraim in the West, namely Yehudah and Chezekiah, the sons of R. Hiyya--differed in opinion: One said kadkod means 'onyx,' the other said 'jasper.' Thereupon the Holy One, Blessed be He, declared, "It will be as this [one says], and as this [other one says] (kadein vecbadein)" Hence, "I shall make your luminaries kadkod" (the consonants kdkd being an acronym for kadein vechadein, "like this one and like that one"). The ostensible confusion of attribution in the passage above, between principal angels in heaven and the ADloraic sons of
a
storied
Babylonian
literary device. 387
rabbi,
is
clearly
a
deliberate
The alternate attributions--to angels
and to rabbis--convey a veiled statement about the nature of rabbinic identity.
The wordplay on kadkod, as an acronym for
"like this one and like that one," allows us to be certain that
we
are
dealing with
the
stylized composition
redactor (really an author in his own right)
of
a
who read the
consonants kdkd in this cryptic sense and then sportively wove together an early amoraic difference of opinion and a divine affirmation of both sides of the dispute to play upon his reading
(and
also
upon
the
classic
rabbinic
motif
of
contradictory rabbinic rulings simultaneously confirmed as divine truth, as in the famous instance of the Hillelites and Shamaites).
In a brilliantly formed circle of mystery, the
~ The Kidra•h on P•alm• ~. a relat~vely late corpu•. The pre•ent readi.ng of th~• pa••age pre.uppo•e• that •uch a late opu• not only •trag• together earl~er parcel• of rabb~n~c trad~t~on, ~n wh~ch attr~ut~on• of opa~on• to •pec~f~c •age• are made ~ good fa~th, but al•o adopt• the tecbn~cal convent~on• of the earl~er •ource•--oppo•ed opa~on• and alternate attr~t~on•, for exampl-a• •tyl~•t~c tool•, as way• of malting contr~ut~on• of •ub•tance and mean~ng. 3
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
404
very word over which the two sons of Rabbi Hiyya argue turns out to siqni:fy that both of them are right.
That much alone
is a clever work of midrashic creativity; but the componist of this passage goes one step farther, giving us some insight into his conception of rabbinic identity. Our midrashic passage is entirely about ontic ambiguity. Kadkod, in connection with luminaries, is an obscure noun, which invites a rabbinic determination.
The divine response
to the respective opinions of R. Hiyya's sons, makes the eventual actuality of Jcadkod dependent upon the differing conclusions of the two Amoraim, as thouqh a sinqle thing could be simultaneously onyx and jasper on account of the scriptural interpretations of two qreat sages.
The divine declaration
affirming both conclusions indicates the determining power of midrashic creativity.
The alternate, angelic attribution of
the dispute suggests that, in their knowledqe, influence, and mediation of mysterious divine realities, rabbis might easily be confused with angels.
One miqht even suqgest that the
repetition of the lema as a prooftex at the end of the midrash plays doubly upon the supposed acronym in Jcadlcod to aggrandize the rabbinic luminaries--"I shall make your heavenly lights like this sage and like that one." An easy shift of attribution between angels and rabbis
occurs also in bNedarim 20a-b.
On 20a, R. Yochanan b. Dahabai
reports that the ministering angels shared with him the causes of certain congenital deformities.
(The deformities are each
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
405
associated with unconventional sexual behavior on the part of the parents.)
Further along, on 20b, the Sages are cited as
rejecting the view of R. Yochanan b. Dahabai. AllleJDar,
is
then
quoted,
and
he deduces
The Amora,
that the
Sages'
rejection of R. Yochanan b. Dahabai's tradition indicates that heavenly ministering angels cannot have been meant as the source of the rejected tradition.
After all, he contends, the
angels must have superior knowledge conception,
and
inforaation.
the Sages
would not
the mysteries
of
have overruled such
Who then are the "ministering angels" cited by
R. Yochanan b. Dahabai, asks responds,
of
ll~1--the
Ameaar--?n1W~
Rabbis!
,~M1n
lMn--and he
The next question in the text
(possibly added by a later redactor) is "Why are they called ministering angels?" and answer given is
n1w~ ,~M1n~ ,l,,~n•--
"For they are distinguished like the ministering angels," with no further explanation provided. !ll~1
?n1w~
,~M1n
Rabbis!"--sounds isolation,
The question and answer,
lMn--"Who are the ministering angels? particularly
and we must
be
definitive
careful
to
and
exciting
remember
that
The in the
argument is made in the duress of talmudic give-and-take, in which
far-fetched
possibilities
are
often
entertained
in
defense of embattled positions or to tie up the loose ends of a debate.
We should also recall that even grader sobriquet,
elohim is applied by talmudic tradition to the ordained Sages of the land of Israel
(an interpretation of Ex.22:8 first
vitnessed in Tosefta Shevuot 3 : 8) •
Nevertheless, this naming
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
•o• of the Rabbis, attributed to Amemar, is a further indication that, at least in some rabbinic minds, the categories of Sage and anqel were readily interchangeable.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Cone~ usion
We have seen that the theae of angelic Israel, which flourished Qumran,
so
dramatically
in
the
pseudepigrapha
and at
is also well attested in classical rabbinic agadah.
What is more, where we might have expected a dramatic revision of the theme, or stronger ideological countercurrent&, we find reaarkable consistency with earlier Jewish sources. To be sure, we have seen some notes of rabbinic reticence and caution where the conflation of Israel and the angels is concerned.
We have also seen that rabbinic sources eschew the
cosmic narrative of good and evil as opposed angelic factions that pervades pseudepigrapic sources.
However, on the whole,
familiar lines emerge anew and are given new life and force. Humankind is described as originally angelic.
The line of
Israel's
Adam's
patriarchs regains,
angelic identity, legacy.
to some extent,
lost
and passes that possibility onward as a
The Temple in Jerusalem remains a reflection of the
heavenly court, and even a gateway to it.
The priests, and
Moses, and the other prophets, and Israel at large, are all imagined as partaking in an inherent affinity with the host of heaven. took
To this extent we can say that classical rabbinism
into its repertoire of tropes the theae of angelic
Israel.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
408
As in virtually any theme, the rabbinic sources reflect a variety of interests and agendas in the theme of angelic Israel.
Dramatic approaches to the divine throne, involving
transformations of human beings into angels can still be found, most notably in connection with the priestly service of the Temple and with Moses' ascent on Sinai.
Even the concept
of Israel as a bannered and wondrously armed angelic host persists in relatively late midrashic compilations.
There is
fuel to be found, in classical rabbinic literature, for the fires of mystical ascent and militant pursuit of the eschaton. On the other hand, the rabbinic sources, on the whole, bear witness to a calming of the bellicose and cataclysmic tendencies
associated
with
earlier Jewish traditions.
Israel's
angelic
identity
in
True, the nations round about are
regarded as akin to the beasts, while Israel alone realizes the angelic aspect of mankind. aspect is largely divorced,
Yet the realization of this
in the rabbinic sources,
dire, immediate, and violent vindications.
from
The righteous in
the time to come enjoy an angelic station--even a station inward of the ministering angels--but the sources that say so do not describe warlike ways in which that time to come might be hastened. For the most part, the rabbinic sources that speak of angelic Israel do so to encourage fidelity and meticulousness in the practice of rabbinic piety.
The sources we have seen
encourage the practitioner of rabbinic ways to develop an
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
401
anqelic self-concept, and to act accordinqly. required is consistently earthly,
concept heavenly.
The action
the corresponding self-
Anqelic identity is achieved and enjoyed
throuqh devout participation in the rabbinic life. This is not to say that the qrandeur or actuality of anqelic Israel is diminished in these sources.
The call of
anqelic identity remains a call to be orders of maqnitude qreater than one's self, to comprehend the infinite within the particulars of one's own life.
Correspondinqly, the wondrous
imaqes familiar from pre-rabbinic sources--the divine throne, heavenly fire, shininq visaqes, and proximity to the divine presence--fiqure anqelic Israel.
still
throuqhout
the
rabbinic
theme
of
At the same time, perhaps more effectively
than any other sources we have
seen
in this
study,
the
rabbinic aqadot encouraqe Israel to recoqnize anqelic identity as a reality within reach. essence--it
remains
only
The pious Jew is an anqel in for
that
identity
to
discovered by the Jew, and fully diqnified.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
be
fully
410
BIBLIOGRAPHY Abegg, Martin G. Jr., "Who Ascended to Heaven? 4Q491, 4Q427, and the Teacher of Righteousness," in craig E. Evand and Peter w. Flint, eds., Eschatology, Messianism, and the Dead Sea Scrolls," Michigan, Edermans, 1997. Abrams, Daniel, "Special Angelic Figures; The Career of the Beasts of the Throne-World in "Hekhalot" literature, German Pietism and Early Kabbalistic Literature," REJ 154, (1996) • Abrams, Judith z., "The Reflexive Relationship of Mal'achei HaSharet [the ministering angels] and the Sages", CCAR Journal, Fall, 1995. Allison, Dale Jr. 'The Silence of the Angels; reflections on the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice' Revue de Qumran 13, 1988. Altmann, A., "Shire Quedushah Besifrut Hhekhalot Hqqedumah", Helilab 2 (1946), pp. 1-24. Bamberger, Bernard J, 'The Sadducees and the Belief in Angels' JBL 82, 1963. Baumgarten, Albert I., The Flourishing of Jewish Sects in the Haccabean Era: An Interpretation, Leiden, Brill, 1997. Baumgarten, Joseph, "The Qumran Sabbath Shirot and Rabbinic Merkabah Traditions", Revue de Qumran 13, 1988. Bardke, H., "Considerations sur les cantiques de Qumran," Revue Biblique, 68 (1956). Bowker J, 'Merkabah Visions and the Visions of Paul', JJS 16, 1971.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
411 ~he Cologne Hani Codex (P. Colon. inv. nr. 4780) •concerning the Origin o~ his Body•, Montana, SBL, 1979.
Cameron, Ron and Arthur J. Dewey,
Caquot, Andre, 1988.
'Le Service des Anges'
Revue de Qumran 13 ,
Casey, P. M., Son o~ Han: The Interpretation and Influence Daniel 7, London, SPCK, 1979.
o~
Charlesworth, James H, 'The Portrayal of the Righteous as an Angel' in Nicklesburg & Collins, Ideal Figures in Ancient Judaism: Profiles and Paradigms, Chicago, SBLSCS 12, 1980. Chazon, Esther G., "4QDIBHAH: Liturgy or Literature?," Revue de Qumran 15 (1992), pp.447-455. Chernus, I, Mysticism in Rabbinic Judaism, Judaica 11, 1982.
Berlin,
Studia
M.s. , ~he Shiur Qomah: Liturgy and ~heurgy in PreKabbalistic Jewish Mysticism, New York and London, 1983.
Cohen,
Cohen, Shaye J. D., "The Significance of Yavneh: Pharisees, Rabbis, and the End of Jewish Sectarianism," Collins, John J., 'The Son of Man and the Saints of the Most High in the Book of Daniel' JBL 93, 1974. Collins, John J., 'A Throne in the Heavens: Apotheosis in pre-Christian Judaism' in Death Ecstasy and Other Worldly Journeys, Collins and Fishbane eds. 1995, pp.43-58. Dan, Joseph, "Three Types of Ascent in Jewish Mysticism", Seventh Annual Rabbi Louis Feinberg Memorial Lecture in Judaic Studies, Ohio, University of Cincinnati, 1984.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
412
Daube, David, The New Testament and Rabbinic Judaism, London, 1956. Daube, David, 1990.
'On Acts 23:8 Sadducees and Angels' JBL 109
Davenport, G.L., The Eschatology of the Book of Jubilees, Studia post-biblica 20, Leiden, Brill, 1971. Davidson, Maxwell J., "Angels at Qumran: A Comparative Study of 1Enoch 1-36, 72-108 and Sectarian Writings from Qumran," JSPS 11. Davies, lQH: The War Scroll from Qumran, Rome, 1977. P.G.
Davis, 'Divine Agents, Mediators and New Testament Christoloqy' Journal of Theological Studies, 45 1994
Diamond, Eliezer, "Wrestling the Angel of Death: Form and Meaning in Rabbinic Tales of Death and Dying," JSJ 26, 1995. Dimant, Devorah, "The 'Pesher on the Periods (4Q180) and 4Q181, Israel Oriental Studies, 9, (1979), pp. 77-102. Dimant,
Devorah, "Benei Shamayim--Torat Hamalachim Besefer Hayovelim Lear Kitvei Adat Qumran," ~1w~ ~rrJn {1Jwn).
Devorah Dimant, "The Apocalyptic Interpretation of Ezekiel at Qumran", in Messiah and Christos, 1992. Dimant, Devorah, 'Men as angels; the self-image of the Qumran community' Religion and Politics in the Ancient Near East,
~996.
Dombkowski-Hopkins, "4Q491, 4Q427, and the Teacher of Righteousness," in craig A. Evans and Peter w. Flint, eds. , Eschatology, Messianism, and the Dead Sea Scrolls, Michigan, Ederaans, 1977.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
413
Ego, Beate. Im Himmel wie auf Erden: studien zum Verhaeltnis von himmlischer und irdischer Welt im rabbinischen Judentum, WUNT 2.34, Tubingen, Mohr (Siebeck), 1989. Ego, Beate, "Der Diener im Palast des himmlischen Koenigs. Zur Interpretation einer priestlichen Tradition im rabbinischen Judentum" in Hengel and Schwemer eds. JConigsherrschaft Gottes und himmlischer JCul t: im Judentum, Urchristentum und in der hellenistischen Welt, WONT 55, TUebingen, Mohr (Siebeck), 1991. Elior, Rachel "Mysticism, magic and angelo logy; the perception of angels in Hekhalot literature," Jewish studies Quarterly 1, 1, 1994. Immanuel, Rabbi Israel Salanter and the Hussar Movement: Seeking the 'l'orah of 'l'ruth, New York, JPS,
Etkes,
1993. Falk, Daniel, Daily, Sabbath, and Festival Prayers in the Dead Sea Scrolls, STDJ 27, Leiden, Brill, 1998. Fass,
David E. : ( 1991) •
"How the Angels do Serve, " Judaism,
4 o: 3
Fishbane, M., "The "Measures" of God's Glory in Ancient Midrash" in Gruenwald et. al. eds., Hessiah and Christos, 1992. Fleischer, Ezra, "The Qedusha of the Amida (and other Qedushot): Historical, Liturgical and Ideological Aspects" (Hebrew), 'l'arbiz LXVII, 3, April-June 1998. Fletcher-Louis, Crispin H.T., Luke-Acts Angelology Christology and Soteriology, WUNT, Tubingen, Mohr (Siebeck), 1997. Fletcher-Louis, crispin H.T., "The High Priest as Divine Mediator in the Hebrew Bible: Dan. 7:13 as a Test Case," SBL seminar Papers, 1997, pp. 161-193. (1997b).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
414
Fletcher-Louis, crispin H.T. Fletcher-Louis, "Heavenly Ascent or rncarnational Presence? A Revisionist Reading of the Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice, SBL Seminar Papers, 1998, pp.367-399. Fletcher-Louis, Crispin H.T., ~~ the G~Or'J of Adam, Studies on the Texts of the Desert of Judah, Vol. 42, Leiden, Brill, 2002. Fossum, Jarl E. "Jewish-Christian Mysticism," VC 37, 1983.
Christoloqy
and
Jewish
Fossum, Jarl E. The Name of God and the Angel of the Lord: Samaritan and Jewish concepts of Intermediation and the Origin of Gnosticism, WONT 36, Tubingen, 1985. Fraade, Steven D., "Ascetical Aspects of Ancient Judaism," in Jewish Spirituality: From the Bible through the Middle Ages, Arthur Greeen, ed., New York, 1985. Geertz, Clifford, "Religion as a CUltural system•, Interpretation of CUltures, New York, Basic, 1974.
The
Geischen, Charles A. Angelomorphic Christology. Antecedents and Early Evidence, DPhil. University of Michigan, 1995. Goodenough, Erwin R., By Light, Light. The Mystic Gospel of Hellenistic Judaism, Yale, New Haven, 1935. Goodenough, E. R., Jewish Symbols in the Greco-Roman Period, New York, 1953. Goodman, D., 'Do Angels Eat?' JJS 37, 1986. Gruenwald, rtamar, Apocalyptic Leiden, Brill, 1980.
and
Herkabah
Mysticism,
Halivni, David (Weiss), Hekorot Umesorot (Sources and Traditions), Bava Hetsia, Jerusalem, Debir, forthcoming.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
415
Hall,
Robert G., "Isaiah's Ascent to See the Beloved: An Ancient Jewish Source for the Ascension of Isaiah?" JBL 113, 1994.
Halperin, David J. , Herkabah and Ha 'aseh Herkabah, According to Rabbinic Sources, Doctoral Dissertation, o. c. Berkeley, 1977. Halperin, David J., The Faces of the Chariot: Early Jewish Responses to Ezekiel's Vision, TSAJ 16, Tubingen, 1988. Hanson, P.O., The Dawn of Apocalyptic-- The Historical and Sociological Roots of Jewish Eschatology, Philadelphia, 1983, (2nd ed) • Harrington, Daniel J, "Wisdom at Qumran," The Community of the Renewed Covenant: The Notre Dame Symposium on the Dead Sea Scrolls, Indiana, Notre Dame, 1994. Hengel Martin ' Anna Maria Schwemmer Konigsherrschaft Gottes und hi~ischer Kult: im Judentum, urchristentum und in der hellenistischen Welt, WONT 55, Tubingen, 1991. Himmelfarb, Martha, "From Prophecy to Apocalypse: The Book of the watchers and Tours of Heaven", in Jewish Spirituality: From the Bible through the Middle Ages, Arthur Greeen ed., New York, 1985. Himmelfarb, Martha, "Heavenly Ascent and the Relationship of the Apocalyptic and the Hekhalot Literature" BUCA 59, 1988. Holladay, Carl R. Holladay, Theios Aner in BellenisticJudaism: A Critique of the Hisuse of this Category in New Testament Christology, SBLDS 40, 1977. Hooker, Morna D., The Son of Han in Hark, London, SPCK, 1967, pp. 41-42. Huggins, Ronald, "A Canonical "Book of Periods at Qumran?" Revue de Qumran 15 (1992), pp. 421-436.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Hurtado, Larry w., "What do we mean by 'First Century Jewish Monotheism?" SBL Seminar Paper, 1993. Hyatt,
J.P.,
"The View of Man in the Qumran Semitic Studies 2 (1955-56)
'Hodayot',"
Jour.n~ o~
Isaacs, Ronald H., Ascending Jacob's Ladder: Jewish Views o~ Angels, Demons, and Evil Spirits, Northvale, Jason Aronson, 1997. Jantzen,
Grace
Philosophy
M., o~
Becoming Divine: 'l'owards a Feminist Religion, Bloomington, Indiana University
Press, 1999. Kasher, Rimon, "Anqelology and the supernal worlds in the Aramaic Targums to the Prophets," JSJ 27, 2 (1996). Kohut,
Alexander, Uber die judische Angelologie und Daemonologie in ibrer Abangigkeit vom Parsismus, Leipziq, Brockhaus, 1866.
Kraemer,
David,
History
o~
The Hind o~ the Talmud: An Intellectual the Bavli, Oxford, Oxford University Press,
1990. Kuqel, James, 'Levi's Elevation to the Priesthood in Second Temple Writinqs' H'l'R 86, 1993. Lachs, s. T. , "The Pharisees and Sadducees on Reexamination of Acts 23:8," G'l'J 6, 1977.
Anqels:
A
Levinson, Jon D., "The Jerusalem Temple in Devotional and Visionary Experience," in Jewish Spirituality: From the Bible through the lliddle Ages, Arthur Greeen, ed., New York, 1985. Licht, J. , The Rule Scroll: A Scroll from the Wilderness of Judea--lQS, lQSa, lQSb, Jerusalem, Bialik, 1957.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
417
Marqolies, Morris B., A Gathering of Angels: Angels in Jewish Life and Literature, New York, Ballentine, 1994. Meeks, Wayne, "Moses as God and Kinq, • Religions in Antiquity: Essays in llemory of Erwin Ramsdell, Neusner ed., Leiden, Brill, 1968. Milik, J.T., "Milki-Sedek et Milki-Resa," JJS 23 (1972), pp. 95-144. Moore, Georqe Foot, "Intermediaries in Jewish Theology. Memra, Shekhinah, Metatron" HTR 15, 1922. Morray-Jones, Tradition,
C.R.A., Herkabab Mysticism and Talmudic University of Cambridge PhD. dissertation,
1988. Morray-Jones, C.R.A., 'Transformational Mysticism Apocalyptic-Merkabah Tradition' JJS 43, 1992.
in
the
Morray-Jones, "Paradise Revisited (2Cor 12:1-12): The Jewish Mystical Backqround of Paul's Apostolate. Part 1: The Jewish Sources,• HTR 86, 1993. Morray-Jones, C.R.A., "The Temple Within: The Embodied Divine Imaqe and its Worship in the Dead sea Scrolls and Other Early Jewish and Christian Sources," SBL Seminar Papers, 1998, pp. 400-431. Neusner, Jacob, "Why Schechter, Moore, and Urbach are Irrelevant to Scholarship Today, n in Studies in the Ethnography of Judaism, Atlanta, Scholar's Press, 1989, pp. 173-194. Neyrey, Jerome H. "'I Said You are Gods': Psalm 82:6 and John 10,• JBL 108, 1989. Newsom, Carol,
c.
Newsom, Songs of the Sabbath Sacrifice: A Harvard Semitic Studies Series 27, Atlanta, Scholars Press, 1985. critical
Edition,
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
418
Newsom,
Carol,
Journa~
"Merkabah Exeqesis
in the Qumran Shirot",
of Jewish Studies, 38, (Sprinq, 1987), pp.11-30.
Newsom, Carol, 'He Has Established for Himself Priests: Human and Anqelic Priesthood in the Qumran Sabbath Shirot' in Schiffman ed., Archaeo~ogy and History of the Dead Sea Scro~~s, 1990. Nicklesburg,
G. W. E.
Ancient Judaism:
~ J. J. Collins eds. , Idea~ Figures in Profi~es and Paradigms, SBLSCS 12, 1980.
Niditch, Susan, "The Cosmic Adam: Man as Mediator in Rabbinic Literature", JJS 34, pp. 137-146. Nitzan, Bilhah, "Harmonic and Mystical Characteristics in Poetic and Liturqical Writings from Qumran," JQR 85 (1994), pp. 163-183. Noll,
s. F. , Angelology in the Qumran 'l'exts, Diss. , Manchester, 1979.
Noll,
S.F, "Communion of Angels and Men and 'Realized Eschatology' in the Dead Sea Scrolls," in Proceedings of the Eighth World Congress of Jewish Studies, Jerusalem, 1982.
Notscher, F. Zur Theologischen Terminologie der Qumran-Texte, Bonn, 1956. Olyans, S.M. A Thousand Thousands Served Him. Exegesis and the Naming of Ange~s in Ancient Judaism, Texte Und Studien zur Antiken Judentum, 36, Tubinqen, Mohr (Siebeck), 1993.
Peterson, Erik, The Angels and the Liturgy, New York, Herder and Herder, 1964. Robinson, Stephen Edward, Testament of Adam: An Examination of tbe Syriac and Greek Traditions, SBL Dissertation Series, Atlanta, Scholars Press, 1982.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
411
Christopher c., The Open Heaven: A Study of in Judaism and Early Christianity, New York, Crossroad, 1982.
Rowland,
Apoca~yptic
Rowland, Christopher c., "A Man Clothed in Linen: 10.6ff and Jewish Anqeloloqy" JSNT 24, 1985.
Daniel
Schafer, Peter, Riva~itat zwischen Engel und Henschen, New York, deGruyter, 1975. Schafer, Peter, Rivalitat zwischen TUbinqen, Mohr (Siebeck), 1988.
Engel
und
Henschen,
Schafer, Peter 'Tradition and Redaction in Hekhalot Literature', Journal of Studies in Judaism 14, 1983. Schafer, Peter, "New Testament and Hekhalot Literature: The Journey into Heaven in Paul and in Merkavah Mysticism", JJS 35 (1984) pp. 19-35. Schafer, Peter "The Aim and Purpose of Early Jewish Mysticism", 12th Sacks Lecture (Oxford Centre for Postgraduate Hebrew Studies, 1986), in Schaefer, Hekhalot Studien, Tubinqen, Mohr (Siebeck), 1988. Schafer, Peter, "Engel und Henschen in der HekhalotLi teratur", in Schaefer, Hekhalot Studien, Tubinqen, Mohr (Siebeck), 1988. Schafer, Peter, The Hidden and Manifest God: Some Major Themes in Early Jewish Mysticism, SUNY Press, Albany, 1992. Schechter, Solomon, Some Aspects of Rabbinic Theology, London, Adam and Charles Black, 1909. Schiffman, Lawrence, "Communal Meals at Qumran," Revue de Qumran 10 (1979).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
420
Schiffman, Lawrence, "lferlcavab Speculation at Qumran: the 4Q serelch Shirot ,:olat ha-Sbabbat" in Mystics, Philosophers, and Politicians: Essays in Jewish Intellectual History in Honor of Alexander Altman, Jehuda Reinhartz et.al. eds., North Carolina, 1982, pp. 15-47. Lawrence Schiffman, ed. Archaeology and History in the Dead Sea Scrolls, Sheffield, JSOT, 1990. Schiffman, Lawrence, Reclaiming the Dead Sea Scrolls, York, JPS, 1994.
New
Schiffman, Lawrence, The Eschatological Community of the Dead Sea Scrolls: a Study of the Rule of the Congregation, SBL Monoqraph Series #38, 1989. Schiffman, Lawrence, "The Place of 4QMMT in the Corpus of Qumran," Reading 4QMMT: New Perspectives on Qumran Law and History, John Kampen and Moshe J. Bernstein, eds., Atlanta, Scholars Press, 1996. Scholem, Gershom, Lectures in New York published as Jewish Gnosticism, lferlcabah Mysticism and Talmudic Tradition, Hew York, JTSA, 1960. Scholem, Gersbom, Jewish Gnosticism, Merlcabah Mysticism and Talmudic Tradition, Hew York, JTSA, 1960. Schuller, Eileen, "A Hymn from a Cave Four Hodayot Manuscript: 4Q427 i + ii," JBL 112/4 (1993), pp. 605-628. Alan Seqal, TWo Powers in Heaven: Early Rabbinic Reports about Christianity and Gnosticism, Leiden, E.J.
Seqal,
Brill, 1977. Seqal, Alan F. , Rebecca's Children: Judaism and Christianity in the Roman World, Cambridqe, Harvard University Press, 1986.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
421
Segal, Alan F., Paul tbe Convert: The Apostolate and Apostasy of Saul the Pharisee, New Haven, Yale University Press, 1990. Segal, Alan F., "The Risen Christ and the Angelic Mediator Fiqures in Light of Qumran" in Charlesworth ed., Jesus and the Dead Sea Scrolls, 1992.
Segal, Alan, "Paul and the Beginning of Jewish Mysticism", in Death Ecstasy and Other Worldly Journeys, Collins and Fishbane eds. 1995. Shinan, Avigdor, "The Angelology of the 'Palestinian' Tarqums on the Pentateuch", Sefarad 43 (1983) pp. 181-98. Smelik, W.F., 'On Mystical Transformation of the Righteous into Light in Judaism' JSJ 26, 1995. Smith, Morton "Ascent to the Heavens in 4QMa, " Lawrence Schiffman, ed. Archaeology and History in the Dead Sea Scrolls, Sheffield, JSOT, 1990. Smith, Morton, "On the History of Angels, " in "Open Thou Hine Byes• Essays on Aggadah and Judaica Presented to Rabbi William G. Braude on his Eightieth Birthday and Dedicated to His Memory Herman J. Blumberg, Benjamin Braude, Bernard B. Mehlman, Jerome s. Gurland & Leslie Y. Gutterman eds., New Jersey, Ktav, 1992. Stern, Sacha, Jewish Identity in Early Rabbinic Writings, AGJU XXIII, Leiden, E.J. Brill, 1994. Stone, Michael E. , "Reactions to the Destruction of the Second Temple: Theology, Perception and conversion, " JSJ 12, 1982. Strousma, Gedaliahu G., "Le Couple de L'Ange et de L'Esprit: Traditions juives et Chretiennes" RB 88, 1981.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
422
Struqnell, John, "The Angelic Liturgy at Qumran--4Q Serek Shirot Olat Hassabbat", suppl. to VT, VII (1959). Stuckenbruck, Loren T., Angel Veneration and Cbristology. A Study in Early Judaism and in the Cbristology of the Apocalypse o~ John, WONT 2.70, Tubingen, Mohr-Siebeck, 1995. Tromp, J., The Assumption o~ Hoses: A Critical Edition with Commentary, SVTP 10, Leiden, Brill, 1993. Uhrbach, Ephraim "ha-Hesorot al Torat ha-Sod bi-Tekufat HaTanaim" in Hebkarim BeKabbalah Uvetoldot haDatot Hugashim LeG. Scholem, Jerusalem, 1965, pp. 1-28. Urbach, Ephraim, The Sages: Their Concepts and Beliefs, Israel Abrahams trans., Harvard University Press, Cambridge (Fourth Printing), 1995. VanderKam, J .c., Enoch and the Growth Tradition, Washington D.C., 1984.
of an
Apocalyptic
Vermes, Geza, "The Archangel Sariel. A Tarqumic Parallel to the Dead Sea Scrolls" in Christianity, Judaism and Other Greco-Roman CUlts, Jacob Neusner ed., 1975. Viviano, Benedict T. & Justin Taylor, "Sadducees, Angels, and Resurrection (Acts 23:8-9)" JBL 111, 1992. Weinfeld, Moshe, The Organizational Pattern and the Penal Code of the Qumran Sect, FribourgfGottingen, Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht, 1986. Wolfson, Elliot, "Mysticism and the Poetic-Liturgical Compositions from Qumran: A Response to Bilhah Nitzan," JQR 85 (1994), pp. 185-202. Yadin, Yigael, The Scroll of the War o~ the Sons of Light Against the Sons of Darkness, Oxford, 1962.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
423
NOTE ON TEXTS AND TRANSLATIONS
The Hebrew and Aramaic texts of the Dead Sea Scrolls contained in this study follow The Dead Sea Scrolls study Edition, edited by Florentino Garcia Martinez and Eibert J.c. Tigchelaar (Leiden, Brill, 1997, 1998). The translations here also largely follow that edition, with some changes made. Translations of Talmudic and Midrashic texts are mine, and I have occasionally followed the Soncino English editions. Quotations from the Pseudepiqrapha follow the translations in The Old Testament Pseudepigrapha, edited by James H. Charlesworth (New York, Doubleday/Anchor Bible, 1983, 1985).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.